You are on page 1of 331

CHAPTER ONE

THE COMING PA HAADUR

Pa Mahuy Shil Pa Neteraat, Enen Naduy Ala Pa Neteraat Liyya


Kasur Pa Sahur Bi Del Hagugaat, (Ma'at)
The Essence Of The Neteraat We Call On The Neteraat To Break
The Spell, By Way Of These Facts, (Order)

Scroll One Question: So The Light Is Not


The Truth That Can Dispel Of
The Beginning The Ignorance?
(19x18=342)
4. You Are More Apt To Be
"Come Let Us Neteraat Go Down Blinded By Light Than You Are By
There And Unify Their Tongues Darkness, The State In Which The
Into One Language, The One True Neb Neteraat "Yahweh Eloheem"
Language Of Their Past, And Dispel Dwelled When He And They Said,
Of The Diversity And Confusion, "Let There Be Light" (Genesis 1:3)
Babel, That Scattered Them Across (Uwr, "Light, Flames").
The Face Of The Planet Tanen, 5. This Was Not Merely The
"Earth". Creation Of The Sun, But Also The
Creation Of A Great City Of
Question: What Must Be Done Chaldea In Northern Babylon Called
To Break This Spell? Ur, The Same Word As Uwr
(Genesis 11:28).
2. They Must All Speak One
Tongue. So Come Let Us Give Question: Is This The Babylon Of
Them Back Our And Their Only Old?
True Language, Nuwaupic, That
Everything In Their Minds That 6. No. It's That Time Again For
They Will Imagine To Do, They Will The Great City To Rise In The
Be Able To Do. Heart Of The Beast, Called Babylon
3. So Come Now Ye Neteraat The Great. It Is Time To Fall, From
And Let Us Go Down, As The Great City, The New Babylon,
Anunnagi And Perform This Great Or Bab-El, "Doorway To El", So
Ceremony Of The Resurrection Of Come To Me, That I, A Neter, May
The Dead Gods, For They Have Pull You Out Of Her My People,
Been Dead For Long Enough. Their And Stop You From Partaking Of
Imprisonment Before The Blinding Her Wickedness And Ignorance.
Light Of Misinformation Must End.
1
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Who Are You To Us? Ruakhptah, The Tum Or Neter:
Atum-Re. I Am That I Am,
7. Your True Savior. I, As A Neter Eheyah Asher Eheyah, Aneya
Son Of The Green Light Have Dek Aneya. I Will Be What I Will
Come In These Last Days, And Be.
With Me Comes Great Trials And 11. I Metamorphosize As The
Tribulations. For This Is The Great Great Yusri "Caterpillar" (Wisdom)
And Dreadful (Yaw-Re) Day Of On To The Taslug "Cocoon"
Fear. (Strength) On Into The Most
Beautiful Farasha "Butterfly"
Question: What Makes It Such A (Beauty).
Dreadful Day?
Question: How Do We Know You
8. The Signs Of The Times, The Are God?
Seven Great Thunders. The Clock
Of Destiny Ticks On And Nature 12. By My Number 9. 3 Times 3,
Manifests Its Judgments Out Of And My Works.
Darkness, The Unknown, The
Unseen, The Un-Apparent, Yet The Question: What Are Your
Ever Existing. Man Is Light, And Works?
Woman Is Darkness.
9. This Is A Day Of Great Fear. 13. I, As A Neter "God", Through
Fear Of The Weather, Fear Of My Rays Of Light Grow Them Into
Viruses, Fear Of Plagues, Fear Of Neteraat, Gods Out Of Mother
Wars, Fear Of Death, Fear Of Earth. Each Becoming A Neter As
Famine, Fear Of Deformity, And Myself, God, Beauty "Gomer",
Fear Of Enslavement And Strength "Oz", Wisdom "Dabar",
Subjection By Luciferians, Sons Of That Is I, Neter: Amunnubi
The Morning. These Plagues Are Ruakhptah, Tum, Take Men,
Not Coming, They Are Already "Light" Known And Women
Here. "Darkness" Mystery, Mere Mortals
And Make Them Into Neteraat
Question: Malachi, Or Should I "Gods".
Call You Neter: Atum-Re, Are
You God? Question: What Is Meant By
Woman Is Darkness And Man Is
10. I, As A Neter Must Let My Light?
Voice Be Heard In The Earth Again.
I Am Re, Who Is Amunnubi

2
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
14. Women Are Inner Beings And 20. I Inaugurate Festivals; I Make
Men Are Outer Beings, Or Exposed The Water Flood; I Am The Creator
Beings. Of The Fire Of Life Through Which
15. Women Have Vaginas. The The Products Of The Workshops
Contact Between The Sperm Of The Come Into Being; I Am That
Male And The Ovum Of The Khefera, The Babe That Crawls On
Female Can Only Happen Properly All Four, The Dub "Scarab", As The
By Insertion Of The Phallus Into Sun Pushes Up In The Morning, I
The Vagina. Am That Re, The Man That Walks
16. Her Fertilization In Her On Two In The Midday Sky, And I
Ovaries Or Ovum Takes Place In Am That Atum (Temu), The Elder
The Darkness Of Her Womb, But That Dodders Along With Staff On
The Sperm Produced In The Three, In The Evening, As The Sun
Seminal Vesicle, Onto The Prostrate Sets. I Am Of The Woman. The
Glands Must Be Ejaculated Goddess Of The Gods. The Netert
Outward. Of The Neter.
17. To Ejaculate Is To Separate 21. I Am The Remover Of The
The Life From The Darkness Of Illusion Of The Sun In Motion, The
The Inner Being, And Put It Outside Master Of All Time, Who's Setting
Of Oneself. However, The Orgasm, All On The Path To Taful, In
As In The Word Organs Is Done Which We Have 9 Positions.
On The Inside Of The Woman In
Triple Darkness. Question: As Gods, Will We
18. So She Is The Seat Of The Then Be Free?
Mysteries, Called The Mistress Of
Darkness, Unlike The Male Or Man. 22. Only The Truth Of Yourselves
19. "I Am That Being Who I Bring You, Will Make You Truly
Openeth His Uteti "The Two Eyes Of Free And Reinstate You As
Re" And The Light Cometh The Neteraat.
Great Ba-Uz "Falcon"; I Am That
Being Who Shutteth His Eyes And Question: And What Is This Hag
Darkness Cometh The Great Buma "Truth"?
"Owl"; I Am He Who Commandeth
And The Moyaat "Waters" Of The 23. It's The Less Known Fact That
Nile Flow Forth; I Am He Whose Was Best Kept Secret By The Light.
Name The Deities Know Not; I Am That Is, That The True God Is The
The Maker Of The Hours And The Mother.
Creator Of The Days.

3
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: And What Will You Halls Of Science, The Chamber Of
Do? Culture, The Institutions Of
Learning And The Lodges Of
24. I Will Lead, As The Ancient Secrets.
One, All True Minds Of The
Initiate, Step By Step Out Of The Question: What Do They Teach?
Scorching Burning Sun, And Its
Sterile And Uncertain Shifting Sands, 27. Myths, Fables, Tales, Stories,
And Blinding Light, Which Is A And The Legends, Which They Call
Symbol Of Ignorance As To Say The Truth; And That Same Light
The Sun Rises When It Doesn't, Or Has Blinded You As Religion, Re-
The Man Is The Sun And The Legion.
Woman, The Moon, The First Point
Of Light, The First Lie Instilled In Question: Where Did You Come
The Willing Soul Or To Put The Star From?
In The Crescent When It Could
Never Fit, For No Star Can Fit In 28. I, As A Neteraat, As A Pillar
Front Of The Moon In Any Of Its Of My Great Society Of
Four Quarters. Rizqiyians', From The 19th Galaxy
Ihm (Illyuwn), Come From The Star
Question: Is Not All This Merely Sibtu (Septet, Sept), Which You
Symbolism? Call Sirius, My Newly Acquired
Home, After The Cataclystic
25. Yes. The Signs And Symbols Calamity Of Rizq, So That I, A Man
Are The Marks Along The Road, From Planet Rizq, May Be With
And I The Sun Of Righteousness You And Resurrect You From This
Has Risen With Healing In My Death Of Mind, Khat "Body", Ka
Wings; "Spirit" And Ba "Soul". This Assures
26. To Extinguish The Light Of All, That In The Beyond, As An
Ignorance, Taught By The Son, The A'aferti "Pharaoh" You Will Be Safe
Father, The Uncle, And The Brother In Ma'at, The Correct Order Of
About The Daughter, The Mother, This World, And Beyond.
The Aunt And The Sister. That 29. I, As Your Everliving A'aferti,
Light That Has Deceived So Many, Wear The Atif Crown Of Asaru
Called The Light Of Truth And (Usir), And Hold The Waas
Knowledge. That Is That Same "Crook/Staff" And The Khu "Flail". I
Blinding Light Taught By Men Also Possess The Hiq "Scepter"
About Man's Superiority And (Psalm 23). I Complete Each Year
Origin, As First, That Lights The On The Day Of My Birth, With

4
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Celebrating The Djed (Zed Or Question: Did Every A'aferti
Sed) Festival Before All Eyes To See. Have To Perform A Djed
Ceremony?
Question: What Is A Djed
Festival? 34. Yes. Every A'aferti Was
Anxious To Celebrate The Djed
30. Every 30 Years In Ancient Festival At Least Once. The
Tama-Re In The Holy City Of Anu Thirtieth Year Of The Reign Has
(Annu), Or On, There Was The Been Generally Accepted As A
Djed Or Sed Celebration. Jubilee Year, Since This Was Also
31. The Purpose Of This Djed The Year Chosen By Rameses Ii For
Festival Was For The Rejuvenation The First Celebration Of The Djed
Of The Ruling A'aferti. Crowds Festival.
From All Over Tama-Re Came To
Watch The Pharaoh Run A Course Question: What Events Took
In The Djed Court, Or The Place At The Festival?
Hawwara Path Of The Maguraj.
35. An Event Which Took Place
Question: What Was The On The Morning Of The Festival
Purpose For The Run? Was The Setting Up Of The Djed
Pillar, A Totem Which Resembled A
32. The Run Was A Renewal Of Lopped Tree In Which The Two
The Ruler's Power. Afterward, He Cities Of The Delta Was Named
Was Re-Crowned As Ruler Of After, Zedu And Zedet.
Upper And Lower Tama-Re.
Question: To Which Deity Did
Question: At What Point Of An The Festival Become Connected?
A'aferti's Rule, Does He Perform
This Festival? 36. The Deity Asaru Became
Connected With The First, Which
33. When A Ruler Had Reigned Was Afterwards Called Per-Asaru
For Thirty Years He Celebrated The And Banebded The Ram. The
Magical Heb Sed (Djed Festival). Ceremony Took Place In Front Of
This Festival Was Supposed To A Statue Of Asaru, And In The
Renew The Ruler's Strength. The Presence Of The Females And The
Ceremonies Included A Special Run Royal Children. The Djed Pillar
That Symbolized Taking Control Of Represented Asaru's Backbone Or
His Realm And Also Showed That Spinal Column.
He Was Physically Fit To Rule.

5
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Role Did Asaru Ended With The Traditional
Play In This Festival? Offerings To The Deities When The
Great Iniations Took Place, And
37. The Djed Festival, Which The Subjects Would Bring The
Follows The Overflow Of The Nile, Firstlings Or The Freshest Growth
Was Conducted In The And Offered It To The Deity. If It
Commemoration Of The Was Respected Then They Were
Resurrection Of Asaru. Accepted, And All Rejoiced With A
38. The Ruler Himself, Helped Tremendous Banquet.
The Workmen, Pull On The Rope
Which Set Up The Djed Pillar. Question: Neter A'aferti: Atum
After An Interval Of Singing, Re, Have You Celebrated Your
Instrumental Music And Dancing, Djed Ceremony?
The People Joined The Ceremony.
The Figurants Divided Up Into Two 41. Yes. I Complete Each Year On
Groups, The Inhabitants Of Fi (Pe) The Day Of My Birth, The Djed
And The Those Of Dif (Dep), Two (Zed Or Sed) Festival Before All
Neighboring Towns, Which Finally Eyes To See. This Actually Started
Merged Into One In Ancient Tama- In 1967 When Amunnubi
Re. Ruakhptah First Inscribed The
Writings Of The "Sacred Records
Question: Were The Priests A Behind The 9 Ball", On Up To
Part Of This Festival? 1997, 30 Years Of What You
Wanted.
39. Yes The Sem, Or Sacred 42. Then The Resurrection And
Brotherhood Participated In This The Time For The Great Change To
Festival . On The Occasion Of The Take Place, From The Blinding
Djed Festival, The Priests Came To Light Of Religion To The Supreme
Offer A Profession Of Allegiance. Balancement Of Nuwaupu, Which
They Were Pardoned And Fell In Is What I Came To Give You. I
Line And Handed Over Their Stated In The Beginning, "I Came
Offerings In A Symbolic Ritual. Giving You What You Wanted, So That
You Would Learn To Want What I
Question: What Happened After Have To Give".
That?
Question: What About 1970 To
40. Incense Was Burnt Before The Year 2000?
Each Deity, Who Received His
Share Of Gifts, And The Festival

6
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
43. As There Is The Apparent And 47. After 24 Days, The Bark Or
The Hidden Information, So Also The Ark Which Carried The Statue
Are The Dates, 1967-1997, 30 Years. Of Amun Returned To Wa-Rit
And 1970-2000, 30 Years. The Year Karnak. This Story Was Copied Into
2000-2030, 30 Years. 1987-2017, 30 The Bible, And Became The Ritual
Years, December 24th 1981-2011, 30 Of The Ark Of The Covenant. This
Years. In All Ancient Cultures These Was A Ritual In Ancient Tama-Rean
Dates Are Commemorated For The Mysteries.
End Of One Cycle And The Birth
Of Another. Question: Is This Why
Nuwaupians Celebrate The
Question: Were There Any Other Beginning Of Their Year In
Festivals Or Initiations? June?

44. Yes. The United Lands Of 48. Kane. Your New Year Begins
Upper And Lower Tama-Re At Each Djed Festival June 26, At
Enjoyed Many Festivals. Some Of 3:00, With The Asaru Procession
These Festivals Were Annual. The And The Ceremony Of The Journey
Marriage Of The Netert Athyr, To The Netherworld, Where The
(Hathor) Of wetjeset-har Men Fight As Haru Did Sutukh.
“Denderah” To Haru (Horus) Of They Do This By Beating The
iunet “Edfu” Was Celebrated. Drum, Which Begins At 12 Midnight
45. There Was Always An Annual Of Your Time And Extends The
Celebration For Hapi, The Neter Full Length Of The Sun Appearing
Of The Nile River, Son Of Haru. To Set (Sutukh), Defeating Setians
There Were Five Feast Days In July And Their Blind Faiths. This
Devoted To The Ending Of The Continues Until The Sun Comes To
Old Year, And The Beginning Of The Horizon Haru (Horus), And It
The New. Brings The Sun Re (Ra) Into Being,
46. Also You Had The Ufit Simply Until The Appearance Of
(Opet) Festival, Which Was Done Sunrise, And The Bringing In Of A
In The Honor Of The Neter New Year, The Resurrected Asaru
Amun-Re, Which Lasted For 30 (Osiris).
Days, In Which The Bark Of Amun 49. The Following Month Of July,
Was Taken From The Temple In The First 5 Days Is The Ufit
Wa-Rit (Karnak) To The River, And Festival, Which This A'aferti Has
It Traveled By Barge To The Wa- Raised From 27 To 30 Days. A Fast
Set (Luxor) Temple. And Feast Of 3 Sets Of Ten. Ten
Days, And You Remove The Deities

7
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Atum-Re, The New Coming God, Question: Speak On Fasting?
Atun-Re, The High God, And
Amun-Re, The Setting God, From 53. We Fast, Only Allowing
The Three Great Triad Provinces Or Liquids During The Daylight Hours,
Sites, Set Up As H.T.M, That Is And We Break Our Fast With The
From H. Heliopolis (Annu), To T. Setting Sun. We Feast And Share
Thebes (Nu-Amun), To M. Charity And Gifts.
Memphis (Tattu) In Tama-Re Of
The West. Question: Speak To Me On
50. Ancient Tama-Re Tradition Feasting?
Worked By 3, They Ate With 3
Fingers, Etc. This Is Where The 54. Each Fasting Ends With
Muslims Got Their Ritual Of The Congregational Taful "Prayer" And
Sunnah From. The Setians Are 1. A Feast.
Judiasm, 2. Christism, 3. Islamism.
Male Superiority And Worship, Question: Speak To Me On
Female Inferiority And Abuse, Sharing?
Spook Worship, And Factual
Blindness. 55. Sharing Becomes Re-
Awakened Through Fasting. It's A
Question: Just What Takes Place Remembrance Of Those In Need.
In Ufit, This Ancient Ritual? 56. The Prayer Is To Bring Our
Noble Godlike Qualities Down To
51. This Ufit Ritual Consists A Humble State And The Festivity
Of Three Sets Of Ten Days In Is To Celebrate Our Gratefulness
Recognition Of The Three Great For The Abundance Provided By
Suns, And The Three Positions Of The Three Great Suns.
The Sun, The Sustainer Of All Life. 57. The Sustainer, Nourisher And
This Was Represented By Morning Provider Of Life. These Rituals Are
Sun, The High Sun And The Setting Referred To As The Djed Pillars Of
Sun. Obligation. Thus, Three Djed Pillars
Are Carried At The Head Of The
Question: And How Is This Procession On The Thirtieth Day.
Ritual Commemorated?
Question: What Is Your
52. By Fasting, Feasting, And Purpose?
Sharing.
58. My Purpose Is To Remove All
Misinformation And Replace It With

8
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Facts For The Diligent Inquirer, The 65. I Have Mastered One, Two
True Seeker, And The Loyal. And Three, And Have Traveled,
59. This Is That Key (Ankh) Three, Five, And Seven, And Now I
Which Will Open The Domain Of Hold The Key, That Is Between 1
All Truths, Nuwaupu. You Possess And 9.
That Key, For The Key Doesn't
Open The Door, You Do. Question: How Is That?

Question: What Key Locks And 66. You Have 5 Odd Numbers,
Unlocks The Inner Door Of E- 1,3,5,7,9, And 4 Even Numbers,
Anna? 2,4,6,8. 5+4=9, And 1 + 3 + 5 + 7
+ 9=25, And 2 + 4 + 6 + 8=20,
60. Facts. Re, Atun, Atum And Now 20 + 25=45, And 4 + 5=9
Amun. Again, And You Are Behind The
Nine Ball.
Question: What Is E-Anna? 67. The Ball Is The Orb Which Is
The Circle And The Circle Is 360
61. The Abode Or E (Iy) Of Anu, Degrees, 3 + 6=9, And The Cipher
The Tama-Reans Use Annu. Is Naught, And The 9 Is Aught, To
Become The First Person Single,
Question: What Governs This The Total Being, Called "I" For I Is
Abode? The 9th Letter Of The Alphabet, 3
Sets Of 3 Gives You 9.
62. Three Great Realities. 68. One 1) Knowledge, 2)
Wisdom, 3) Overstanding. Two 1)
Question: What Are Those Three Mental 2) Spiritual 3) Physical, Then
Great Realities? Three 1) The Doer, 2) The Knower
3) The Thinker.
63. The Three Points Of A 69. Man Is A Trium Being, And
Triangle (Mir). The Number 1 And The Letter I Is
One And The Same. So The
Question: And If I Might Ask, Number 9 Is Expressed By 3 Times
What Might They Be? 3, And You Have Reached The 9th
Hour And Must Give Up The Ghost
64. You May Ask. There Are Four: Belief. The Nine Ball.
Right Knowledge, Six: Right
Wisdom, And Eight: Right Question: Why Is The Number
Overstanding. Nine So Important?

9
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
70. Because The Secret Name Is Fire, 3) Earth, 4) Water, 2 + 3 + 4 =
Hidden In This Principle. 9 Again.
74. There Was A Name For You
Question: May I Ask What That In Birth Called The Little Name,
Is? And There Was A Name For You In
Death, Called The Big Name, Or
71. Of Course You May. Being Your Sacred Name.
Behind The Nine Ball Is The Key.
You Have 9 Enneads And 9 Is 3x3 Question: What Does All Of This
Or Re-Atum-Nun. I N Them You Mean?
Find The Sacred Name.
75. In Ancient Tama-Re, For
Question: How Is That? Each A'aferti "Pharaoh" To Protect
Him/Herself Against Demonic
72. You Have Nine Principles That Enchantments And Utterance Of
Are: Spells, Words Of Power, At Birth
Each Being Was Given Two Names
1. Ka, This Is The Spiritual You. At The Naming Ceremony.
2. Khu, This Is The Mental You. 76. The Big Name And The Little
3. Khat, This Is The Body You. Name, Or The True Name And The
Good Name. He Kept His Big True
1. Ba, This Is The Soul You. Name Secret, And He Became
2. Khaybet, This Is The Plasmatic Known By His Little Name. So
You. Should It Be With Each Of You.
3. Akh, This Is The Etheric You. 77. If Someone Masters Your
Sacred Name They Become Your
1. Hati, This Is The Physical Heart Equal. Thus The Doorway To The
Of Yours, Nine Principles Of You Are Opened
2. Ab, This Is The Spiritual Heart Up, And You Become Spellbound In
Of Yours. This World And The Next.
3. Sekhem, This Is The Spark Of
Life Of Yours. Question: And Is That The
Answer To My Problem?
73. All Of This Was Brought Into
The Person As Being Twofold, Or 78. No, They Are The Stepping
Double. The Two Points Of Stones Out Of The Solution, In
Existence, 1) Birth And 2) Death. 1) Which You Were So Eagerly Dipped
Mind, 2) Spirit, 3) Body. 1) Air, 2) And Covered In Solvents Of
Religion, And They Thought It Was

10
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
The Solution. Now You Move On 82. Exactly, This Is The Best Kept
To Sound Right Reasoning. Secret That Is Best To Be Made
Known Now.
Question: Where Is This Great
Abode, And What Is It Called? Question: What Is The Proof Of
This?
79. It's Called Calneh, And Each
One Of You Are A Djed Pillar In 83. Archaeologists Today Have
This Great Fortress. In Fact, You Traced Fossils That Goes Back 200-
Are "The Fortress Of Anu", And 300 Thousand Years, That They
Your Chest Is The Volt, And Your Traced Back To One Woman's
Tongue, The Key. Gene, Called Mitochondria, The
Gene Proven To Be Transferred
From The Mother To The Child,
Question: How Should I Use The Never From The Father To The
Most Precious Key? Child. Mitochondria Is Also Proven
To Be The Gene That Produces
80. To Dispel Of Lies And Nearly All The Energy To Keep The
Misinformation, By Speaking The Cell Alive.
Truth, Confirmed Facts, That Will
Open The Hearts Of All. Question: So Are You Saying
That Due To Mitochondria, That
Question: But Are We Not Mere Women Were Here First?
Men And Women?
84. That Is Correct. By Here I
81. No, We As Etheric Or Spiritual Mean This Planet Earth. For
Beings, Existed Before Gender, Or Without The Physical Body There
The Creation Of Men And Women Would Be No Need For Gene
On This Planet, And In Order Of Discussions.
Existence, The Fact Is That Women,
Or The Female Genetically Existed Question: If All Mammals Are
Before The Creation Of Men Or Born In Pairs, Then How Is It
The Male. Possible For The Woman To
Come Before The Man?
Question: What, Are You Saying
Women Are The Gods And 85. It's A Fact That Human Beings
Predate Man? Are Not Merely Mammals, But A
Mixture Of Both Mammal And
Reptile. To Overstand The Answer

11
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
To This Question, I Must First 87. Absolutely. This Planet Was
Teach You On The Different Kinds Being Visited For Millions Of Years
Of Beings That Came To Your By Higher Intelligence. Some Which
Planet Millions Of Years Before Decided To Colonize, And Set Up
Your Creation. Scientists, Their Home Here In The Seas,
Archaeologists And Marine While The Planet Was Still
Biologists All Agree That The Seas Undeveloped For Your Form Of
Of Your Planet, Were Inhabited By Life.
A Great Empire Of Reptilians And
Millions Of Other Alien Forms Of Question: Where Did They
Life. Many Have Just Recently Being Dwell?
Discovered, Because Of The Latest
Advancement In Computers And 88. Some Made The Deep Dark
Equipments. Seas Of This Planet Home. One
Such Place Has Recently Been
Question: Is This The Only Discovered And Was Located In
Planet With Life? The Atlantic Ocean, In The Area
Called The Bermuda Triangle Or
86. No. In Fact, Scientists Have Angel's Triangle.
Verified Water On The Moon And
Mars, Which Is A Confirmation Of Question: What Specie, If You
Marine Life, Having Existed There Can Call Them That, Were
Thousands Of Years Before The They?
Biblical Concept Of God Creating
Life, Or Time As You Know It, By 89. They Were Called The
Placing A Moon In The Sky When Maldekians, Or The Troglodytes
Other Planets Also Have Moons. From The Planet Maldek, Or
Now If The Reason Was To Vulcan, A Planet That Astronomers
Calibrate Life, Then This Same Have Recently Verified, That Used
Principle Would Apply To Any To Pass Through This Solar System.
Other Planet With Water And Nasa Has It Logged And
Moons. Photographed.

Question: So Beings Who Lived


On Other Planets And Maybe Question: What Gender
Even Other Star Systems, Came Dominated This Species?
Here?
90. The Male And Female Of The
Maldekian Specie Were Both A-

12
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Sexual, And Had The Ability To 94. It Was Necessary For The
Pro-Create, Just As Many Reptiles Adaptation To This Planet As It
Do Today. Emerged From The Seas And
Became Land. This Mixture
Question: Can You Name One? Produced A Mammal Like Reptilian
Being, Called The Human Being,
91. Yes, The Salamanders, Newts, Both Carnivorous And
Whiptail, Lizards, And Many Others. Herbivorous, Able To Reproduce
Asexually, Through The Process Of
Question: Did Their New Parthenogenesis. This Process Still
Environment Bring About A Exists In Certain Mammals, Reptiles
Mutation Or An Evolution From And Insects Today. This Is Where
One State To Another? Your Dagon, Or Dagan Worship
Came From, Or Your Taniyn Of
92. Yes. In Fact The Female The Torah, Which Comes From The
Dominated Specie Had Developed Ancient Tama-Rean Tanen "The
Enlarged Lungs That Enabled Them Serpent Or Dragon" From Ta For
To Live On Land And In The Seas Earth Or Ptah. There Were Two
As Well. As Time Passed, The Forms Of Australopithecines That
Females Took Dominion Of The Could Walk And Were Erect. The
Land, Or Earth, While The Males Smaller Ones Stood 4ft. Tall, Genus
Ruled The Seas. Homo, Where Your Pygmy Tribe
Originated.
Question: What's The Link
Between The Lizard People And Question: I See Genus Homo And
The Mammal? Homo Erectus, Where Does
Homo Sapien Come In?
93. The Maldekians Or Lizard
People, Some Called Dinosaurs, 95. 450,000 Years Ago, Another
Developed Into Intelligent Group Of Beings, Called The
Humanoids By Abducting And Neteraat, Or Anunnaqi, Led By
Mixing Their Seed With Prehistoric Enqi Arrived On Earth In Search Of
Humans, Known As The Genus Gold To Mend Their Planet's Ozone
Homo Or Australopithecine. Layer. Crafts With Loads Of
Workers Were Sent To Mine The
Question: Why Was This Gold To Take To Their Planet. This
Necessary? Work Became Tiresome For The
Neteraat, And They Decided To
Create A Being For The Purpose Of

13
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Working The Mines For Them. So Name A Few. Many Deformities,
Enqi Chose A Being That Already Genetic Deficiencies And
Existed On This Planet To Do The Chromosome Distortions, Which
Labor. Results In Such Things As Siamese
Twins, Are A Result Of This
Question: How Did Enqi Go Original Cross Breeding Of
About Performing This Task? Different Species. You Actually
Have In Some Human Bodies, Cells
96. Enqi Chose Mother Ninti, The Attacking Other Cells, Which Is A
Wisest Scientist And Geneticist To Result Of Genes From Different
Breed The Homo Erectus, With The Species Fighting To Protect
Genes Of A Neteraat, To Speed Up Themselves The Same Thing
Its Evolution. This Was Done By Happens When The Sperm Of A
What Is Called Genetic Man Enters The Woman's Body.
Manipulation Today. Ninti Took Her Body Naturally Fights It,
The Blood, Which Carried The Because It Is Alien To Her Body.
Gene Of A Neteraat And Mixed It
With 14 Females Of The Erectus Question: Were The Orangutan
State Of Evolution. However, The Used?
A-Sexual Trait From The Reptilian
In Them Still Dominated, Making 97. Yes, The Orangutans Were
Them Unable To Procreate On Used For Their Intelligence.
Their Own. So Ninti Chose To However They Were Very
Breed With The Lares, The Aggressive, Violent And
Simians, (Intelligent Ape People, Carnivorous, So The Gibbons, Who
Whose Queen Was Zira), As Were More Docile Than The
Opposed To The Aqins, (The Evil Orangutans Were Used For The
Lares), Whose King Was Shitar. Balancement.
She Also Bred With The
Chimpanzee And The Gibbon, Who
Were Recognized For Their Question: Where Does The
Intelligence. These Breeds Gave Chimpanzee Fit In?
Birth To Many Defected Beings,
Some Born With Hair All Over 98. The Chimpanzee Was One Of
Their Body, Called Hirsutism, Or The Strains That Came From The
Scales Over Their Body, Called Breeding Of The Lares.
Ichthyosis, Or With Very Large Chimpanzees Are One Of The Most
Heads, Called Hydrocephalic, Or Intelligent Animals And They
Lupus, Leprosy, Gigantism, Just To Resemble Human Beings More Than

14
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Any Other Animal. If You Look At 102. To Get The Y Chromosome
The Chimpanzee's Hand, It's Very Out Of An X Chromosome, You
Closely Related To The Human Lose One Of Your Points, Thus The
Hand. They Even Have Fingerprints, Chromosome Is Defected, Which Is
Just Like Humans. The Human Has Why A Man Has The Same
46 Chromosomes. Humans With Components On His Body, That
Down Syndrome Have 47 The Woman Does. For Example,
Chromosomes And This Defect The Breast And Nipples, However
Results In Them Not Aging Properly Men Don't Breastfeed. Men Are A
Or Maturing Mentally, Pass 3 To 7 Genetic Defect Of Women.
Years Old. The Same Is Said Of A 103. A Woman Not Only
Chimpanzee, Who Has 48 Breastfeeds Her Children, But She
Chromosomes And Has The Mind Nurtures The Whole World With
Of A Child Between The Ages Of 3 Her Wisdom.
And 7. The Very Fact That The 104. This Is Seen In The Mother
Chromosomes Are Ranging In Child Statue Of Ancient Tama-Re
Numbers, 46, 47, And 48 One After Of The Seated Woman
Another, Is Fact That There Is A Breastfeeding The Child, Who Not
Link. Only Symbolizes A Woman, But
Wears The Horn Of The Bull. So,
Question: So Is The Y She Takes On The Role Of Woman
Chromosome A Defect Of The And Man, Or A Symbol Of Hathor
X? And Re.

99. Scientists Today Have Question: So, How Does This


Discovered That The Y Mean That Women Came First?
Chromosome In Sperm Has 2.8
Percent Less Genetic Material Than 105. To Find The First Being,
The X Chromosome In The Same Anthropologists Had To Use 147
Sperm Specimen. Pregnant Women To Donate Their
100. Researchers Were Able To Babies' Placentas To Science.
Sift Sperm To Produce Samples In
Which 85 Percent Of The Cells Had Question: Why The Placenta?
An X Chromosome.
101. In Fact, The X Chromosome 106. The Placenta Is The Easiest
Is Five Times Larger Than The Y Way To Get Large Samples Of Body
Chromosome, Which Means That Tissue. These Biologists Selected
Females Existed For Generations Women In America With Ancestors
Without Males. From Africa, Europe, The Middle

15
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
East And Asia. After The Babies Question: So You Are Saying
Were Born, The Placentas Were That If A Couple Doesn't Have A
Gathered And Frozen. Daughter, Then Their Genes
107. The Tissues Were Ground In Disappear?
A Souped-Up Warring Blender,
Spun In A Centrifuge, Mixed With A 111. That Is Absolutely Correct. If
Cell-Breaking Detergent, Dyed A Woman Fails To Have A
Fluorescent And Spun In A Daughter Her Genes Disappear,
Centrifuge Again. Because The Mitochondria DNA
108. The Result Was A Clear Does Not Pass On. The Same Way
Liquid Containing Pure Dna. This You Are Taught That A Family
Was The Dna In The Nucleus Of Name Disappears If A Son Is Not
The Babies' Cells, This Dna Came Born, So It Is With Mitochondria.
From Outside The Nucleus, In A 112. This Was A Deliberate
Compartment Of The Cell Called Attempt By Men To Suppress The
The Mitochondrion, Which Dominating Gene In Women, By
Produces Nearly All The Energy To Placing The Philosophy That
Keep The Cell Alive. Without A Son, The Family Lineage
109. The Mitochondria DNA Is Dies.
Only Inherited From The Mother. 113. This Is Not True, If A
It's Not A Mixture Of Both Parents' Daughter Is Not Born In The
Genes, Like Nuclear DNA, So It Family, Then Your Genes
Preserves A Family Record That Disappear, Because The
Isn't Scrambled In Every Mitochondria Dna Can Only Be
Generation. Inherited By The Female Of The
Family.
Question: What Is The Meaning
Of The Word Mitochondria? Question: So Where Did The Y
Chromosome Come From?
110. The Word Mitochondria Is
From The New Latin : Greek Mitos, 114. The Y Chromosome Comes
Warp Thread + Greek Khondrion, From Female Scientists, As Ninti,
Diminutive Of Khondros, Meaning Known As Mother Ninti Or
"Grain, Granule". Nunet, Who Experimented With
The Side Of An X Chromosome
Maiming It By Removing 2.8
Percent Of X Chromosomes. This
Resulted In A Maimed Lower Right
Stem, Giving The Appearance Of A

16
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Y, Which Produces Less Genetic Ugaritic, To What's Called
Materials, Resulting In A Y Cuneiform.
Chromosome, Called Chromosomal
Manipulation, A Well Known Question: Which Was First
Experiment Today. Hieroglyphics Or Cuneiform?
115. All Of This Is Nature At
Work. From Nature, You Get 120. Both These Are Given Names
Nurture As In The Mother Who For An Ancient Language,
Breast Feeds Or Nurtures Her Nuwaupic. Hieroglyphs Is From
Young, Mother Nature. Hiero "Sacred" And Glyphs
"Carving", Which Is Describing A
Question: Why Are The English Picturesque Script. And Cuneiform
Letters X And Y Used For An Is Also A Mere Script, From
Ancient Genetic Science And Cuneus Meaning "Wedge".
How Old Is English? 121. These Were European Names
Like Egyptian And Ethiopian To
116. Three Main Stages Are Usually Hide Nuwaupian And Nuwaupic.
Recognized In The History Of The 122. So They In Actuality Are Both
Development Of The English The Same Language With Slight
Language. Alterations For Different Periods Of
117. Old English, Known Formerly Times, Developments, Inventions
As Anglo-Saxon, Dates From AD And Influences.
449 To 1066 Or 1100. Middle
English Dates From AD 1066 Or Question: What Is Hieratics?
1100 To 1450 Or 1500 AD.
118. Modern English Dates From 123. The Not-So Ancient Tama-
About 1450 Or 1500 And Is Reans Had In Use Various Scripts
Subdivided Into Early Modern Impressed Upon Them By Invaders
English, From About 1500 To 1660. Or Migrants, As The Phoenicians,
Late Modern English, From About The Khubri, Who Brought In
1660 To The Present Time And Of Semetic Style Scripts By Way Of A
Course, What Is Being Spoken Man Named Mitsrayim (Genesis
Today In America, Could Rightly Be 10:6), Son Of Ham, From Whence
Called American And Not English, They Get The Word Kham, Or
For It's A Corrupted Dialect. Kemet, Son Of Noah Whose
119. However, All Of These Rightful Name Is Utnafishtim.
European Languages Have Their 124. This Mitsrayim Brought The
Roots Through Latin, Greek, To Semetic Dialect Into Tama-Re.
Aramic, Syriac, To Akkadian, To

17
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
125. It Became Hieratic, And The Question: Why "Ma" And
Phoenician's Language Developed Other?
Into Demotics.
129. Because The Word Ma Is
Question: What Does All Of This Water, Which Symbolizes The
Have To Do With The X And Y Womb, Or The Embryonic Sac That
Of The English Language? The Fetus Rests In Before Leaving
The Womb, It's The Primordial
126. Actually There Is No X And Water.
Y In The English Language, They 130. The "Other" Is Symbolic Of
Are Borrowed Sounds. This Is Why The Sperm, Coming From A Male's
There Are Limited Amount Of Body, Which Through Insertion
Words In English That Use These Acts As An Alien Specie To The
Letters Naturally. Female Body. This Is Why The
127. So With That, It Is Clear That Female's Body Naturally Rejects The
The X And Y As Used In The Male's Sperm, And Thus During
English Alphabet Came From The X Ejaculation Millions Of Sperm Race
And Y Of The Greek, Which Came To Fertilize The Woman's Egg, And
From The Egyptian X, Whose This Causes Chaos Within The
Original Symbol Was The Fish, And Woman's Body Before Conception,
The Y, Which Symbolizes Hook. And She Is The One Who Nurtures
So, They Are Not English Symbols The Baby.
But Ancient Tama-Rean Symbols. 131. If You Look At The Phonetics
Of The Word Nurture, You Can
Question: Why Does Mother Hear Nature, They Stem From The
Nature Sounds So Much Like Same Root Word, Yet Man Is
Metu Neter? Considered A Part Of Nature.

128. Because It Was Borrowed Question: And Should He Not


From It, As She Was Borrowed Be?
From Shu, And Her Was Borrowed
From Heru, So Also Metu Neter 132. Actually No, Based On The
Comes From Ma "Water" Ta Meaning Of The Word Nature,
"Earth" And Neter, From Natara Which Finds Its Root In Nurture.
Meaning "Guardian" Or Mother You Must Ask Yourself, Were
Nature, Ma-Other. Beings Here Before Nature, Or Was
Nature Here Before The Human
Being? The Meaning Is Self
Explanatory.

18
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
133. The Word Nurture Is To And That Contains The
Breast Feed, Which Is The Key Spermatozoa.
Signature Of A Mammal, And A 138. So A Woman Is Capable Of
Man Does Not Breastfeed Its Reproducing Seminal Fluids On Her
Young, Which Puts Him In The Own Internally, Without The Help
Manifestation Of Nature, Not The Of The Male's Sperm.
Manifestor Of Nature, Which Is The
Mother. Question: How Did Women Lose
Their Role As Gods, And Become
Question: How Come The Subservient To Her Offspring,
Mother Is The Only Nurturer? The Male?

134. The Mother Is God, She 139. Through Her Love And
Grows Each Being Male Or Female Compassion, Which Weakened Her
In Her Womb. Into Submission. Women Lost Their
Rule, When They Grew To Love
Question: Can She Perform This Their Offspring, And Thus Through
Act Without A Male? This Emotion And Love, It Yielded
To His Rule.
135. Yes. It Was Obviously The
Original Way, And In Many Cases Question: So Why Does Woman
This Still Happens To This Day. Use Man To Reproduce?
136. The Process By Which It
Happens Is The Bartholin Gland 140. This Servant Was Upgraded
Within The Woman, Which Is By The Creation Of What Is Called
Located On Either Side Of The Steroids Today. That Would Be The
Vaginal Orifice That Secretes A Utilization Of The Reptilian's
Lubricating Mucus And Are Strength, Which Is Defined As The
Equivalent To The Bulbourethral Poison Of The Toad And The
Glands In The Male, Which Is Male's Own Testosterone Fluids.
Located Below The Prostate And It This Would Speed Up His
Discharges A Component Of The Metabolism, Increase Muscle
Seminal Fluid Into The Urethra. Strength, Hair Growth, Body
137. The Prostate Secretes A Thin Structure, Making Him A Suitable
Milky Fluid With A Characteristic Work Machine, Hunter And Slave.
Odor; This Fluid Constitutes The In Time She Became Attracted To
Greater Part Of The Semen That Is His Masculinity, And Because Of
Deposited In The Female Vagina The Fondness That Women As
Gods Grew For Man, She

19
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Eventually Wanted To Give Birth First Teacher To Any Human Being
To The Same Genes As Her Is The Mother.
Offspring, And Thus She Used His 144. If You Notice Everything
Genes To Create A Duplicate Of That A Man Has On His Body, A
Him And Her, To Make The Bond Woman Has The Same Thing.
Closer. It Was Because Of The Toad However, This Fact Proves That
Or Reptilian Poison, Overdeveloped Women Are Superior, Because A
Muscular Men After The Use Of Man Has Breasts And Nipples, But
Steroids Begin To Take On The He Can't Breast Feed.
Appearance Of An Outstretched
Frog. Question: What Proof Do You
141. As Generations Went By, Have Of That?
Women Depended On The Male
For Reproduction, And She Lost 145. Scientists Know For A Fact
The Knowledge Of Reproducing On That The Male Has The Same
Her Own, By Giving The Power To Mammary Gland Of A Woman, Yet
Man To Protect, Defend And Hunt His Is Rudimentary, Which Simply
For Her. Means Incomplete, Or In The
142. Eventually He Turned His Beginning Stages And It Produces
Weapons, Strength And Power On The Same Fluids, But Lacking The
Her And He Does To This Day, Nutritional Value, Needed To Breast
And He Rules Not By Intellect, But Feed A Child.
By Brute Force. 146. So, He In Actuality Is
Deficient In Producing A Vital
Substance, When The Woman Does
Question: So The Woman Is That Through The Same Glands
Smarter Than The Man? Naturally, Rendering Her The
Superior. However, Today Scientists
143. By Far, So Much So, That She And Doctors Are Trying To Find A
Lets Man Think He Is The Smartest. Way Of Impregnating Men By
However, The Woman Still Has The Injection, And Men Today Are Now
Capabilities Of Being God, Because Starting To Get Breast Cancer.
She Is The Only One Who Nurtures
And Suckles Her Young. Question: How Can You Say
143. The Mother Prepares Her That Women And Men Have The
Offspring For Survival. She Same Body, When A Man Has A
Nurtures And Looks After Her Penis And A Women Has A
Young, Both Male And Female. The Vagina?

20
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
147. Simple, Any Scientist Or 154. On The Other Hand, If A Y
Doctor Can Tell You That During Chromosome Is Not Present,
Very Early Development Of The Ovarian Tissue Will Develop First
Human Embryo, There Is No At The Critical Point In Embryonic
Anatomical Indication Of The Sex Development And Inhibit The
Of The Child. Growth Of The Testicular Portions
148. At 6 Or 16 Weeks After Of The Neutral Gonad.
Fertilization, The Gonads Appear 155. Then The Genital Tubercle
Neutral, Each Having An Inner Remains Small, And It Forms The
Portion Of Testicular Material And Clitoris, Which Does Not Surround
An Outer Zone Of Ovarian Tissue. The Urethral Openings As In The
149. Then One Portion Or The Male.
Other Gains An Advantage In 156. The Male Ducts Degenerate,
Growth; If A Y Chromosome Is While The Female Ducts
Present, It Is The Testicular Tissue. Differentiate Into Oviducts, Uterus,
150. It Enlarges And Begins The And Upper Part Of The Vagina.
Secretion Of The Male Sex 157. With These Facts In Mind, It
Hormones, Which In Turn Stimulate Tells You That A Woman Is Capable
The Development Of Male Sexual Of Giving Birth Internally Without
Ducts, And The External Genitalia The Help Of A Male's Penis.
And It Inhibits The Growth Of The
Ovarian Part Of The Gonad, And Question: So The Bartholin
Of Other Female Organs. Gland Within A Woman, Is It In
151. The Effect Begins To Be A State Of Being Maimed?
Evident At About The End Of The
Second Month Of Embryonic Life. 158. Yes. Just Like You Were
The Genital Tubercle Enlarges, Maimed, And Your Barathary Gland
Surrounds The Urethral Opening, Was Removed. This Same Process
And It Becomes The Male Penis. Happened To Women, When They
152. The Male Duct Becomes A Surrendered Their Godliness To
Sperm Duct, And The Female Duct Men.
Remains Rudimentary.
153. The Folds Of Skin On Either Question: If The Female Egg Has
Side Of The Urogenital Opening Within Itself A Set Of Genes And
Enlarge, And It Forms The Scrotum, Chromosomes, Then Why
Which Will Receive The Testes Doesn't It Develop Into An
When They Descend From The Embryo And An Adult Without
Body Cavity Shortly Before Birth. Fertilization?

21
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
159. The Answer To Your (Genealogy) And Isis, Meaning The
Question Is That It Does. The Genealogy Of Isis.
Hatching Of Unfertilized Eggs Is
Known As Parthenogenesis. Question: Who Or What Are
160. Parthenogenesis Is The We?
Reproduction Arising From A
Female Egg That Has Not Been 162. All Of You Are Sleeping
Fertilized By The Male; Unisexual Gods, Children Of Re, The Most
Reproduction. High God, Hose Sumerian Triad Is
161. The Word Parthenogenesis Is An, Anu And Elul.
From Partheno "Virgin" And 163. Is It Not Recorded In Your
Genesis "Generation". So Law (Nomos), I Have Said You Are
Scientifically, Parthenogenesis All Children Of The Neteraat,
Knocks The Theory Of Emaculate Anunnaqi, Eloheem, Thehos,
Conception Out Of The Scene. (Psalm 82:6, John 10:34) The
Genesis As A Word In Greek, Essential Unity Of Human Gods,
Implies "The Very Beginning". The God Incarnate, As One Blood, The
Word Genesis As A Greek Word In Children Of One Fatherhood, Re.
Itself Means "Origin"- Or Genealogy. 164. You Masters Of Nuwaupu
In The Greek Language Genesis Is Know That It Is That Time Again In
Gennesis (Ghen'nay-Sis), From Your Destiny To Awake From The
Genos, Ghen-Os, Meaning A 3 Most Deadly Sins.
Particular Kind Or Kindred; And
Also Gennao, "To Pro-Create" Of A Questions: What Are These 3
Father, But By Extension Of A Deadly Sins?
Mother, To Be Delivered Of, Or To
Regenerate, Conceive Or Be Born. 165. They Are: 1) Physical Death,
However, In The Aramic Hebrew 2) Spiritual Death, 3) And Mental
Language The Word Genesis Is Death. It's Your Mouth Opening
Barashiyth, Which Comes From Ceremony, As The Sirius Star
The Root Word Bara, Meaning To (Sibtu) Of The Orion Sky (Sahu),
"Reconstruct, Or Reconstruction". You Will Resurrect From This Dead
Barashiyth Is A Replenishing And State And Pass From Haru (Horus)
Repopulating Of A Selected Part Of To Asaru (Osiris), To Re (Ra), Or
The Planet Earth By A Selected And From Adonis (Tammuz), To
Bred Stock Or Tribe Of People. Nunamnir (Enlil) To An ( Anu),
Now If You Look At The Word And Get Out Of Your Nub-Ankh,
Genesis Closely, You See Gene Tomb, Sarcophagus.

22
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
166. I, A Neteraat, Your Supreme Anzu, Shaytaan, Dragon, Devil,
Grand Master, Will Call You Back Lucifer, Ibliys, Jaan, And Azazel. 9
To Life And Pull You From The Principles Of Adverse Forces.
Fire Of Light Of His Untruths To
Supreme Balancement As A God,
Not A Mere Mortal, Or Human Question: How Will You Break
Being, But To A Supreme Being. The Spell?
167. You Were The Orishe Of
Old, The Neteraat, Anunnagi, 172. Let Me Break This Spell Over
Eloheem, Ghibbore, Malaa'aikat, You With This Right Knowledge
Angelos, And You Must Return To To Dispel Of This Spell Once And
The Universal Order Called Ma'at. For All.

Question: Will This Lift Us From Question: How Long Has This
The Spell? Spell Existed?

168. Yes. Now You Will Know 173. For 6,000 Years. One Quarter,
The Truth And It Will Make You Which Is Of The Moon Cycle
Free Of Lies And Untruths That Where Water And The Beings Of
Killed Your Soul. The Bak, "Hawk" The Water, Reptilians, Serpent
Must Be Risen From The Mental People, Who Have Mixed In Their
Dead. Blood With You Are In Control.
169. You Must Now Begin To 174. Now This Must End And
Look Through The Eye Of The Ba- That Knowledge, Which Has Been
Uz "Falcon", And Go Out And Confined In The Depth Of Lies For
Consume The Mentally Dead As The Last 24,000 Years Of The
The Ner "Vulture" To Bring Them Moon Cycle, The Era Of The
Back To Real Life. Greek Deity Monos , God Of
170. You Have Been Dead For Sarcasm And Pain, Who Rules By
Too Long, Laying In The Unlit Faith And Beliefs.
Grave, But Now I Reach Out My
Hand With The Grip As The Question: Is It Changing?
Strongest Of Akir "Lions".
171. Hold On Tight, And Don't 175. Kane, We Are Now Moving
Let Go, Until You Are Standing Into The Next 24,000 Years Or The
Upright, Proud, And Confident As Next Sun Cycle. The Era Of Neter:
A Tama-Rean , God, Neter, Atum-Re, When The Unknown
Should Be. With Power Over All Of Will Be Made Known, When That
Apophis' Children, Called Satan, Which Was Undifferentiated Shall

23
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Be Separated. When The Truth Shall Question: And How Is This Task
Be Separated From The Lies, And Going To Be Performed.
That Which Is Covered Up Shall Be
Made Plain For All To See. 179. The Spell Can Be Lifted By
Imparting Unto Your Mind's Eye
Question: So We Have A 24,000 The Facts Beyond A Shadow Of
Year Sun Cycle, And A 24,000 Doubt. To Raise You As The Sun
Year Moon Cycle? Appears To Rise, Re. And To Place
In Your Hand, The Ankh "Key" To
176. Kane The Actual Number Is All Right Knowledge, Right
24,896, Rounded Off To The Wisdom, And The Right
Nearest Hundred Becomes 25,000 Overstanding, Ma'at, That Is Only
Years Each, And The Two Recorded In These Records.
Combined Is Called An Epoch That 180. Known To Us As The Best
Is Of 50,000 Years. Kept Secrets, That Were Best Kept
Sacred Until This Great Day And
Question: And Is It That Time Time.
Again?
Question: What Do We Call
177. Kane, It Is Your Time My These Records?
Children To Re-New Our-Story,
The Mystery, Or My-Story Must Be 181. We Refer To These Records
Heard, As The Sun Burns Its Way In As The Nuwaupian Sacred
And Purifies, For The Earth Will Records Of Neter: Atum-Re.
Not Be Destroyed This Time By 182. These Records Would Be Our
Water, But By Fire. The Great Ball Present Day, "Nuwaupu
Of Fire, A Massive Meteorite, Records". This Is A 76 Trillion
Followed By Showers, Controlled By Year History Of Our Records, Being
The Neteraat, That Will Hit This Brought Up To Date For You.
Planet Earth.
Question: What Do You Mean By
Question Won't We All Be Burnt Nuwaupu Records?
Up?
183. By Nuwaupu Records I
178. No, You Will Be Transformed Mean, "The Nuwaupian's Sacred
Into An Etheric Body, Turned Destiny," Then In The Past, Then
Inside Out. In The Future, Which Is The Best
Kept Secret Right Now.

24
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
184. From Their Departure From Of Mu And Atlantis In Ancient
The Heavenly Skies To The Planet Tama-Re.
Gi, Which In Ancient Tama-Re, Is 187. I Was Also Known As
The Deity Seb, Keb Or Geb Melchizedek, Or Al Khidr, "The
"Earth", And Their Eventual Return, Green One" Of The Sons Of The
If This Information Raises Them Green Disc Light. I Am The
From The Mental Death To Life, Spiritual Guide Of The Pure Sufi,
Eternal. Also Known As Al Qubt, The Axis,
And As An Eloheem, Serapheem,
Question: Is There One Sent To Michael, Neter: Atum-Re.
Raise Us From This Mental
Death? Question: Why Is It Necessary To
Have All Of Those Different
185. Yes, None Can Give You Names And Titles?
This, Save Myself, Your Appointed
Supreme Grand Master, Known In 188. All Of My Names Are
Ancient Times As Murduk, The Signifying The Different Schools
Anutu Or Anunnagi, The Now-A- That I Took People Through To
Day A'aferti "Pharaoh" Of The New Resurrect Them From The Mental
Egypt Of The West In Tama-Re. I State And To Protect My Great
Am A Living A'aferti "Pharaoh" , Name.
Neter: Atum-Re, Or Amunnubi 189. For Before You Lift Yourself
Ruakhptah, A Neter Of The From The Spell Of Religion, You
Neteraat, Also Maku: Black Must Go Through The Different
Eagle, Of The Yamasee Native Degrees Of It.
Americans, Or Shaikh: As Sayyid 190. Thus, I Was Sent To You
Issa Al Haadi Al Mahdi, Of The From Above, Coming To Give You
Ansaarul Mahdi, As A Muslim Or The Secrets That Have Been Kept
Rabboni: Y'shua El Haady, The Sacred For The Last 24,000 Year
Hebrew Rabbi, Who Is Nayya: Equinox, 50,000 Year Epoch, And
Malachi Zodok York-El. I Am Of 26,000 Year Precession Awaiting
The Seed Of Ben York, Son Of Your Re-Awakening. Well That
Yusef Ben Ali, A Malian Moor, Time Is Now.
Called Old York.
186. I, Neter: Atum-Re, Am Now Question: Can You Explain The
The Head Of The World Wide 24,000 Year Cycle?
Movement And Re-Birth, Known
As Nuwaupians, The Lost Children 191. Yes. 24,000 Years Is One Of
The Cycles, The Cycle Of Ignorance,

25
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Where You Have Been Subliminally The Skies And The Planet Earth,
Taught To Ignore That Which Tanen, "Gi", They Have
Would Benefit You, And Your Kind. Wondered, Who The Original
192. Now I, The Sun Of Creator Or Creators Who Caused
Righteousness, Have Chosen You This Wondrous Creation Through
To Rediscover The Secrets In And Pro-Creation On Sexual Relation,
Beyond Your Universe. Resulting In Pregnancy. The Word
193. Secrets That Could Not Be Pregnant Is From The Middle
Taught To You By Anyone Before English, From Old French, From
The Appointed Time Which Is Latin Praegn³Ns, Praegnant-, Variant
Now, That There Was A Genetic Of Praegn³S, From Gene-. Also Gen-.
Coding Set To Go Off As The Spell Meaning "To Give Birth, Beget".
Is Lifted, And That Is Happening 197. A S You See, It Spells Pre-
Now. Gnant, Pre Means "Before" And Gen
194. The Neteraat's Time Does "Birth" .
Not Have A "Then" Only A "Now", 198. So We Are Talking About The
Whereas Each Individual Is At The Manipulation Of The Genes Before
Point Of "Now", And Looks Back The Actual Birth, And Even Your
At Multiple "Thens" And Looks Bible Uses The Word Genesis, And
Forward To Multiple "Thens". Thus, You See Genes And Isis Right In It.
On Both Sides Of Present, You Find This Was Not The Beginning, Or
Past And Future. Then Is Then To The First Birth Of A Human Being
Come Or Then That Has Past. In On The Planet. It's All Symbolic.
Each Case, There Is A Now, An Amsu "Min" Was The God Of
Ever Existing Now And A Time For Fertility And Semen, Sperm.
Your Resurrection And 199. Yet, There Are Others Who
Reawakening Is Now. Would Deny That The Universe
Began With The Source, Huhi "Hu,
Question: Where Should We Huwa", The Eternal Breath, The
Begin? Wind Or Air That Proceeds
Outward From The Being As The
195. Let Me Begin By Telling You Breath.
Of The Beginning, That Is, Before
The Physical Ginn/Jinn Be-Ginn- Question: Why Is This?
Ing.
196. Hu-Mins, "Creative Fertility" 200. They'd Rather Accept The
Since Their Very Growth As Idea That The Sun, Planets, Stars,
Creation In Life, Have Always Which Are All The Same, And
Pondered Over The Creation Of Galaxies Came About By The

26
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Accidental Collision Of Atoms, Existed, By The Will Of Huhi As
Atum. Hu, (The Creative Force Of Will),
Who Gave Rule Of This Side Of
Question: This Is Not So? The Universe To Re, Making Him
The Highest Order Of Sem.
201. T He Creation Of The
Universe Could Not Have Been An
Accident; For One Reason And That Question: How Was This Done?
Is.. .That There Is Ma'at "Order"
Within The Nun "Chaos". 206. Cells And Atoms, Which
202. There Is Continuous And You Are One Of , Split Into Many
Consistent Order In The Universe, Things By Re's Command , And
Even The Apparant Mistakes And Such Is The Rule Of Life Nd
Deformities Are A Part Of The Energy, Khnum, The Clay
System. Fashioner, The Flesh Of Mortal.
207. As The Wheel Of Life Turns
In The Womb Of The Mother, And
Question: Is It Possible For A The Breath Of Life Enters Them, As
Chain Of Events To Occur By The Disc Of Dendera Spins In The
Accident? Universe For Each Person's
Appointed Time For Birth.
203. It Is Impossible For A Chain
Of Events To Have Occurred By Question: What About The
Accident The Same Way Each Account Of Creation As
Time, Year In And Year Out For Recorded In The Book Of
Many Thousands Of Years. Genesis?
204. In That Case, Accidents
Would Still Be The Rule In Our 208. The Account Of The
Universe And They Are Not. They Creation As Recorded In Chapters
Are Also A Part Of The System Of One And Two Of A Tablet, El's
Things. Torah, Genesis, As Taken From
The Elder Tablet, Enuma Elish,
Question: What Did Life Begin Would Seem To Imply A
With? Contradiction If Not Read With Full
Overstanding, That These Are
205. Like Everything Else, Life Physical Beings Pro-Creating
Began With One Thing In Mind: Physical Beings In Their Own Image
"To Be" And With This Thought And Like Themselves.
A Thing Became, And Impregnation

27
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Why Is This Not Clear And Nut Were Together, But Shu
To The World? Came In Between Them.

209. It's Due To The Fact That


These Two Chapters Contain The Question: How Does This Tie
Same Stories. I T Can Be Very Into Bible?
Confusing In Trying To
Comprehend The True Account Of 213. This Is The Separation Of The
Creation, If Read In The Wrong Heavens Above From The Heavens
Language Of Mistranslations, And Beneath In Genesis 1:6-7.
Without Right Knowledge. 214. Thus, The Separation Of The
Heaven And The Earth By A Strong
Question: What Must One Do? Wind Nef, As The Ancient Tama-
Re Called It.
210. The True Seeker After The
Facts, Not Motivated By Blind Faith
And False Religious Convictions, Question: Then What Does It
Would Have To Study The Egyptian Teach?
Mysteries Of Creation To See Where
It All Comes From In The Bible 215. That: This Geb And Nut
And Qur'an, And Not Just Accept Gave Birth To Four Children.
The Preachings Of Your Preacher, Asaru, (Osiris) Sutukh (Set), Aset
That It's Pantheism, The Worship (Isis), And Nebthoot (Nephthys).
Of Animal Headed Beings, Born 216. If You Look Closely At The
Out Of Eggs, And Based On Story You Will See Your Bible Story
Mythology. These Are Indeed Of Void And Darkness, (Genesis
Symbolic Rituals Based On Facts. 1:2-5) And The Coming Forth Of
Light, Because It Starts With Nun,
The Eternal Ocean That Filled The
Question: What Are The Stories Universe. And Make Note That A
In The Egyptian Mysteries? Portion Of Genesis 1:1 Was
Intentionally Taken Out. Most
211. The Ancient Egyptian Mystery People Are Not Informed That 6
Teaches It This Way: Atum Was Verses Of The Book Of Jeremiah
Head Of The Nine Ennead's, 4:23-28 Were Intentionally Taken
These Children Were Shu (Air) And Out Of Genesis 1:1. You Can See
Tefnut (Moisture). That This Was Inserted Into
212. They Created Geb (Earth) Jeremiah Because If You Remove
And Nut (Heaven). Originally Geb Jeremiah 4:23-28, You Will See
28
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
That The Text Itself Was Written Than 2000 Years Old. Native
Differently Than The Rest Of Americans, Mayas, Aztecs, Yorubans
Jeremiah. In My Translation Of El's From Nigeria And Africa, And The
Torah, I Am Re-Inserting Jeremiah Sumerians Had Their Anutu Or
4:23-28 Back Into Its Proper Place Anunnaqi, And The Ancient
In Genesis 1:1. Egyptians Had The Neteraat.
217. When The Great Winds 223. Many Of Them Were
Removed The Waters, The Waters Symbolic Of Nature As Sun Gods,
Subsided. Land Gods, And Water Gods, And
218. Then Land Appears (Genesis Many Were The Mortals Who
1:9), The Great Hill Or Mountain Became The High Priestess Or
On Which Stood The Great God Priest Of These Gods And Took
Atum, The Sun God. Over Their Names. The Same Thing
219. These Are The Ancient Happens In Your Bible.
Mysteries, And If You Look At 224. You Have The Heavenly
Your Genesis Story, There Was Void Host, You Have The Eloheem, The
And Darkness Upon The Face Of Serapheem, Or Cherubeem, The
The Deep (Genesis 1:2). Nephileems, The Ghibbore. All Of
220. There Is Your Massive These Are Terms Of Beings That
Amount Of Water And The Spirit Were Supernatural, And Are
Of God, The Roakh Or Wind Recorded As Ods, Ngels, Or Mighty
Moved Upon The Surface Of The Men, Or Even The New Testament,
Waters (Genesis 1:2). God Says Let Where A Being Came To Earth As
There Be Light (Genesis 1:3, John His Own Son, And His Own Self
1:4), And The Light Was The Spark And It Became Jesus Christ, God
Of Life That Shined In The Incarnate.
Darkness. 225. A Concept Borrowed From
221. Thus, The Original Seat Of The Hindus As Krishna Or An
God Head Was In The Darkness, Avatar, An Incarnation Of God In
Before The Light Of Chaos And Flesh. So The Gods Or God That
Confusion, And The Conflict Was Predate The Bible Are Many.
Born. 226. One In Particular That We
Speak Of Is Atum, One Of A Triad
Question: Who Was This God Of Sun Gods. Atum The Head Of A
That Predates The Bible God? Group Of Gods Who Incarnated As
Humans To Give You Geb And
222. There Were Many Gods And Nut, Who Gave Birth To The Four
Deities That Predated The Bible, Most Important Gods In Ancient
Which Is Recorded Not To Be More Tama-Re.

29
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Is This The Bible "Of Adam That God (Eloheem)
Adam And Eve, Cain And Abel Created Man (Adam) In The Likeness
Story? Of God (Eloheem) Made He Him".
231. In This Case Though Your
227. Yes. This Is Where It Comes English Translation, It Has The
From. In This Case Atum Becomes Name Adam In One Place, And
The Adam, And Osiris And Set Man In Another. In The Hebrew In
Becomes The Cain And Abel, Isis Both Cases The Word Adam Is
And Nephthys Becomes Aglimiya There, And It Clearly Implies More
And Lubuwda. Than One Individual. Even The
228. Cain Kills Abel, Or Set Kills Expression "Made He Him" Refers
Osiris, And A New Son Is Born To Man And Mankind As A Group.
Called Haru (Horus), Also Called 232. You Should Be Sure Not To
Re Harakhahte. In The Bible Case Eleviate Woman; Verse 2 States:
This Would Be Seth, Who Fathers "Male (Zakar) And Female
Enos, Which Means Humanity, Or (Nekaybaw) Created He Them And
Man. Blessed Them And Called Their Name
229. So It Is Quite Clear That The Adam In The Day When They Were
Story Of Genesis And The First Created".
Family Was Taken From The 233. It Is Clear Here That These
Egyptian Mysteries, The Text Or Adams Were In Actuality An
The Book Of The Earth, The Book Adamite, Group Or Tribe Of
Of The Netherworld And The Beings.
Amduat, As The Book Of The 234. Then Right In The Next
Sacred Chambers, Which Is Verse "This Adam Or Individual At
Intended For The Initiate, The This Time Tribe Lived 130 Years And
Select Into The Wonders Of The Begot A Son In His Own Likeness",
Beyond. And In This Case The "His" Clearly
Points Out An Individual As
Question: Is This Adam And Opposed To The Group.
Atum The Same In All Cases? 235. Then In Verse 5 It Becomes
The Group Adam Again Or The
230. No. Adam Is Mentioned As Rule Of This Tribal Name Adamite
An Individual, Whose Name Is For 800 Years More, And Therein
Kadmon In The Torah In One Begot Sons And Daughters.
Place As A Plural Or Group In 236. All The Days That Adam
Genesis 5:1-2, Where You Find Lived Were 930 Years And He Died.
"This Is The Book Of The Generations, 237. Again In Semetic Languages
With An "S" On The End Of It, He Or She Is Written As It.

30
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
238. It Is Referring To The Tribe, 243. This Was Written In A Way
Not The Individual. To Confuse The Religiously Blind.

Question: So Are Eves Also Question: Are You Saying Most


Called Adam? People Don't Overstand The
Story Of Adam And Eve?
239. Yes, According To The Bible.
The Name Eve Only Appears Twice 244. That's Exactly What I Am
In Genesis And Then Twice In The Proving, By Way Of The Scripture
New Testament. That They Believe In.
240. In Each Case Starting With 245. Most People Are In Fact
Genesis 3:20 Eve Is A Verb, Confused With What Is The
Meaning "Living" Or A Noun "Life" Difference Between The Breeding
And Is Something That The Of The Adama Project, And The
Adamites Call His Ishaw, Which Actual Birth Of The Adam And The
Means "Woman", Not Yahweh Or Eve Of Your Bible, And This Was
Eloheem, Adam Called Her Eve Done Intentionally As A Part Of
His Ishaw Or The Spell.
Female Counterpart To Ish, 246. There Were Many Eves, In
Meaning "Male". Fact One Of Ninti's Names Was
241. So The Females Of The Also Khawah Or Hawwah Which
Adamites Were Called Eves, And Means "Life" In Hebrew And
The Males Were Called Adam. The Arabic, Or Eve. The Sumerian
Gender Through Leadership Was Name Ninti Means "Lady Of The
Defined As Zakar And Nekaybaw, Rib, Or Lady Of Life".
Found In Genesis 5:2 As "Male And 247. You Can See Your Biblical
Female". Rib Story, And Her Name Eve As
Life Right Here.
Question: What Does This
Mean? Question: What Word Is Used
For Rib In The Bible?
242. It Means That You Have The
Word Ish And Ishaw For "Husband 248. The Word Used Is Tsalaw
And Wife" As Well As "Man And And Actually Means "Side, Rib".
Woman", And "Male And Female" In
The Torah. All Of These Terms Are Question: What Is This Referring
Simply Titles Of Groups And To?
Tribes.

31
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
249. It's Referring To A Blood Question: What Do You Mean,
Experiment Where Blood Was Fake People?
Removed From The Marrow Of The
Rib Bone, Or The Side Of The Body 254. Worst Than That, I Mean
By The Chemist Nergal Shar'etser Fake Intelligence, There Are People
To Breed Amongst The Adamites Bred To Think And Act A Certain
In An Attempt To Shape A Way. There Are Even The Insertion
Character. Of Chips In The Brain, And The
Nervous System That Can Be
Question: What Do You Mean By Controlled By Satellites Or Remote
Shaping A Character? Stations. It's Not New. It's Stolen
Technology, Or Shared Technology
250. The Many Experiments Being From Beings Who Wish To Control
Performed On The Creatures, All Those People On This Planet.
Animals And Reptilians Of The
Planet Earth Resulted In More Than Question: Is This Good Or Evil?
One Type Of Nature.
251. One Docile, And The Other 255. It Is Good To Those Who
Aggressive, One Agreeable, The Wish To Control Humans, And Evil
Other Disagreeable; So There Was To Those Humans That Will And
An Attempt To Breed Out The Are Being Controlled Right Now
Disagreeable Nature. Through Selection, And Multiple
Choice, And The Myth Of Free Will.
Question: Is That The Same As Question: Where Does Good And
Getting Rid Of Evil? Evil Come In?

252. You Could Say That Because, 256. In The Conflict The Humans
Scientists Today Are Performing Learn To Have What These Gods
Lobotomies And Other Brain Had Amongst Each Other. The
Surgeries, And They Have Conflict That Revelation 12:7
Succeeded In Isolating The Parts Of Shows A War Between The
The Brain Responsible For Certain Heavenly Host Or Angelic Beings In
Emotions, Likes, Dislikes, Rage, Egypt Called Neteraat, And In
Murder, And Even Skills. Sumeria They're Called Anutu.
253. These Experiments Have, 257. Amongst Them Were
And They Are Leading To Character Agreeable And Disagreeable Beings
Alteration And Choice Breeding. Of The Same Bloodline. Thus, Man
Was Made In Their Image And After
32
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Their Likeness. (Genesis 3:22) "And 262. In All Cases They Are Not
The Lord (Yahweh) God (Eloheem) Brothers, But The Rivalry, Ali And
Said Behold The Man (Adam) Is Become Abu Bakr, Even In The Islamic
As One Of Us To Know Good (Tobe, World It Exists, And The Egyptian
Agreeableness) And Evil (Ra'a Conflict Goes Back Even Before
Disagreeableness)". So These Adamites Them With Enlil And Enqi, Lil
Were Like Both The Agreeable "The Heavens", And Qi "The Earth".
Beings That Came Down Here, And
The Disagreeable Beings. Question: What Took Place At
258. For The Most Part, Though The Very Beginning?
They Did Wickedness And Evil As
Genesis 6:5 Clearly States: "And God 263. At The Very Beginning, That
(Eloheem) Saw That The Wickedness Is Before Genetic Breeding, Which
(Ra'a) Of Man (Adam) Was Great In Took Place In The Beginning Period
The Earth, And That Every Imagination Of Human Time, There Was A
Of His Thoughts (Makhashebeth) Of Black Print Of Creation And Then
His Heart Was Only Evil (Ra'a) After, A Cloning And Then
Continuously (Yowm, Daily)." Another Re-Construction Period.
259. So This Man Had Choice
And Chose To Follow In The
Footsteps Of The Disagreeable Question: What Is The
Beings. So Character Adjustments Difference Between Regular
Were Necessary. Time And Human Time?

Question: How Does This Effect 264. That's A Good Question,


The Bible Bloodline? Because Most Religious People
Overlook The Fact That Their Bible
260. They Gave Birth Through Gives The Impression That Adam
Cloning, And Grafting, And Genetic Was Created With The Planet,
Manipulation To The Families Of (Genesis 1:31).
The Bible Called The Chosen 265. And That This Creator Saw
People. Everything That He Had Made Was
261. So Throughout Your Bible Good, And Then Discusses The
And Qur'an, The Stories Of Creation Of The Heavens And The
Conflicting Brothers Continues, Earth, And The Creatures, The
Cain And Abel, Ishmael And Stars, The Sun, And Even The
Isaac, Jacob And Esau, Solomon Creation Of Man In His Own
And Adonijah, Moses And Aaron, Image.
Jesus And John The Baptist.

33
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
266. And Then In Genesis 2:1, It Gravity 19.32; Valence 1, 3., Was
Clearly States: "Thus The Heavens And Processed In The Precambrian Age.
Earth Were Finished And The Host Of
Them". Verse 4 Confirms It, "These Question: What Do Religious
Are The Generations Of The Heavens Scholars Say?
And The Earth, When They Were
Created In The Day The Lord God Made 270. When Religious Scholars, Be
The Earth And The Heaven". They Hebraic, Christian, Or Islamic
Agree That The Creation Of Adam
Question: So Are You Saying Is Not More Than 6000 Years Old,
That God Didn't Create The So Gold Had To Be In The Process
Planet Earth And The Sun And Of Forming Before Adam And Eve
The Moon And Stars And Man Were Born.
All In That Same Period Of 271. Thus, The Planet Predates
Time? Adam And Eve By Millions Of
Years, And Also Make Note Of The
267. Yes, There Is A Major Statement That The God Of The
Mistake If You Understand Right Bible Makes Literally "And The Gold
Genesis 2:11-12, Where It States: Of That Land Is Good". He
"The Name Of The First Is Pison, That Differentiates Good Gold From Bad
Is It Which Encompasses The Whole Gold, Which Means He Was Able
Land Of Havilah, Where There Is Gold". To Examine Gold To Make The
(12) "And The Gold Of That Land Is Decision, Rendering Him A
Good, There Is Bdellium And Onyx Scientist, A Minerologist.
Stone".
268. The Hebrew Word For Gold Question: What Do Modern Day
There Is Zawhab, That Is "Gold" Scientists Say About The Very
That Is Produced By Nature Within Beginning?
The Earth.
272. It Is Clear By The Gems, And
Question: And What Does That Minerals Of The Earth And Their
Have To Do With Time? Age, Anyone With A Scientific
Mind, Would Not Accept A 6000
269. Everything, Because Gold, Years Old Age For The Planet
Which Was Called Nub By The Earth.
Ancient Tama-Reans Has An 273. In Fact, At The Very
Atomic Number 79; Atomic Weight Beginning According To Scientists
196.967; Melting Point 1,063.0°C; Of This Day And Time, We Have
Boiling Point 2,966.0°C; Specific What Was Called "The Big Bang",
34
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Which Took Place Many Millions Of Can't Hear It, It Is A Big Bang To
Years Ago. Microscopic Existing Entities.
278. When Positive And Negative
Question: Is The Big Bang Charges Clash, Though You Don't
Theory True Or False? Hear It, It Is A Big Bang To Minute
Energy. So In Actuality The Big
274. Firstly, Make Note That Bang Is A Reality.
They, The Scientific Community
Refer To The Big Bang As A Question: But Is It "The" Big
Theory, And The Word Theory Bang, Or "A" Nother Big Bang?
Comes From The Late Latin
Theoria, From Greek, From 279. Just Another "Big Bang", As
Theoros, Meaning "Spectator": An Incident That Occurs And Re-
From Thea, A Viewing + -Oros, Occurs.
"Seeing".
275. Make Note That, Though Question: So There Is More Than
They Call It A Theory, They Say One Big Bang?
"Seeing Is Believing". When In
Actuality Hearing And Reading Is 280. Yes. As Things Come Into
Believing, And Seeing Is Knowing. Existence, Or Where Things
Become Somethings, The Sum Of A
Thing. A Thing Would Need
Question: Where Did They Get Another Thing To Bang Into To
The Word Theory From? Have A Big Bang.
281. Their Problem Is,
276. Their Word Theory As The Comprehending Matter And Anti-
Greeks Say Theoris Becomes Matter As The Things That Clash To
Thehos For God In Greek, Taken Bring About., Alternate Things.
From Taweret, The Tama-Rean
Goddess Of Women In Childbirth, Question: So What They Call It,
And This Birth Is Of The Sun (Son). Is True?

Question: So The Big Bang Is Not 282. It Is Untrue By Their Title.


A Theory? There Was No Single One "Big
Bang" As The Statement Would
277. Although They Call The Big Imply That Something Just Went
Bang A Theory, Contact Is A "Bang" Without A Reason Or Cause,
Reality, As The Sperm Hitting The Or Under Control, Direction Or
Ovum. Though, The Human Ear Command.
35
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So Then, The Original Solar System And Even Less
Black Dot Was Not Alone? Important In The Universe.
288. It Is Egotistical And Naive To
283. No, For It Existed In A State Think That No Other Intelligent
Of Existence. Life Exists In The Boundless
Universes, Except Here On The
Question: Which "Big Bang" Is Seventh Planet In, Third Planet
The Most Important? From Your Sun.

Question: Why Are We Taught


284. It Depends On The Beings
That?
That Is Affected By It.

Question: Which One Affects 289. Because The Luciferians And


Earth People? Reptilians Must Keep You Ignoring
True Scientific Data To Enforce
285. In Your Beginning, This "Big Religious Beliefs, And Keep You
Bang" Was Twenty Four Billion Worshipping Them, And In Their
Years Ago When Nibiru, A Craft Image, So As Not To Alarm The
Under The Control Of The God Within.
Neteraat Anunnagi Collided Into
Question: Do They Know These
The Planet Tamtu Or Tanen Called
Facts?
Tiamat And Qi, And Caused A
"Big Bang". 290. Indeed! They Do, And Of
The Many Bangs And The Biggest
Question: Was There One Before Bang. Their Bangs Created A
That One? Vibration, A Friction, That Results
In Sound. Each Additional Bang
286. Indeed! There Were Others. Had A Different Time And Distance
This Incident Was Not At The Very And Magnitude That Created A
Beginning Of All Things, But In The Harmony Of Music Heard By The
Beginning Of An On-Going Event. True Listener Of Om Or Aum. It
Vibrates At A Rate Of 144, And It Is
Question: What On-Going The Letter "D" Of The 1st Center
Events? "C" Octave Bass. Its Color Is Green.

Question: So Which Is The


287. As You Know, This Planet "Biggest Bang"?
Earth Is Just One Of Many In This

36
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
291. Seventy Six Trillion Years Question: Who Or What Is Hu?
Ago, A Small Dot Or Nuqta
Exploded, And This Was Called Th 296. In Egypt, Huhi , Which Is
E "Big Bang." Hu, Or Huwa Was Considered
The Personification Of
Question: What Caused Its "Utterance", With Which The
Explosion? Creator Ptah "Ta", Who Was
Regarded As Creator Of The
292. T His Event Still Happens To Physical World And Deity Of
This Day. Technology Done Its Work.
293. It Is A Result Of The 297. Hu Was The Utterance Or
Expanding Then Collapsing Of A Tone, The Vibration And Pulsation
Universe. I N Your Case, This Of Existence And That Which
Universe Which Caused The Comes To Existence Within The
Explosion Of Positive And Negative Sacred Breath.
Forces, Causing The Negative And 298. T Hose Things Made, That
Positive Forces To Clash Into Each Manifest Within Creation, True
Other, Matter And Anti-Matter. Growth. Hu Is That Tone From
Which The Creator Calls Things
Question: What Happens In This Into Being, With Hika And Sia.
Event? 299. The Original Triad Of Ptah,
294. H1-Hydrogen Becomes He- Hika And Sia . Huhi Is One Of
Helium, From E1 -Ether To E2 - The Creative Forces Of Will That
Ether Two, Onto O8 -Oxygen- Constantly Accompanies Re, "Ra"
The Sun Deity, The Source Of Life,
Liquid, And E8 -Ether Liquid Gas. The Sustainer Of Life, The Provider
Of Sustenance In This World, The
Question: Does All This Just Eternal.
Happen By Chance? 300. This Highest Triad Is The
Triangle With The Eye Of Re In
295. No, It Is A Master Plan With The Center, And The Three Points
Countless Experiments. One Such Of The Triangle Represents Atum
Being Is Referred To As Hu, The "The Undifferentiated One", In The
Creative Force Of Will And This Creation.
Entity Dwells Outside Of This Time 301. The Full Disc Appearance Of
Zone. The Sun In The Morning. Atun "The
Unique One" In Life.
302. The Full Sun Disc At The
Highest Point Of The Day.
37
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
303. Amun "The Hidden One," At 309. So, Huhi, Hika, And Sia
Death, Sun At Its Last Full Disc Are A Triad Principle Of Godship,
Before Setting, And Making It The Neteraat , Responsible For The
Through The Underworld, Or Consistant And Perpetual Pattern Of
Netherworld. That Which Manifests, In That
304. These Are The Sacred Names Which Is Created And Made, And
Of The Three Suns Shamash, Afsu That Tone Or Utterance Is Aum,
And Utu Of Sumeria, And Hu, Which Later Was Rendered As Kun,
Huhi, Huwa, Is The Etheric As In Existence Or Be.
Counterparts Of The Nether
World. Question: How Is That Possible?
305. T Hese Beings Once Dwelled
In This Realm And Now They Are 310. If You Live On Earth, And
Guiding Forces And Controlling You Are 93 Million Miles Away
Forces From Beyond This World, From The Sun, And You Have An
Working As The Involuntary, To Orbit Of Rotation And Evolving,
The Voluntary In The Human That Becomes Your Time Zone.
Body. 311. Taking 365 Days For Your
Planet To Safely Revolve Around
Question: Who Or What Is Your Sun, And All Of The Times
Hika? Calculated As Days, Weeks, Months,
Years, Centuries, Decades, Are
306. Hika Is An Within That Time Zone. The Days
Anthropomorphic Personification Subdivide And The Subdivisions
Of Miracles, Magic, And The Subdivide.
Manipulation Of Elements, And
Chemicals Of Nature. Question: So This Being You Call
307. Hika Is One Of The Two Huhi Lives In Another Time
Constant Companions Of Re. The Zone?
Other Being Sia.
312. That Is Absolutely Correct. If
Question: Who Or What Is Sia? You Live In The Sirius (Sibtu)
Orion (Sahu), You Have A Separate
308. Sia Is The Personification Of Time Zone. In That Case It's Each
Perception, Shape, Form, Pattern Earth Day Is Equivalent To One
Who Work Together In Huhi With Thousand Years.
Hika, And Makes The World Of
Created Things Possible.

38
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Have The Luciferians 318. As You Can See Miniature Is
And The Reptilians Interfered Speaking About The Red Glow Of
With Our Time Zones? The Rising Sun Re In Tama-Re
"Egypt". Thus It Would Be First,
313. Yes They Have! That's Why Then The Second Event Would Be
They Keep Altering The Calendars The Appearance Of The Sun Re.
And Shifting Time, Adding 319. So, A Minute Would Be The
Moments, And Removing Moments, First, And A Second Would Follow.
Leap Years And The Likes. 320. You Have Been Deceived
314. In Fact, To Deceive You, And Tricked Out Of Time. As The
They Gave You A "Second" Before Tick And Tock Of The Clock.
A "First". You Should Have A 321. They Never Teach You About
"First" Before You Get To A The Space In Between, Which Is
"Second". Time, That Is The First.
322. That Makes It Hard For You
Question: And We Don't? To Overstand Just How Hu Exists
As The Creative Force Of All Will,
315. No, Just Think, If I Ask You In Another Time Zone, Or Parallel
The Shortest Period Of Time, You World, Where Beings Do Exist. All
Will Refer Me To A "Second", And A Part Of All, As A Part Of El
Say There Are 60 Seconds In One Kuluwm, The All As All.
Minute.
Question: Is This Earth's God
316. As You See Minute Is Min,
Concept?
The Deity Of Fertility And
Miniature. So, The Miniature Should
Be Before The Second. 323. No, Because Religious People
Of The Planet Earth All Place God
Question: What Is The Meaning In A Heaven, Or On A Throne, Or
Of The Word Miniature? In A Person, Rock, Statue, Or
Plasmatic Form. All Of These
317. The Word Miniature Is From Entities Would Exist Within All.
The Italian Miniatura, Meaning 324. Luciferians Have Created
"Illumination Of Manuscripts, God In Their Image And After
Small Painting", From The Word Their Likeness In Order To Worship
Miniare, Meaning "To Illuminate," And Praise Themselves, And
From Latin Miniare, Meaning "To Created The Devil In The Image
Color Red", From Minium, Meaning And The Likeness Of The
Red Lead. Reptilians, Serpent People.

39
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
325. Thus, Your God And Your Or Something, From H1
Devil Concept And Your Religious Hydrogen, The First Element On
Ignorance On Time, Existence, And To - Es, The 99th Element, Called
Good And Evil. Einsteinium, These Are Your
Natural Elements, That Give Way
Question: So 76 Trillion Years To Man Made Elements. All Of
Ago Was The Very Beginning? This Makes Up The Realm Of
Matter, Of The Black Universe
326. That Was Your Very Consisting Chiefly Of Strong
Beginning. Radiation.

Question: What Is The Meaning


Question: So, This Is Creation As Of Radiation?
We Know It?
330. The Word Radiation Comes
327. Yes. A Ccording To What Is From The Latin Radiare, Radiat-,
Recorded By Your Scientist And Meaning "To Emit Beams", From
Religious Men. T His Small Side Of Radius, "Ray", From Whence They
The Universe Where Zeles And Bi- Get The Word Ray, As In Sun Rays.
Aps Became Atoms, Began As A This Was Taken From Re, Which Is
Result Of An Explosion To Become Properly Pronounced Ray, Written
An Explosion Called The "Big In Hieratic And Demotic As Re,
Bang" By Those Who Don't Really The True Dark Existence In Which
Know, For The One They Refer To All Light And Chaos Was Born And
Actually Occurred 13 Billion Years This Radiation Formed A Rapidly
Ago. However The Original Big Expanding Sphere Called "The
Bang Occured 76 Trillion Years Primordial Fireball."
Ago . 331. The Symbol Of The Iris Of
328. At Least That's What They Re, The Ball Of Fire As The Eye
Record To Enforce The Law Of Opened From The World Of
Ignorance And Keep The Spell In Supreme Balancement, Darkness, To
Power. Let In The Light To Create The
Images. Thus, The Symbol Of The
Question: Then What Sun With Rays, Or The Eye Of Re.
Happened? This Is The Birth Of Your Sun.

329. I Mmediately After This


Explosion, This Half, That Is The Question: Then What Happened?
Sum Of Things, Known As Matter,
40
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
332. After Thousands Of Years, 340. And Star Is From Ster As In
Most Of The Fireball Changed Into Dis-Aster, A Disc Shaped Star,
Matter That Consisted Chiefly Of Disaster. An Occurrence Causing
Hydrogen ([H] [1] [1.0079]). Widespread Destruction And
333. It Also Includes A Small Distress; A Catastrophe.
Amount Of Helium ([He] [2]
[4.00260]), The Second Element, Question: So, The Word Star
And Other Elements. H1 Is Not Means Disaster?
The Smallest Or Lightest Element.
334. Today, Faint Radio Waves 341. Yes. Look Real Closely At The
Are All That Remain Of The Word Disaster. You Have Dis-
Original Fireball, Re , Whose Tone Aster, And Aster Means Star.
Vibrated As Aum (Sun). 342. The Word Star, Meaning
335. Before This Sun Called By Disaster Was Taken From The
The Babylonians "Shamash", Babylonian Name Ishtar, Because
Became A Ball Of Gas Containing She Caused Many Wars And
Hydrogen And Helium, It Was An Disasters Between The Sons Of
Active Planet Called Aum , Enlil And The Sons Of Engi, For
Containing All Of The Planets, Her Dislike Towards Murduk.
Moons And Satellites Which Make 343. Ishtar, Whose Name Is
Up This Solar System. Inanna Accused Murduk For The
336. Like The Fireball, The Death Of Dammuzi, And
Matter Continued To Move Away Sentenced Him To Death In The
From The Point Of The Explosion. Great Ekur, Also Called The Great
In Time, The Matter Broke Apart In Pyramid, Where He Was Buried
Huge Clumps. Alive. Enki Pressured Inanna To
337. The Clumps Eventually Relent, And She Agreed To Release
Became Galaxies. Him.
338. Small Clumps Within The 344. Inanna Was Summoned To
Galaxies Formed Stars, From The The Council Of The Great
Babylonian Female Deity Ishtar , Anunnagi, Where She Repented To
Also Written Ashteroth , As Ish- The Anunnagi, For All Of Her
Star , As In Female Star. Wrong Doings, She Apologized For
339. An D The Word Star Is All Of The Conflicts That She Had
From The Middle English Sterre, Started Between Brothers And
From Old English Steorra, Stellar, Sisters, And She Promised That She
Stellate; Constellation, From Latin Would Not Deceive Her Family
Stella, Star. Again. Ishtar Was Granted
Forgiveness.

41
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
345. Thus, She Became All In One, The Goddess Of
Worshipped As A Great Deity And Emotions, Energy In Motion, The
Her Symbol Was That Of War And Sun As A Star. This Is The Light
Peace. That Bred The Chaos Or Confusion,
346. She Became The High Con-Fusion, Against Unity.
Priestess Of The Temple Of Ishtar,
Where She Was Worshipped As The Questions: It Seems Like, Many
Universal Mother Of All Living Of The Characters In Ancient
Things. Times Are Associated With
347. She Became Known As Symbols.
Venus, Isis, Aset, Aphrodite,
Lakshmi, Rhiannon, And To The 352. Yes. As You Can See Many
Hebrews She Became Esther, Who Of The Characters In Ancient Times
Was The Seat Of Redemption Are Synonymous With The Sun
Between King Ahasheroth And The Shamash, A Person, The Moon
Hebrews. Luna, A Person, The Stars Ishtar, A
348. Note: In Your Bible Or Person. Even The Planets Were
Torah, The Book Called The Book Named After People Uranus As The
Of Esther Is The Only Book That Person Anu, Neptune As The
Does Not Contain The Word God Person Engi, And Jupiter As The
Anywhere In It. It Is A Re-Written Person Anshar.
Play Of The Story Of Ishtar, With 353. The Events Of Creation As
Hebrew (Haribu) Inserts. Found In Your Holy Books Are
349. Her Role As Aset "Isis" Symbols Of Births Of Ancient
Records Her As Deceiving Her Beings Who Came To This Planet
Great Grandfather Re "Ra", Into And Mixed With The Primordial
Giving Her His Secret Name, Where Beings Who Grew Here.
She Poisoned Him With A Snake, 354. One Symbolic Birth Became
Until He Told Her His Big Sacred An Embryo Or As A Daughter Cell
Name. Began To Divide And Grow Into
350. His Small Name Was Elul, Individual Life Forms, A Well
Which Yielded The Name El, El Thought Out Plan Of
Eloh, Allah, Eloheem, Extraterrestrials, Or Planets, Plan-
Allahumma, And Became The E.T.
Suffix Of The Angelic Beings As In 355. This Incident Or At Least
Miyka'el, Gabriy'el, Rapha'el, One Clump Became A Group Of
Uri'el. Planets, Your Solar, Solar Means
351. She Became Known As The Soul, Or Sol=Sun And Ar From
Goddess Of War, Hate And Love, Arinna, The Canaanite Female Deity

42
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Of The Sun, From Where You Get From Greek To Latin, To English.
The Word Arena From. But You Must Make The Distinction
356. So You Get Sol-Arinna, Two Between Greek Mythology And
Of The Great Suns Aum, And Sal, Religious Theology That Uses Greek
Which Later Became Shamash. And As A Language.
You Have A System Which Is
Systematic. Question: What Is Mythology
357. The Galaxies Are Still And Religious Theology?
Moving Away From One Another
And Galaxies Comes From The 363. The First, Mythology As You
Greek Galatea, "A Sea Nymph, A Can See Deals With Myths.
Cyclops." 364. The Word Mythology Is From
358. Polyphemus Was In Love The French Mythologie, From Late
With Her. She Rejected Him In Latin Mþthologia, From Greek
Favor Of A Mortal Shepherd Muthologia, Meaning "Story-Telling":
Named Acis. Muthos, Story + -Logia, -Logy.
359. When Polyphemus 365. As You Can See It's All About
Discovered Them In Flagrante Telling Stories, Or Causing You To
Delicto (Sexual Intercourse), He Store What They Tell You In Your
Lost What Little Temper He Heart And Mind As True. When In
Normally Had And Dropped A Actuality They Are The Greatest
Rock On Acis. Stories Ever Told.
360. Poor Acis Went To Pieces 366. Also You Hear, Don't Tell
(Big Bang). Galatea Fled Into The Stories, A Term Meaning "Don't
Sea (Whirling Galaxy). Acis Was Lie". Well Mythology Is Just That.
Transformed Into A River (Milky The Absence Of Facts Or Proof,
Way) And He Joined Her. And Founded On Belief.
367. As For Theology, It's From
Question: Are You Saying That The Middle English Theologie, From
This Greek Story Is Really Old French, From Latin Theologia,
Symbolic Of The Creation Of From Greek: Theo-, Theo- + -Logia, -
The Universe? Logy, And Means Opinions About
Greek Deities, Borrowed From The
361. Yes. As You Can See, The Egyptian Deity Theoris, A Goddess
Rock Dropped In The Sea Is A Of Women In Childbirth,
Symbol Of A Galaxy. Acis Going Protectress Of Babies.
Into Pieces, Was The Big Bang. 368. As All Based On The Birth Of
362. You See, The Words Are Christ By The Blessed Mother Mary,
The Tricks, And The Languages

43
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Whom They Claim Was A Virgin Question: So Language Is The
And Protected By Angels. Trick?
369. None Of This Is Confirmed
To Be Factuality. 2. Yes, Language Is The Trick And
370. Thus, The Grand Plan Of The Trap. Example: Starting
Deception Is Based Around Several Backwards, The Last So-Called Holy
Trick Words, Faith, Belief, Theory, Book To Monotheism Is The
Theology, Myths, Mythology, Qur'an, Called In English Koran.
Folklores, Tales, Stories, Which Are
The Foundation Of The Sacred Question: Can You Explain
Word, "Religion". What The Indo-Euro Arabs,
371. Religion Is From Middle Who Called Themselves Muslim
English Religioun, From Old French Scholars' Games Are?
Religion, From Latin Religie, Religien-,
Perhaps From Religere, Meaning "To
3. Yes. Their Game Is They Totally
Tie Fast".
Ignore The Language That It Was
372. They Must Bind Your Mind,
Revealed In, And Created A New
Your Heart, Your Soul And Your
Language Called Al 'Arabiya Fus-
Spirit To Control You, And To
Ha, Which Would Translate As
Suppress The God That Is You,
Classical Arabic.
Waiting To Come Forth.
Question: What Made What
They Created Different From
Scroll Two
The Original?
The Importance Of Language
4. They Added Dots, Vowels, And
(19x8=152) Advance Grammar, Something That
Did Not Exist To The Inhabitants
Of Arabia, El Ghor Its Original
Question: How Important Is The Name.
Language?
Question: Can You Give Us An
Take A Look At The Very Word Example?
Spell, To Put A Spell On A Person
Or To Spell The Word. Those Most 5. Yes, Of Course, Being I Was
Literate Are In Actuality Those Most Also A Muslim And Speak Fluent
Ignorant. Arabic, It Was One Of The Schools
We Passed Through On Our Path
To God-Hood, Neteraat. So You
44
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
See, When In The Qur'an 44:58, Learn The Classical Arabic Of The
19:97 It States That It Was Sent Muslim World Today. It's A Lifetime
Down To Muhammad In His Own Study.
Lisaan, "Tongue", Which Would Be 10. Most Muslims Cannot
"Dialect", As Opposed To Lugha, Understand What They Are Reading,
Which Would Mean "Language", When They Read This New Qur'an
That Was The First Trick. In Classical Arabic.
6. They Altered It, From 11. The Arab World Is Broken Up
Muhammad's Clan, That Is Quraiysh Into Hundreds Of Dialects And
(Quran Chapter 107) Dialect, To Tongues, That Most People Think Is
The National Language. And Then Arabic When In Fact It Is Not, It Is
Altered That. Tribal Dialects, With Small Bits Of
Arabic In It, Which Makes It
Question: You Mean They Impossible For Them To
Altered The Holy Qur'an? Understand What The Qur'an Is
Saying.
7. Well, I Wouldn't Call It Holy.
But Yes, The First Thing They Did Question: What Would Be The
Was Added Chapters (Suwrah), Purpose In Doing This?
Sections (Manzil), Verses (Ayats),
And Even Parts (Juz). In Doing All 12. Mind Control, Purpose
Of This, They Were Able To Control, Emotional Control, By
Deceive The Reader. Dependency On Carefully Selected
Scholars And Learnt Men, Through
Question: Shouldn't This Have Faith And Belief Without
Improved The Quality Of It? Substantiated Facts. This Is The
Foundation Of Judaism, Christianity
8. No, Not If You Say It's From And The Islamic Religions, Iman,
Allah, The Lord Of All The Worlds, "Faith" Facts, Confirmations Are
And Claim That It Has No Flaws In Not Needed.
It, No Mistakes, Cannot Be Altered
Or Changed, And Is Guarded By Question: This Control Is A Part
Allah Himself As Al Hafiz. Of The Hypnotic Spell?

Question: What Was The 13. Yes, And It's Called Religion,
Difference? And At The End Of That Road,
They Have Taken You Off The
9. You Had To Be Extremely Original Path, Millah Abram, "The
Educated And Very Literate To Rites That Abraham Was Taught,
45
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
And Followed As A Chaldean, And Prostrated Before Their Priest
Which Would Have Been A (Genesis 23:7); "And Abraham Stood
Babylonian Or Sumerian, Before He Up, And Bowed Himself To The People
Converted To Din, That Became Of The Land, Even To The Children Of
Monotheistic Religion. He Became Heth." Heth Was The Second Son
The Patriarch Of The Worship Of Of Canaan.
The One Lord, God, Baal, Who In 17. Now In Genesis 24:3, 37
Time Changed Into Adonai, And Abraham Is Being Warned Against
Even Eloh, Allah, Which Is Why The Canaanites, Hyksos In Tama-
They, Monotheistic Believers Use Re.
The Lord. Be They Jew, Christian Or 18. Before Abraham's Fall From
Muslim. Grace, Anu Was The Most High
God, Called Elyon El.
Question: So What Was The
Religion Of The People Between Question: Anu Is The Original
Adam And Abraham? God Of The Bible?

14. All The Families Of The Bible 19. Yes, Above All The Other
That Preceded Abraham Were Gods, And All The Seed Of The
Worshippers Of Anu. Mesopotamian Utnafishtim, Called
15. Those Were His Isles, Or Noah And Adafa, Called Enoch In
Abodes Or Cities That Made Up Their Bible And Idriys In Their
Those Generations And Sons Of Qur'an Were Loyal To Anu.
Noah, The Mesopotamian, Whose
Real Name Is Utnafishtim. The True Question: Then What Happened?
Story Of The Flood Can Be Found
In Tablets Called The Gilgamesh 20. They Turned Away And
Epics, And Noah's Son, Ham's Sons Famine Struck Their Land. So, They
And On Down To Abraham. The Went To Baal Because Of The
Flood Is Also Recorded In Tama- Famine In Their Own Land To
Re, "Egypt". Worship Baal, The Fallen Son Of
Enlil, Who Himself Was An Adonai
Question: Is Abraham " Master", From Adon A Lesser
Responsible For Those Who Deity Than The Yahwehans.
Turned Away From Anu? 21. You Have Tammuz, The Son
Of Ishtar, Appointed As The One
16. Yes, Abraham Himself Fell Yahweh Over The Seed Of Seth,
From Anu's Grace, And He And You Had Baal, Son Of Enlil
Worshipped Ba'al With The Hittites And Ninlil, Who Had Fallen.
46
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
25. And The Word Being Used
For Confederate To Imply That
Question: Who Was This Baal? Abraham Was A Constituent With
These Amorites, Who Are The Sons
22. This Baal, Also Called Hadad, Of Canaan Is The Name Of The
Or Adad, Baal-Zebub, Beelzebub Deity Ba'al, Which The Children Of
And Teshub Was The Deity Of Israel Turned And Worshipped
Storm, War And Fertility And To (Judges 2:13). "And They Forsook The
The Phoenicians, And Ugariteans He Lord (Yahweh), And Served Baal And
Was Known As The Deity Of Good Ashtaroth (Ishtar)."
Harvests. Baal Was Merely A Title
That Signified "The God", "The Lord", Question: Is This Why The
Or "The Owner", And Was A Term Children Of Abraham Turned
Applied To The Chief Or Ruler Of Away From Anu?
A Group. His Spouse Was Baalath,
"The Lady". 26. Yes, The Children Of
23. For Example: The Baal Of Abraham Turned Away From The
Tyre Was Melkarth, The Baal Of Worship Of The Seed Appointed By
Harran Was Sin, The Moon Deity, Anu, Tammuz And Turned And
The Baal Of Heaven Was The Sun Worshipped The Seed Appointed By
God. There Were As Many Baals In Ishtar, Baal. Abraham Was A Part
Asia As There Were Horuses In Of This Until Murduk, As
Egypt. Melchizedek Brought Him Back To
24. So Abraham Went To The The Worship Of Anu, Who The
Land Of The Canaanites To Torah Calls Elyon El, "The Most
Worship Their Deity Baal During High God", Which Is The Exact
The Time Of The Famine In Hopes Translation Of The Name Anu.
That He Could Bring Them Harvest (Genesis 14:18-19). "And Melchizedek
By Bringing Them Rain, Thus He King Of Salem Brought Forth Bread And
Did Bow To Their God. Abraham Wine: And He Was The Priest Of The
Became A Confederate With Them. Most High God (Elyon 'El). And He
(Genesis 14:13) "And There Came Blessed Him, And Said, Blessed Be
One That Had Escaped, And Told Abram Of The Most High God, Possessor
Abram The Hebrew; For He Dwelt In Of Heaven And Earth: And Blessed Be
The Plain Of Mamre The Amorite, The Most High God, Which Hath
Brother Of Eshcol, And Brother Of Aner: Delivered Thine Enemies Into Thy Hand.
And These Were Confederate (Ba'al) And He Gave Him Tithes Of All".
With Abram." 27. And In Fact, Chapter 15
Clearly States Abraham Is Now

47
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Being Warned Against These Same Question: What Do You Mean By
Amorites Who He Worshipped The That?
God Baal With. (Genesis 15:13-21).
30. Why I Bring That Up Is,
Question: Who Brought Before The Qur'an, Going
Abraham Back? Backward, You Find The New
Testament, Translated From The
28. Abraham Had Been Brought Original Aramic Into Greek And
Back By Murduk (Genesis 14:22) Latin.
Son Of Engi, Called Ab, To The 31. Two Languages Totally
Worship Of Enlil, Called Elul, One Incapable Of Expressing The
Of The Anutu, The Name Of The Original Phoenician, Accadian,
Anunnagi, Before Coming To Earth. Ugaritic, Aramic, Ashuric, Chaldean,
Enlil Gave Them To Worship Anu And Of Course Nuwaupic, The
Called Millah Abram, Later Became Language Of The Gods And The
Bereth Millah To The Hebrews, Language Of Nimrod.
And Millah Ibrahiym To The
Muslims, As Opposed To The Question: What About The
Worship Of Baal And Dina, Which Bible?
Became Din In Moses' Torah And
Diyn In Muhammad's Qur'an. Dana 32. You Mean, The Torah, Five
From Where They Get Din And Books Of Moses, Or The Old
Diyn Is Also Dono , Don , The Testament? The Latin And Greek
Celtic Wife Of Beli, Which Is Wife And English Are Poor Translations.
Of Baal, Or From Dun, Meaning 33. Let's Take A Look At The
"Brown". Torah, Which Has Been Taken Out
Of The Cuneiform Rendered Into
Question: How Is This Deception The Phoenician, And Then What Is
Used? Being Called Hebrew, And Further
Into Modern Hebrew Languages,
29. The Whole Deception Is Incapable Of Expressing What The
Carried On To This Day By People Original Tablets Of The Anunnagi,
Not Overstanding The Original That The Bible Was Plagiarized
Languages That The People Before From, Were Saying.
Abraham Spoke. They Believed
That Hebrew And Arabic Of Today
Are The Original Ancient Question: Where Is This Story
Languages. Spoken Of?

48
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
34. This Story Is Expressed Clearly Pre-Dates Hebrew, Arabic, Latin,
In Their Bible. Where Barashiyth Greek, And English.
(Genesis), Chapter 10, Which Is
Talking Pre-Hebrew, Is Discussing Question: What Are The
In Verse 5, "By These Were The Isles Languages That Were Being
('Iy) Of The Gentiles (Goyee), Divided Spoken Here?
In Their Lands (Ereth), Everyone After
His Tongue (La-Shown), After Their 39. The Languages That Were
Families In Their Nations." Being Spoken Here Are Ugaric,
35. Note: That The Aramic Word Akkadian, Hieratic, Ashuric, And
Being Used For Isles Is Iy, Aramic.
Pronounced As E, The Sumerian 40. You Find These Languages
Word For "Abode, House" And Even Mentioned By Name In Verses 8-11,
Misused For "Temple", But In Of Genesis Chapter 10. Even The
Actuality Means "The Coast Land". Name Of The Great City, Of That
36. You Have Written In The Great Master Builder Nimrod Is
Ancient Tablets, The Name Of The Mentioned Calneh, Which
Abode Or Coast Land Of Anu, Translates As "Fortress Of Anu", In
Which Included Many Cities, Called The Land Of Shinar.
E-Anna, "House Of An". An Is
Another Name For Anu. Question: What And Where Is
37. E-Anna Is Also Called The This Place Calneh "Fortress Of
Pure Sanctuary. Also When The Anu?
Gods Assembled On The Planet
Earth They Met At Enlil's Court At 41. Calneh, Nimrod's Personal City
Niffur (Nippur), A City Given To Was One Of The Cities In The
Enlil And Dedicated To Him, And Great Kingdom. You Had Babel,
The Main Temple In It Was Called Or Bab-El "Doorwary To El" Which
E-Kur, "Mountainous House Or Was One Of The Cities, Erech
Abode". Another, Akkad Another, Calneh
Another, All In The Land Of
Question: What Is The Shinar.
Implication Here?

38. The Implication Here Is That Question: Where Is This


People On The Planet Earth All Had Mentioned In The Bible?
Different Tongues, In Their
Different Nations And In Their 42. Genesis 10:10 Clearly Says
Different Families. I Repeat, This "And The Beginning Of His Kingdom
49
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Was Babel, And Erech, And Accad, His Family. These Are The
And Calneh, In The Land Of Shinar". Worshippers Of The One God,
So The Great City Of Nimrod Is Neb "Tammuz", Called Yahweh,
Here Mentioned. Genesis 4:26, The Descendants Of
43. As The Verses Continue From Adam's Son, Seth.
12 Onto 20, The Sons Of The Sons
Of The Sumerians, Are Mentioned Question: What Of The Sons Of
As The Sons Of Noah, Utnafishtim, Adam's Son Cain, Who And
Which Includes Ham, Sudan (Ta- What Were They?
Nehisi), Cush, Ethiopia (Aksum),
Mizraim, Egypt, Phut, Libya, 47. Well, According To Your
Canaan, (Genesis 10:6), And Even Torah Or Bible, When Cain Was
In Genesis 10:13 It Goes Further Driven Out Of Gan, "The Enclosed
With The Sons Of Mizraim, Ludim, Garden Of Delight".
Anamim, Lehabim, Naphtuhim,
Pathrusim, And Casluhim, And Question: Just Where Was This
From Him Came Philistine And Gan?
Caphtorim.
48. Well, The Story Of The
Creation Of A Man Called Adam As
Questions: Who Are The Sons Of Recorded In The First Chapter Of
Canaan, Son Of Ham And Genesis Gives You Direction, But
Haliyma? You Must Read Chapter Two.
49. But First Genesis 1:28, Says
44. From Canaan Came Sidon, That A Group Of Beings Called
Heth, Amor, Girgash, Hiviy, Jebus, Eloheem Who Had Created A Man
Arkiy, Siniy, Arvad, Zemar, And In His Image And In The Image Of
Hamath. The Eloheem, Created He Him. A
45. These Canaanites Dwelled In Single Person.
Gerar Unto Gaza, On Into Sodom 50. Then It Says "Male And Female,
And Gomorrah, And Admah And Created He Them", And Then A
Zeboim And Lasha. Group Of Beings, From That
Single's Gene, Ordered Them To
Question: Who Are These Have Sex, "Be Fruitful", Have
People? Children "Multiply", And Replenish
"Fill The Planet Earth", And Subdue
46. These Are The People That It "Spread Over The Planet Earth".
Made Up These Nations, That Had
Everyone In His Own Tongue, After
50
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So This Is The 54. Yes, The Book Of Revelation
Beginning Of Humans On Earth? 12:7 States: "And There Was War
(Polemos) In Heaven, Michael The
51. Absolutely Not. And We Will Serapheem, And His Messengers
Explain. When You Get To (Angelos) Fought Against The Dragon,
Chapter 2:1, It Clearly States, "Thus The Cherubeem, And The Dragon Fought
The Heavens And The Earth Were And His Messengers (Angelos)." So
Finished", And All Of The Host Of There You Have Two Sets Of
Them." Angels, Agreeable, And
52. The Word For Heavens There Disagreeable, And They Had A War.
Is Shamayim, "Places Up There". The
Word For Earth Is E-Reth, Simply
"Earth". The Word For Host "Saw- Question: So, These Angels Both
Baw", Meaning "An Organized Army Had A Message To Bring If They
Of Beings", Often Called Angels, Were Messengers?
Which Comes From The Greek
Angelos, Simply Meaning 55. Yes. There Is Obviously Life
"Messengers", Having Nothing To Do Throughout The Universe And They
With Spirit Beings With Wings And Were Spreading Their Messages,
Halos, But Rather With Those Who Which Resulted In The Conflict In
Warred Above, Up There, Before The Heavens. This Did Not Just
Coming Here. Happen Before The Earth, But
While The Earth Was Existing There
Question: So These Sawbaw, Was Conflict Between These
"Heavenly Hosts" Or Warriors Heavenly Host.
Were Gods' Own Angels?
Question: How Do We Know
53. That Is Correct According To That?
Religion. Two Major Groups Had
Conflict Before The Creation Of 56. Because It Says In Revelation
Man On Earth. They Were 12:8, "And Prevailed Not, Neither Was
Serapheem, "Agreeables" And There Any Place Found Anymore In
Cherubeem "Disagreeables". Heaven." The Word For Heaven
Being Used Here Is Orion
(Ouranos), A Specific Star
Question: Is Not This Mentioned Constellation. So, These Beings
In The Book Of Revelations? Were Having What Is Called A Star
Wars In A Specific Place In Space.

51
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: But How Does This Question: How Did These
Explain The Earth Existing At Eloheem Feel About This?
This Time?
61. Well, That's What Is
57. Revelation 12:9 States: "And Interesting, If You Read Verse 6 It
The Great Dragon Was Cast Out, That Says: "And It Repented (Nawkham)
Old Serpent Called The Devil, And Satan Meaning Was Sorry, Or Regretted The
Which Deceiveth The Whole World Lord (Yahweh) That He Had Made Man
(Oikoumene). He Was Cast Out Into Adamites On The Earth, And It Grieved
The Earth (Ge) And His Angels Was (Awsab, Displeased) Him At His Heart
Cast Out With Him." (Leb, Physical Heart)," And In
58. So, If They're Being Accused Answer To Your Question, Make
Of Deceiving The Whole Planet Note That It Changed From
Earth, The Earth Must Have Existed Eloheem In Verse 5 To Yahweh In
When This War Was Still Going On, Verse 6, For One Of The Eloheems
Though The Conflict Began Before Was Responsible, And Not All Of
The Earth. The Fear That The The Eloheem, And This Yahweh
Agreeable Angelic Beings Anunnagi Now Had The Same Kind Of
Had, Was That The Disagreeables Physical Heart As This Adamite.
Were Influencing The Human 62. So, This Yahweh Or God Was
Beings. Responsible, And The Appointed
59. Genesis Chapter 3, And In One God Over Man Called Tammuz
Particular Verse 22-24, Where Adam Amongst The Sumerians, And
And His Seed Who Have Yahweh In Genesis 4:26; And He
Transformed From Agreeable To Was Upset With The Seed Of Adam,
Disagreeable Beings Are Being Cast That Would Be Cain's Sons And
Out Of The Enclosed Garden. Daughters, Who Had No Respect
60. Genesis 6:5, Tells How The Or Reverence For This Tammuz
Agreeable Eloheem Felt About This Being Appointed Their God.
Man, It States: "And God (Eloheem, 63. But Out Of That Same Seed
The Plural Of Gods) Saw That The Did Come By Way Of Seth A Man
Ra'a "Disagreeableness", Wickedness, Your Bible Calls Noah. Tammuz
Evils Of Man "Adamites" Was Made Report To The Most High
Great In The Earth, And That Every They Planned To Destroy Adamites.
Imagination In The Thoughts Of But Noah Found Grace In The Eyes
His Heart (Leb, "Physical Heart"), Of Tammuz, The Yahweh Of The
Was Only Ra'a "Disagreeableness, Eloheem, "Neb Shil El Neteraat".
Wickedness, Evil" Continuously.

52
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Of The Other Question: Can You Name Some
Seed Cain? Of These Great Empires And
What Is Their Great
64. They Had No Respect For Architectural Symbols?
Tammuz, And His Confession Of
Weakness In Repenting For 66. Yes. All Great Empires Were
Allowing His Creation To Become Influenced By The Neteraat Who
Wicked. They Broke Away As Did Brought Their Architecture To This
Many Of The Seed Of The Sons Planet. That Being, In Most Places
And Daughters Of Seth (Genesis The Mir, Which Is Called "Pyramid".
5:7); For Seth Had Many Other Sons
And Daughters, Other Than Enos, Question: What Does The Word
But It Was The Seed Of Enos That Pyramid Mean?
Was Obedient And Began To Call
On The Name Of The Yahweh 67. It's Broken Up Into Two Parts,
Tammuz. (Genesis 4:26). The First Word Being Pyra,
Meaning "Fire" And The Second
Mid "Middle", Referring To The
Question: And What Happened Column Of Energy Called
To Many Other Sons And "Tachyonic Energy".
Daughters?
Question: May I Ask, What Is
65. They Spread Across The Face The Mystery Of The Pyramid
Of The Earth, Carrying With Them Being Built From The Top
The Knowledge Of These Great Down?
Builders From The Stars Called
Nephileems. They Mixed Their 68. That's An Old Science Called
Seed With Them, And Became Anti-Destruction, Vs. Destruction.
Ghibbore, Mighty Men, Who Were All Matter Has A Reflection In
Of Old, Men Of Renown. They Energy Or Anti Matter. From The
Built Great Empires In The Names Cap Stone Of The Pyramid Upward
Of Other Deities Other Than Would Be Its Reflected Form Of
Tammuz. Energy, Seen As One Pyramid
Above The Other. So The Mental
Construction Produces The
Blueprint For The Physical
Construction. As You Build The
Pyramid Upward, You Are And
Must First Remove The Top Of
53
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Another Surface Downward. Thus, Question: What Is Meant By To
The Science Of The Pyramid Being Build Is To Destroy?
Built From Top To Bottom. All
Master Builders Overstand This 71. To Build A Monument You
Principle. Must Quarry Stone, Which Is
Destroying An Environment. To
Question: Does That Apply To Build A Log Cabin You Have To
All Things? Cut Down Trees. To Make A Meal,
You Must Kill Living Things. So
69. It Does In A Controlled The Science Is, "To Build You Must
Environment, Terrestrial, But Destroy". Thus, It Is With The
Doesn't For Celestial Transports. Knowledge Of The Pyramid.
Yet, Even The Sculptor To Produce
His Masterpiece, Chips Away From Question: Were These Sciences
Its Natural Shape, And The Form And Symbols Related To Gods
To Fashion An Image Of His Or And Religions Of The Future?
Her Choice.
72. Yes. The Pyramid (Mir), The
Question: What Do You Mean By Benben, Or Obelisk, Which Became
Anti Destruction? The Lighthouse, Minarets Or
Steeples, But In Ancient Times
70. For Every Action There Is An These Beings That Had No Respect
Equal And Opposite Reaction. Now For The One God Tammuz. They
Because Of The Unusual Shape Of Spread Across The Earth And Left
The Pyramid, They Imply Two Their Mark By Building Great
Directions Of Projection, One Civilizations That Baffled The One
Towards The Apex, And The Other God, And His Loyal Subjects, Called
Towards The Base. The Anti- Slaves.
Destruction Pyramids Is Back To
Back To The Actual Pyramid, And It
Is Located Below The Ground. The Question: Where Are These
Anti-Construction Pyramid Is Peak Great Places?
To Peak With The Actual Pyramid
And Is Located Above The Apex. 73. There Are Many Worldwide
The Science Being Used To Build And Even Some On Mars. They Can
On Earth Is To Destroy. Be Found As: The Great Pyramids
Of Xianyang, China And Their
Great Buildings, And The Wall Of
China. The Pyramids Of Sudan
54
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
And Egypt, The Pyramids Of These Temples Predate Your Bible
South America, The Pyramids Of And Your Qur'an, And The
North America, The Under Water Architecture And Techniques
Pyramids Of Okinawa, Japan, And Involved In Building Them. The
The Small Island Of Yonaguni, The Knowledge Of It, Surpasses
Standing Stones Of Carnac In Monotheistic Constructions Of
France, The Temples In Tarxien On Synagogues, Churches, Temples,
The Mediterranean Island Of Malta, And Mosques. The Gods Of These
The Original Nabta Stonehenge Of Ancient Cultures Passed On To
Egypt, The Circle Of Stonehenge Their Subjects Far More Superior
On Salisbury Plain In Southern Knowledge And Technology Than
England, The Nazca Lines Near The The Religions Of Today Can Even
Pacific Coast Of Southern Peru, The Imagine, And They Did Not Get
Great Serpent Mound Of Ohio, The Their Knowledge Of Master
Mount Li Tombs In The Shensi Building From The Bible God
Pronvince Of China, The Royal Tammuz, Yahweh, And Also The
Tomb Of Nimrud Dagh On The City Of Nod. And There Are Many
Border Of Modern Turkey And More. How Do You Explain That
Syria, The Temple Of Ishtar In Iraq, Most Of These Sacred Sites Existed
Where The Thousands Of Before Your One God, Yahweh,
Cuneiform Tablets, That Predates Allah Concept, Or Your Biblical
The Bible And Qu'ran Are Being And Quranic Concept? And Not To
Found, The Rose Red City Of Petra, Mention The Many Different Crop
The Mound City Of Cahokia In Circles, Which Are Land Writings
Northwest Of St. Louis, Missouri, For Extraterrastrial, Who Live Here,
The Temples Of Angkor Wat, Deep Messages From Beyond Earth.
In The Jungles Of Cambodia, The 74. Some Of These Cities Built
Towns Of Chaco Canyon, In New Around These Great Monuments
Mexico, The Statues Of Easter Were Inhabited By Agreeable And
Island In The Pacific Ocean, Far Off Some Were Inhabited By
The Coast Of Chile, The Celestial Disagreeable Beings; But They Were
Spheres In The Southern Part Of Still, And Are Still To This Day
Costa Rica, Mount Shasta, The Great Cities, Architecture And
Temple Of The Three Windows At Sciences That The Religious World
Machu Piccu, Peru, The Principal Today Cannot Match Jew, Christian
Temple At Machu Picchu, The Nor Muslim.
Intihuatana At Machu Picchu, The
Torreon At Machu Picchu, The
Tower Of Babylon. Note All Of

55
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: If The Knowledge Chapter 10:5. And Remember The
Didn't Come From The God Of Original Scroll Text, And Tablets
The Bible, Then Where Did It Had No Chapters Or Verses. Think
Come From? About That.
79. But This Is Talking About
75. They Got This Great Those People Of Shinar, Where A
Knowledge That Has Been Mighty (Ghibbore) Hunter Named
Replicated And Discovered On A Sargon, Or Nimrod, A Negroid As
Planet In This Solar System Called It Is Recorded Of Him, Dwelled
Lahmu, Mars, Where They Have And These People Were Different
Found Pyramids, And Traces Of Than Those People Of Noah, Even
Life To Verify That, That Planet Though, They Were Part Blood
Once Thrived With Life, And Related. They As Sumerians Were
Intelligence, And From It Was This Linked To Beings Called Anunnaqi
Planet Seeded By Gods Known As Who Came From Beyond The Stars,
Anunnaqi, Which Are Anu-Na-Gi, As Tablets Of Before The Bible
That Those Loyal To Anu Came To Have It Recorded Called The
Gi. Enuma Elish Or The Atra-Hasis
Recorded In Cuneiform, And
Akkadian, And Chaldean, And
Question: And All Of This Is Other Babylonian Tongues, And
Recorded In The Bible? These Beings Called Nephileems
And Ghibboreems Went In Unto
The Daughters Of Men, Had Sexual
76. Yes.
Intercourse With Them And
Produced The Children Of Men
Question: Can You Explain Mighty Men (Ghibboreems) Like
Further? Nimrod. (Genesis 6)

77. Yes. Now Look In The Question: So People Existed


Eleventh Chapter Of Genesis, The Before The Bible's Adam And
Very First Verse You Have The Eve?
Whole Earth (E-Reth) Was Of One
Language (Saw-Faw) And Of One
Speech (Saw-Faw). 80. Yes. Even The God Of The
78. Obviously There Is A Bible Was Appointed As The One
Misplacement Of Chapters, 10 And God, Out Of The Many, Or The
11, And A Confusion Of Neter "Yahweh" Out Of The
Information When You Re-Read Eloheem.

56
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
84. Yes, Of Course, That's Why
They Have The "Most" This And
Question: Can You Explain? The "Most" That In Reference To
God.
81. Yes. This Made A Yahuwa, A 85. Also That's Why God Is Found
God, Which They Translate As The Plural In The Bible And The Qur'an,
Lord, A Misused Term In The Bible And The Constant Repetition Of,
From Yahweh To Adonai, To Rab, Have No Other Gods Before Me,
Each Designating Different Degrees Confirms The Existence Of Other
Of Learning. But This Lord Who Gods. "I Am The God Of
Came Down By Himself To See The Abrah am", Confirms A Specific
City Of Calneh, And The Tower God For The Children Of Abraham
Built In It, Was None Other Than As Opposed To The Children Of
Tammuz, The Son Of Ishtar And Others, As The Egyptians, The
Dummuzi. Mayans, The Tibetans, Who Are
Children Of Older And Greater
Gods.
Question: Who Appointed This
Tammuz As The One God?
Question: Can This Be Found In
82. The Name Tammuz, A The Bible?
Nuwaupian Name, Means "Harvest".
He Was To Be Responsible For 86. Absolutely, A God Called
Taking Care Of The Human Beings Yahweh Is Being Called On From
Who Were The Harvest Of The That Point Onward. So Before The
Gods. (Revelation 14:15). Appointment Of That One God,
Who Were They Calling On?
Correct, The Eloheem, A Plural Of
Question: Who Appointed This Eloh, Each Individual God Is An
Yahweh, Lord, As One God Over Eloh, Or A Yahweh, As A Group
The Humans? They Are Eloheem, As One
Cherub, Groups Are Called
83. Anu, The Most High Yahweh Cherubeem, One Seraph, Groups
Of The Eloheem. Are Called Serapheem.
87. So, One Of The Eloheem
Who Before The Bible Were Known
Question: Do Gods Come In As The Anunnaqi, Or The
Ranks? Neteraat, One Of Them Was
Selected For The Children Of Seth,

57
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Who Are Called The Children Of
Gods. As Found In Chapter 4:26.
Question: Who Was This
Nimrod, The Master Builder?
Question: Can I Find The Name
Tammuz In The Bible? 92. Nimrod Was A Sumerian, A
Babylonian, Son Of Semiramis
88. Yes, When The Children Of (Ishtar) And Cush (Kish). He Was
Adam Through Seth, Through Enos Given The Name Nimrod By His
Began To Call On The Name Of Envies. His Real Name Was Sargon.
This Lord Tammuz, Confirmed In
Ezekiel 8:14, "Then He Brought Me To
The Door Of The Gate Of The Yahweh Question: Is Tammuz The Lord
(Lord's) House Which Was Toward The That Visited Babylon?
North; And, Behold, There Sat Women
Weeping For Tammuz." 93. Yes. This Tammuz Came
Down To See What These Sons Of
Eloheem Were Building. (Genesis
Question: Can This Tammuz Be 11).
Found Anywhere Else Other
Than Sumerian Tablets?
Question: I Thought A Group Of
89. Yes, Today Tammuz Is Gods Came To Earth?
Retained In The Hebrew Calendar
From The Babylonian Calendar, 94. They Did. A Group Of
Which Would Be The Calendar Of Yahwehs, Because Verse Six Says:
The Sumerians. "And The Yahweh Says Behold"
90. You Find It Used On Their Speaking To A Group Of Beings,
Calendar Between June And July, And Verse Seven Says, "Let Us Go
Which Would Share The Months Down". So Yahwehs Are Groups,
Elul, Ab, Tammuz, Siwan, And Ayar. And As Groups As I Said Earlier,
The Other Months Of The Calendar They Become Eloheem As Found
Are Nisan, Adar, Shibat, Tebet, Throughout The First Chapters Of
Kislew, Marcheswan, And Tishre. Genesis Under God, Where In
91. To This Very Day Jews And Actuality, There Is Eloheem
Israelites Alike Worldwide Keep The Meaning "Gods".
Name Of Their God In The Center
Of The Harvest Months. It's The
Sacred Name Of The Messiah.
58
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So First, One Yahweh The Mayans, The Shang Dynasty,
Came And Then The Group Of The Tama-Reans, Or The
Yahwehs (Eloheems)? Anunnagi. None Of These Great
Intellects Believed Or Accepted The
95. That's Right, Tammuz, The Bible Or The Qur'anic Religion.
Anunnaqi Visited These Children 98. Yet, Their Intelligence Has Not
Who They Considered Rebellious As Been Matched To Date. The
Opposed To The Obedient Children Mysteries Of The Pyramids (Miraat)
Of Noah, And Tammuz Made His Still Baffle Monotheists.
Voice Known Amongst The
Anunnaqi, That They Can Go
Down To Stop These, As They Question: Then What Was Their
Thought Of Them Rebellious, Religion?
Children. So, Then He Returned To
The Stars. 99. They Had No Need Of One.
For They Had The Most Important
Principle, Working Together As
Question: What Does The Bible Families With Unity And One
Say Happens Next? Language, And This Frightened The
God Of The Bible And The Qur'an
96. Well, As Verse Six Says He To The Point Where He Wanted To
Spoke To His Constituents, Cause Them Misery For No Reason,
Yahwehans, The Anunnaqi, And Whatsoever.
Said "Look The People Is One", They
Unified. "And They Have All One
Language", They Are Speaking One Question: What Did He Fear?
Language, "And This They Begun To
Do", Simply Look At What They Are 100. A Simple Principle Of Unity,
Capable Of Doing With Unity And Without Faith Or Belief. With This
One Language. Simple Principle, Nothing Will Be
Restrained From Them Which They
Have Imagined To Do, Is Their
Question: This Building Was God's Own Words.
Done Without The Guidance Of
The God Of Seth, Son Of Adam?
Question: So What Did Tammuz
97. Yes, To This Date The God Of And These Other Yahwehans Set
The Bible And The Qur'an Has Out To Do?
Never Produced A City As Great As
59
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
101. Just What Nimrod's Priests Building A Tower To Reach The
Predicted They Would Do, Before Heavens.
They Even Knew It. Genesis 11:4, 106. Note: Yahweh The Lord Of
"And They Said Go Let Us Build A The Bible Must Have Thought It
City And Tower, Whose Top May Reach Was Possible To Reach The
Unto Heaven, And Let Us Make A Heavens By This Tower, Or This
Name, Least We Be Scattered Abroad Whole Episode Would Not Have
Upon The Face Of The Whole Earth". Been Necessary.

Question: Why Did Tammuz,


Question: And That Was A The Eloheem As A Yahweh In
Prophesy? Genesis 11:5-9 Come Down From
Heaven And Diversify Their
102. Yes, Because Later On In Tongues, Cause Them Confusion
That Verse, But Later In Time, And Stop Their Great Building
You'll Find In Verse 8, "And The Project?
Lord Scattered Them Abroad, From
Thence Upon The Face Of All The 107. Nowhere In Their Bible Does
Earth, And They Left Off To Build The It Say That This Yahweh Destroyed
City". The Tower, Or The City. He Caused
103. So These Babylonians Confusion And Dissension, Which
Actually Predicted What The Lord Caused Them To Not Continue The
Of The Bible Was Going To Do Building Of Their Great Empire.
Before Him And Those Who Came
Down With Him, Actually They Did
It. Question: Why Did He Do This
Apparent Disagreeable Act, If He
Was A Good God?
Question: What Did The God Or
Gods Of The Bible Do? 108. Tammuz Caused Confusion
Amongst Those People In The City
104. A Group Of These Deities Of Calneh, Nimrod's Subjects
Said, "So Let Us Go Down There And Because Nimrod, Who Was Known
Confound Their Language, So They May Amongst The Sumerians As
Not Understand One Another" And Sargon Strayed Away From The
This Is Exactly What They Did. Laws Of The One Lord, Tammuz
105. They Caused Unnecessary That Was Passed On Down
Confusion To A People Who Were Through The Sons Of Enos.

60
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
109. He Gave All Praise And Broke Off From The Worship Of
Gratitude And Reverence To Anu, Tammuz And Even Named His
And None Other, And He Had No Son Tammuz To Belittle The Status
Respect For Intermediaries, Such As Of Tammuz.
Tammuz.
110. He Believed, "Go Directly To
The Heavenly One", And For That Question: Was This A
He Was Called Disagreeable. Disagreeable Act?
Because He Disagreed With The
Worship Of Tammuz. 114. No, Not To The Sumerians
Who Pre-Date The Plagiarized
Version Of Their Ancient Tablets
Question: So Tammuz Is A Namely: The Enuma Elish, Atra
Messiah, Son Of God Type? Hasis, Gilgamesh Epics, Tablets
Of Etana, Descent Of Ishtar And
111. Yes. He Would Be Equivalent Tammuz, Etc.
To Jesus Being Worshipped Rather
Than His Father, And Those
Ancient Hebrews Or Jews, Who Do Question: What Part Do All Of
Not Acknowledge Jesus Are Hated These Play, And Do They Pre-
And Called Heathens By The Date The Bible?
Christians. This Was The Case Even
Back Then. 115. Yes They Pre-Date The Bible
And In Fact, The Torah Which
Gave Birth To The New Testament
Question: What Part Did And The Qur'an Was A Product Of
Tammuz Play? These Tablets, Put Together By 46
Anunnaqi Under Tammuz As Law
112. He Was Appointed To Be For His Subjects, Called His Chosen
Ruler Of The Enosites By Anu. People, Out Of The Many People
On The Planet Earth, And Nimrod
Or Sargon, Knowing This
Question: Why Didn't Nimrod Knowledge, Which He Obtained
Then Acknowledge Him? From Ishtar Herself, As Sargon
Disagreed With The Spell Binding
113. Sargon, Nimrod, Also Called Information And Refused To Be A
Nembroth, Had His Own Value Slave Of A Slave Of Anu.
System And Considered Himself A
Ghibbore, Or God In Flesh. So He
61
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Was The Results Question: How Does This Apply
Of This? To Today?

116. He Was Classified As Evil, 119. If A Group Of People Come


And Rebellious, And They Changed Together And Do Not Wish To
His Name From Sargon To Nimrod, Acknowledge The God Of The
Whose Named Means "Rebellion" For Bible And The Qur'an Or Either,
He Rebelled Against The Law Of Hidden Forces Of Luciferians Will
Worshipping This One Deity, Who Move On Them, Call Them A Cult,
Acted As An Intermediary. He And Set Out To Defame And To
Journeyed From East To The Plains Slander And Literally Destroy
Of Shinar (Genesis 11:4) And Physically, Just To Stop Anyone
Started Building Great Monuments, From Showing That They Can Do
And Towers, Which Is Called Great Things Without Being
Ziggurat In Cuneiform, And The Subservient To The God Of Their
Greatest Of His Cities, Bab-El, Image And Their Language.
Which Means "Doorway To El", Who
Is Anu, Was To His People A Direct
Way To The Father, "Who Art In Question: And This Still Works?
Heaven". He Named His City On
Earth Calneh, Which Translates 120. Yes, Today They Are Called
"Fortress Of Anu." "Cult Busters", And They Are The
Luciferians, Who Control The Minds
Of Religious Fanatics And Foolish
Question: Why Did Nimrod Feel Haters That Creates The
That Way Toward Tammuz? Atmosphere To Destroy Anyone
Who Can Succeed Without Going
117. Sargon (Nimrod) Saw Through Them. Because Of This
Tammuz (Adonis) As A Weak Many Are Afraid, And Humans Are
Lord, Because It Repented Tammuz In A State Of Babel, About The
To His Heart That Man Had Truth. The Deities Responsible For
Become Disagreeable, And Wicked. Conveying That Truth, Through
118. So, When Tammuz Repented, Religion, Religious Books, Alteration
Nimrod Saw This As A Weakness, Of Information, Plagiarization,
And Nimrod Dishonored The Weak, Faith, Belief And Last And Most
Being A Mighty Builder, Hunter, Important, Diversity Of Tongues.
And Warrior Before Tammuz. 121. That's What Is Wrong With
The People Of Today. They Want
You To Respect And Worship The
62
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Intermediaries, Example: Jesus, Question: What Was The Key To
Buddha, Confucius, Maitreya, Their Success?
Muhammad, Massau And The
Likes, Which Will Be Them. 126. Unity And Cooperation. They
122. If You Decide That, That Is Were Under One Being's Guidance.
Not What You Want, They Call You One Part Mortal, And Part Deity
A Cult. The Same Way Tammuz With A Master Plan. Whether
Came Down On Nimrod, When He Considered By Religious People To
Saw He Had A Culture And He Was Be Agreeable Or Disagreeable, He
Cultivating, And Building Great Led His People To Unity By Way Of
Monuments, He Was Considered One Tongue Or Language. He Had
Disagreeable, Because He Did Not Succeeded And Turned The Heads
Want To Worship The Intermediary. Of Other Gods, Who Later Turned
His People Against Him And Each
Other.
Question: What Are The Results
Of Bypassing The Intermediary,
Called The Intercessor? Question: Could They Have
Succeeded Without Him?
123. When You Bypass The
Intermediary Or The Intercessor, 127. No. Not These People, For
You Are Hated For Your Wanting These People Did Not Have The
To Be Your Own God, And Build Information And Knowledge That
Your Own Structures. Nimrod Had. However, He Was
124. Just As In Genesis 11:4-5, Able To Use That Knowledge To
When The People Were Unified And Unite Them Under One Language
They Were Building These Great And Teach Them To Accomplish
Structures, Because These Gods Great Feats.
Were Unaware Of It, They
Interfered And Stopped It, And
Confused The People Who Had Question: So Religious People
Become One In Unity, To Lock Under Monotheism Fear All
Them In The System Of Depending Other Great Empires?
On One Person, Or Deity.
125. They Spread Their Religion 128. Yes. It Is Quite Clear. If You
Throughout The World, And This Look Throughout The World Where
Way They Are Able To Control You You Find Great Monuments, Like
Through Mental Slavery. Pyramids, And Mounds, In Egypt,
China, Japan, South America, North
63
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
America, Etc, Those Were Done By 132. So Many Of The Stories That
People, Like Nimrod Who Broke You Read In Your Religious
Away From That One God Worship Scriptures Are Nothing More Than
Of Monotheism And Built Their Symbolic Of The Birth And Growth
Own Cultures. Of Your Universes, Galaxies And
129. The Fact That None Of The Planets.
Religious Leaders Of Today Know
How These Structures Were Built Is
A Confession They Have Been Cut Question: What Does The Bible
Off From That Knowledge. The Say Of Astronomers?
Reason They Are Cut Off Is Because
They Do Not Acknowledge The 133. They Too, Are Condemned
Ancient Ones Of Our Cultures, And Called Soothsayers And
Who Came From Beyond The Stars, Sorcerers, And Star Gazers,
Seeded The Planet Earth And Gave Astrologists And New Age.
That Secret Information To Few.
130. Those With Nuwaupu,
Sound Right Reasoning, Are To This Question: What Have They Done
Day The People Who Are The Sons To Them?
And Daughters Of The Mighty Men,
The Ghibbore, Just As In (Genesis 134. They Created Their Own
6:4), Also Called Jabbarians, From Programmed Misguided,
Where The Word Jabbar, El Jabar, Incompetent Astronomers,
Which Is Algebra Comes, The Fabricated Dates, And Give Mis-
Great Alchemist. Information.
135. S Ome Of These Astronomers
Believe That All Galaxies Will Come
Question: So The Language Plays Together Again In About
A Great Part? 70,000,000,000 Billion Years. Their
Date Is Wrong, But Their Incident
131. The Many Tongues And Is True. This Goes Against Religious
Translations Are Responsible For Beliefs, That A God Controls The
The State Of Mind, And With That Beginning And The End.
The Truth About Creation, 136. What They Mean, Is Their
Evolution, The Birth Of The Greek Deities Will Come Together,
Universe, And Those Beings Galatea And Polyphemus. They Try
Responsible Were Lost And Now To Make Their Belief A Reality.
Are Being Revived, In And Through 137. That's Why They Have The
You. Olympics. A World Involvement
64
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Under Sports, And Challenge And Direction, But There Are Still Many
Competition. Winners And Losers, Things They Have Yet To Know
Happiness And Sadness. Because The "Big Bang" Is A Small
Part Of The Big Plan.
143. However, This R Ight K
Question: What Would Happen Nowledge Will Evade Them As
If This Is True? Long As They Deny The Existence
Of Us Neteraat Or Anutu, When
138. When This Happens, All The Incarnated On Earth Become
Material In The Universe Will A'aferti Or Anunnagi, Known As
Explode Again And Become A New The Neteraat, Responsible For
Universe Resembling The Present Your Existence.
One. Uni = Together, Verse =
Against Togetherness, Universe.
Question: What Is The Anutu?

Question: Has This Happened 144. Anutu Is The Term That Was
Before? Used Before Coming To Gi. Gi As
You Know Is A Term For The
139. Yes. Such A "Recycling Of Planet Earth, From Which You Get
The Universe" As Cosmologist Call Gaia, Geography, Geometry, Even
It, Have Happened Many Times In God.
The Past And Will Go On Forever.
140. Cosmologist In Astronomic
Terms, Are People Who Study The Question: Then Where Did The
Structure Of This Universe. Word Earth Come From?
141. But Be On Your Guard
Against The Luciferians, Who 145. The Word Earth Only
Author Most Of The Books, And Describes The Soil, The Dirt, The
Become The Authorities, And Sand, The Land. When In Actuality
Accepted As Authentic, When They That Is The Smallest Part Of The
Are Deceivers, Wearing Titles That Mass Of The Planet. The Majority Is
They Give Themselves. Water. Moya, But The Word Came
From Eridu.
Question: Are You Saying, All
Modern Day Science Is Wrong?
Question: What Is Eridu?
142. Modern Science May Have 146. Eridu Was A Term That The
Taken A Step In The Right Anutu Gave To Tanen, The
65
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Original Name For This Planet. Question: Why Do You Use Grew
When They Landed In The Persian And Not Created?
Gulf They Referred To This Place
As Eridu "A Home Away From 150. Because The Word Create
Home". Means To Grow A Thing As In The
Word Birth Describes An Actual
Event, But They Forget That The
Question: Where Else Can I Find Being Grew Through Nine Stages In
This Word? The Womb.

147. Of Course This Word Can Be


Found In The Ancient Tablets Of Question: Can You Tell Us
Sumer, The Enuma Elish, From Which Star Constellations These
Which The Torah Of The Hebrews Beings Came From?
Was In Part Copied To Create A
Law To Govern Human Beings. In 151. Yes To Name A Few; Sahu
There, The Word Eridu Took The "Orion", Kiymah "Pleiades",
Form Of Ereth, And Means Again Mazzarah "Mazzaroth", Ayish
"Earth". The Muslims Whose Qur'an "Arcturus", (Job 9:9, Job 38:31-32,
Was Conceived From The Bible Call Amos 5:8), South Of Arcturus
It Ard, "Earth", As You Can See You'll Find Draco, Where The
Ereth And Ard Comes From Eridu. Dragon People Or The Serpent
148. The Sumerian Word For People Reptilians Come From, And
Earth Or Ground Was Actually Aldebaran, Which Is South Of
"Adama". Orion, And Andromeda, Which Is
South Of Arcturus, Sibtu "Sirius",
And Illyuwn (Qur'an 83:18-19,
Question: Is That The Same As Qur'an 53:49). These Constellations
Adam Of Genesis? Can Be Found In Your So-Called
Holy Scriptures, Namely The Old
149. Yes, And Makes Reference To Testament, The New Testament
The Adama Project, Or The Seeding And The Qur'an. Make Note: That
Of This Planet By Beings You Refer Whenever You Refer To The
To As Eloheem, Malaaikat, Heavens In Your Bible It Uses
Angelos, Who Are Simply Shamayim "Up There", Samawati
Extraterrestrials From Other Star Borrowed From That Same Word,
Formations Who Came Here And And Ooranos, Which Is Simply
Grew The Human Population. Orion. So The God Of The Bible
Was From Orion, And In Orion
66
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
There Were Many Mansions Scroll Three
(Houses) Different Planets. And
South Of Orion Are The Chambers, The Science Of The Circle And
Where We Find The Star The Square
Constellations Of What You Call (19x5=95)
The Devil. (Job 9:9) "Which Maketh
Arcturus, Orion, And Pleiades, And The In Order To Create Something,
Chambers Of The South". Aldebaran, The Neteraat, Who Are Also
Andromeda, Draco, And Procyon. Known As The Neteraat, The
Yet, With These Facts, Your Ancient Ones, Headed By A Group
Religious Scholars And Theologians Of Re Called Atum-Re, Atun-Re,
Try To Create A Mythological Amun-Re Created A State Of
Heaven And Hell. Nothingness, In Which To Place
The 99 Elements Or Attributes Of
This State By Hu, Huhi, The
Question: Are All These Beings
Eternal, Or
Good?
Things On This Side Of H1.
2. There In Is The Beginning Of
152. Absolutely Not; Your Whole
The Supernatural, Super- Yet -
Concept Of God And Devil Is
Natur-Al Yet, Physical Creation Of 3
Based On A Conflict That Is
Suns, Aum, Sal And Shamesh.
Leading To The Final Conflict,
Where Beings From Other Star
Question: What's The
Constellations Are Fighting Over
Importance Of A Circle And A
Possession Of This Planet And Its
Square, And Why Do All The
Inhabitants. You Call It The War
Mystical Societies Use The
Between Good And Evil, Or The
Square And Compass Today?
War Between The Angels Of God
And The Angels Of The Devil. Call
3. To Many Such As, The
It What You Like, It's A Fact That
Freemasons, Shriners, Knights Of
You Are Living In The Day When
Columbus, Alhambra, Rosicrucians,
There Is War In The Heavens And
Theosophical Society, Astara, And
The Earth And We Have Come To
Their Many Sub-Chapters And
Protect You.
Degrees Depend On Geometric
Mathematics As The Keys To Their
Secrets, That Adds Up To No
More Than Simple Geometry. If
You Look At The Perfect G, You

67
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Will See That It Is A Circle And A Question: What About The
Square. Circle?

7. The Circle, Is A Symbol Of


Question: What Does The G Infinite, And Only The Being That
Symbolize? Connects The Two Points, Knows
Where It Begins And Ends. So It
4. The G Prefixing Gaia, Is For Becomes The Tool Of The Master
God Or Geometry, Of The Grand Builders, And The Roots Of Alpha
Architect Of The Universe, Who To And Omega.
Them Was Ta, The Original Name
Spelled As Ptah.
5. The G Being The Seventh Letter Question: What Is The Science
And The Mystical Number Of Behind The Letters?
Religious Beliefs, In Particular The
Bible. Gea The Female Deity, Or 8. The Science Behind The Letters
Mother Nature Is Symbolic Of The A As Aleph, Alif, And Z, Which Is
Crescent Moon, Or The Deity 2, 5, And S, Each Of These Scripts
Diana, And Her Son As The Star Of As Letters Indicate The Second
Bethlehem, Which To Some Is Mary Point Is The End, As 2 And Z, Are
And Jesus, But In Reality Is Isis And The Same, So Each Alphabet Begins
Horus, And Even Semiramis And A-B (English) Or A-Be (Latin),
Nimrod, The Master Builder Of Aleph-Beth (Hebrew), And Aliph-
Babel. Baa (Arabic), Or Alpha-Beta
(Greek), And Ab Means "Father", As
In "God The Father", The Alpha
Question: So They Are Used As And Omega, Or As The S And 5
Sacred Symbols? Are The Same, T He Symbol Of The
5 Pointed Star Or Pentagram And
6. Yes. These Symbols Are The The S Is The Sigma, The Sixth
Keys To Geometry. There Is No Letter Of The Greek Alphabet Or
Shape, Nor Form That Does Not Satan. 2 And 5 Is The Sacred
Pass Through These. One, The Number 7 For G, Which Is The
Square Is A Symbol Of Finite, Four Number 6 And The Double Square
Separate Straight, But Ending Paths. Has 8 Points. You Get 5 Points 6
Points 7 Points And 8 Pointed Stars.

68
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Do They Have Any Question: How Was This Feat
Religious Significance? Performed?

9. Yes. All Temples, Churches, 13. We Took The Infinite And


Lodges, Synagogues, And Mosques, Formed The Circle And With The
Utilize These Symbols. For Instance, Finite, We Shaped The Square.
The Two Holy Shrines Of The
Islamic Faith Is The Kaaba In
Mecca, Saudi Arabia, A Square Or Question: What Happened Next?
Cube And The Dome Of Rock In
Jerusalem, The Circle. The Same 14. We Then Took The Circle,
Applies To All True Turned It Inside Out And Produced
Religious Sites. The State Of Bohoo "Nothingness,
Desolation" And Tohoo "Waste";
Existence Yet Not Seen, Heard, Felt,
Question: Is There A Hidden Smelt, Or Tasted, As Ether Is Yet
Purpose For Their Use? Not Seen.

10. Yes. All Of These Societies,


Religions, Or Fraternities Derive Question: Yet, How Can 2
Their Sciences Or Theories From Shapes Be Totally Opposite, Both
Facts Of The Ancient Ones. Equal A Total Of 360 Degrees
When 360 Is Total?

Question: So, Are You Saying 15. Two Totals, The Total Of
That The Ancient Ones Use Things And The Total Of Nothing,
These Symbols As Tools? And Equal In Quantity, And The
Absence Of Quantity, No-Thing,
11. Yes. We, The Ancient Ones Sum-Thing?
Made The Beginning, Be-Gene Or 16. Only El Kuluwm, The All,
Genn, Jinn Exist By Using The Appointed Creator Of All These
Science Of The "Circle" And The Things In This State Can Cause
"Square", Unidentical Twins. This To Happen, From The Tama-
12. We Performed A Feat Which Rean Deity Hapi, Deity Of The
May Be Considered Impossible By Nile, Who Was Depicted As A Male
Some Circles And Unlikely By Some With Female Breasts, Symbolizing
On The Square. The Male And Female As One.
Genesis 5:2, Male And Female. An

69
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Adam Or Hermaphrodite, Symbol Question: Can You Explain That
Of Fertility. Further?
17. Look Closer At What I Have
Said And You Will, Re- Discover 21. Yes. When Two Like Charges
The True Meaning. Are Put Together They Repel, But
Because Of The Tremendous Force
And Pressure Of Fusion, A Force
Question: What Is The True That Made Them Act, His Submits;
Meaning? Contrary To Their Natural Act Of
Repelling.
18. Now, In Studying The Science 22. Two Distinct "Incomplete"
Of Geometry, Ge - Means: "Earth Squares Formed, After Further
In Greek, Borrowed From The Subjection In The Intense
Ancient Sumerian Language, Commandment Of El Kuluwm,
Nuwaupic, Which Script Was Called They Merged Together To Form
Cuneiform," And Metrien - One Single Complete Square.
Means: "Measure," We Learn, That
If Quantities Are Equal To The
Same Quantities, They Are Equal To Question: Then What Happened?
Each Other.
19. Or "If The Circle And The 23. The Center Of Each Square
Square Are Both Equal To 3600 , And Each Circle Became As One.
Then, They Are Equal To Each 24. If You Look Closely, You Will
Other, As Clones Or Twins. See Each Quarter Of The Circle
Within The Square. This Vast
Energy, Was Trapped Within The
Question: What Did The Ancient Square And Was Not Able To
Ones, Or The Neteraat Do With Escape.
The Four Parts?

20. The 4 Parts, We Neteraat, Question: Why Was That?


Caused To Merge, And Form The
Square, And The Circle Equal The 25. We The Ancient Ones, Did
Same, And They Have The Same Not Turn The Square Inside Out,
Magnetic Charge. But Rather We Used The Circle,
Because To Turn A Square Inside
Out Would Give You Four Separate
Squares, Which Would Be Sixteen
900 Degree Angles, A Total Of
70
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
1,440 Degrees, A Science Beyond Question: What About The Next
Your Comprehension At This Point Realm?
In Earth's Time. I T Does Not
Total 3600 , Yet It Does Have Four 28. The Next Realm Is The Unseen
900 Outer Angles, And Four 900 Realm, And Can Only Be Created In
Degree Inner Angles, Which Would Illusion To Them, Where As We
Be 8 X 90= 720, Which Is, 360 Etherians Exist As Illusions To
Twice. Them. Thus, We Began From 7200
Degrees. In Our Realm, Things Are
What They Are.
Question: So, How Is The Circle
Equal To The Square?
Question: What Happens In
26. The Circle Is Equal To The Their Realm?
Square Because They Both Are 3600
, As In Looking At The Pyramid 29. In Their Realm, Or This Realm
From Above, And The Four 90 With Illusions, Short For Illyuwn,
Degree Angles Meet At The (Ihm), The Higher Heavens, They
Capstone. Make Objects Appear Other Than
What They Actually Are. Such Is
Faith And Belief.
Question: How Does The Circle
And The Square Equal 3600 If
They Are 2 Different Shapes? Question: Is This The Same For
Circle And The Square?
27. I N The Realm In Which You
Dwell, The Highest Of Intelligence 30. Yes. The Circle And The
Is Only Of The Physical Realm. Square, As Shapes Appear To Be
Things They Tell Each Agent: In- Different But Upon Examining
Tell-Agent, And In This Realm They Their Mathematical Properties, You
Are Limited To Persons, Places And Will Find They Are The Same.
31. The Square That You Know
Things. Three Distinct 900 Degree On This Plane Was Not The Same
Angles, Which Is 270 In Itself That One Which We, The Ancient Ones
Equals Nine. They See No Further Dealt With.
Than 3600 Degrees. 3 + 6 = 9, And
The Cipher Is As Far As They Go.

71
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Which One Did You Question: What Affect Did This
Deal With? Friction Cause?

32. We Dealt With Its Counterpart 37. This Constant Friction


On The Spiritual Plane And The Generated Heat To The Degree
Plane Of Force. On This Plane You That The Square Could No Longer
Start From Hydrogen On Out To Withstand, And An Explosion Of
Einsteinium, The 99th Element, Enormous Force Occurred.
And Then Even Mortal Made
Elements, Fermium,
Mendelevium, Nobelium, And Question: Did This Event
Lawrencium. Happen On The Physical Plane?

38. This Grand Event Has Yet To


Question: What Happens On The Be Manifested On The Physical
Etheric Realm? Plane, As The Birth Of This Side Of
The Universe, The Formation Of
33. In The Etheric Realm, We Start The Stars, Galaxies And Planets. It
From Ether 1 On Back Through 99 Is All A Grand Plan Of E.T.' S Or
Ethers, Making The Energies In Plan-Ets.
Reverse, And Of A Different
Nature. The Etheric Realm Is
Beyond The Element Realm. Question: Can You Please
34. These Etheric Planes Are Not Explain This Further?
Perceived By The Ordinary Human
Eye. 39. To Overstand More, Let's
Analyze The Merging Of The Circle
And Square From An Atomic Point
Question: What Happens In The Of View, Having To Do With The
Element Realm? Science Of Submicroscopic
Particles Called Atoms.
35. In The Element Realm, The 40. The Energy Upon Its Arrival
Energy Which Was Confined In The On The Material Plane Was
Square Tried To Escape. Manufactured By The Conversion
36. It Pushed Upward, Outward Or Changing Of Certain Elements
And Downward. And Gases Known As H Ydrogen
And H Elium, Which Is Not By Far
The Lightest, As Time Will Tell.

72
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: How Did H1 And He Question: So The Atom Is The
Come About? Smallest Element?

41. To Overstand How These 44. The Atom Is Thought To Be


Elements Came Together, It Is The Smallest Unit Of An Element
Necessary To Have A Basic That Retains All Of The Element's
Knowledge Of The Science Of Properties . I Will Teach You Better
Chemistry, Kemet Or Khami Than That . It's Your Information.
Which Is The Process Of
Combining Chemicals, And
Bringing About Chemical Reactions. Question: What Is An Atom
42. So I Will Provide You With A Composed Of?
Little Background Information
Regarding The Nature Of An Atom. 45. At The Center Of An Atom Is
A Smaller Particle Called A Quark,
The Father Of Energy Which In
Question: What Is The Simplest Itself Was Produced By The Mother
Particle Of Life? Of All Energy, Biaps As In The
Cells Beneath The Cell Or In The
43. The Simplest Particle Of Life Case Of The Dna Inside Is The
To Date Is A Quark, Of Which Mother Mitochondria.
Atoms Are Composed Of. This Puts 46. There Is The Nucleus, A
It On The Other Side Of Things Or Dense Cluster Of Protons And
Something, The Sum Of A Thing Neutrons On The Outside Of A
Based On Its Weight As H1 Is The Quark.
Lightest Thing On This Side Of 47. Together, The Protons (P),
Things. Then The Quark Is Without Which Have A Positive (+) Charge
, An Inter Section,
Weight Or Sum, It's Nothing, No-
Thing. 48. And Neutrons (N), Which
Have No Charge, Are Called
"The Atom Is Nothing More Than A
Time Solar System Charged With Nucleons .
Electronic And Magnetic Power". El
Suhuf, Tablets Of Life, 10 Pages
Question: What Is Mitochondria
Of Zakar (Adam) Son Of Atum
And Where Does It Come From?
And Lillith, 2:211
49. Mitochondria Is A Spherical Or
Elongated Organelle In The
Cytoplasm Of Nearly All Eukaryotic
73
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Cells, Containing Genetic Material Bacterium And An Ancestral
And Many Enzymes Important For Eukaryotic Cell.
Cell Metabolism, Including Those
Responsible For The Conversion Of
Food And Nutrients To Usable Question: What Is The Structure
Energy. Also Called Chondriosome. Of Mitochondria?
From The New Latin : Greek Mitos,
Warp Thread + Greek Khondrion, 54. The Mitochondrion, Which
Diminutive Of Khondros, Grain, Can Range From 0.5 Micrometer
Granule; "To Grind". (0.00005 In) To 1 Micrometer
50. Mitochondrial Dna Is (0.0001 In) In Length, Has A
Inherited Only From The Mother. Double-Membrane Coat.
This Function, Known As 55. The Smooth Outer Membrane
Respiration, Is Why The Is Separated From The Inner
Mitochondrion Is Frequently Membrane By Liquid.
Referred To As The "Powerhouse" 56. The Inner Membrane, Folded
Of The Cell. Into Structures Called Cristae,
Surrounds A Liquid Matrix
Containing A Large Number Of
Question: Where Are The Enzymes, Or Biological Catalysts.
Mitochondria Dna Found?

51. Mitochondria Are Found In Question: Where Does The Dna


Eukaryotic Cells (Cells With A Rest?
Nucleus Contained Within A
Membrane). 57. Within The Liquid Matrix Lies
52. The Number Of Mitochondria Mitochondrial Deoxyribonucleic
In A Cell Depends On The Cell's Acid (Mtdna), Which Contains The
Function. Cells With Particularly Information To Direct Protein
Heavy Energy Demands, Such As Synthesis.
Muscle Cells, Have More 58. The Chief Function Of The
Mitochondria Than Other Cells. Mitochondrion Is To Create Energy
53. Because Of Their Strong For Cellular Activity By The Process
Resemblance To Aerobic (Oxygen- Of Aerobic Respiration.
Requiring) Bacteria, Scientists 59. In This Process, Food Is
Believe Mitochondria Evolved From Broken Down In The Cell's
An Early Symbiotic, Or Cooperative, Cytoplasm To Form Pyruvic Acid,
Relationship Between An Aerobic Which Is Imported Into The
Mitochondrion.
74
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
66. They Can Be Ejected From
Atomic Nuclei At Various Speeds
Question: How Is The Or Energies And Are Readily
Mitochondria Only Distributed Slowed Down To Very Low Energy
From The Mother? By A Series Of Collisions With Light
Nuclei, Such As Those Of
60. When An Egg Is Fertilized By Hydrogen, Deuterium, Or Carbon.
A Sperm, The Sperm's Mitochondria
Are Left Outside The Egg.
61. The Fertilized Zygote Inherits Question: How Does The
Only The Mother's Mitochondria. Neutron Perform Without The
62. This Maternal Inheritance Nucleus?
Creates A Family Tree That Is Not 67. When Expelled From The
Affected By The Typical Shuffling Nucleus, The Neutron Is Unstable
Of Genes That Occurs Between A And Decays To Form A Proton, An
Mother And Father. Electron, And A Neutrino.
68. Like The Proton And The
Electron, The Neutron Possesses
Question: What Are Neutrons? Angular Momentum, Or Spin.

63. Neutrons, Are Uncharged


Particles, One Of The Fundamental Question: How Does The
Particles Of Which Matter Is Neutron Work?
Composed. The Mass Of A Neutron
Is 1.0086654 Atomic Mass Units 69. Neutrons Act As Small,
(Amu). Individual Magnets; This Property
64. The Neutron Is A Constituent Enables Beams Of Polarized
Particle Of All Nuclei Of Mass Neutrons To Be Created.
Number Greater Than 1; That Is, Of 70. The Neutron Has A Negative
All Nuclei Except Ordinary Magnetic Moment Of -1.913141
Hydrogen. Nuclear Magnetons. Its Half-Life
Was Fixed Approximately At 10.61
Minutes.
Question: How Are Free
Neutrons Produced?
Question: What Is The
65. Free Neutrons—Those Antiparticle Of A Neutron?
Outside Of Atomic Nuclei—Are
Produced In Nuclear Reactions.
75
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
71. The Antiparticle Of A Neutron, Believed To Be Constituted Of Two
Known As An Antineutron, Has Up Quarks And One Down Quark.
The Same Mass, Spin, And Beta- 76. Later Theorists Assumed The
Decay Constant. Existence Of A Fourth Quark; In
72. These Particles Are Sometimes 1974 The Existence Of This Quark,
The Result Of The Collisions Of Named Charm, Was Experimentally
Antiprotons With Protons, And Confirmed.
They Possess A Magnetic Moment 77. Thereafter A Fifth And Sixth
Equal And Opposite To That Of Quark—Called Bottom And Top,
The Neutron. Respectively—Were Hypothesized
For Theoretical Reasons Of
Symmetry.
Question: What Does Theory Say
About The Neutron?
Question: Does A Quark Have
73. According To Current Particle An Antiparticle?
Theory, The Neutron And The
Antineutron, And Other Nuclear 78. Yes. Each Kind Of Quark Has
Particles Are Themselves Composed Its Antiparticle, And Each Kind Of
Of Quarks. Quark Or Antiquark Comes In
Three Types Of "Colors."
79. Quarks Can Be Either Red,
Question: What Are Quarks? Blue, Or Green, While Antiquarks
Can Be Either Anti-Red, Anti-Blue,
74. Quarks Are Any Of Six Or Anti-Green.
Hypothetical Particles That Are
Believed To Form The Basic
Constituents Of The Elementary Question: Do We See These
Particles Called Hadrons, Such As Colors?
The Proton, Neutron, And Pion.
80. No. These Quark And
Antiquark Colors Have Nothing To
Question: What Are Quarks Do With The Colors Seen By The
Classified As? Human Eye.
81. Rather, These Colors Represent
75. Quarks Were First Classified A Quantum Property.
As Three Kinds: Up, Down, And 82. When Combining To Form
Strange. The Proton, For Example, Is Hadrons, Quarks And Antiquarks

76
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Can Only Exist In Certain Color Thus A Magnetic Moment. In
Groupings. Addition, The Proton Obeys The
83. The Hypothetical Carrier Of Exclusion Principle.
The Force Between Quarks Is Called
The Gluon.
Question: How Many Protons
Are In The Nucleus?
Question: What Are Protons?
89. The Number Of Protons In
84. Protons Are Stable, Positively The Nucleus Of An Atom
Charged Sub-Atomic Particles In Determines What Element It Is; The
The Baryon Family Having A Mass Atomic Number Of An Element
1,836 Times That Of The Electron. Denotes The Number Of Protons In
From Greek Proton, Neuter Of The Nucleus.
Protos, Meaning "First".
85. The Proton Is A Nuclear
Particle Having A Positive Charge Question: How Is The Proton
Identical In Magnitude To The Used In Nuclear Physics?
Negative Charge Of An Electron,
And Together With The Neutron, A 90. In Nuclear Physics, The Proton
Constituent Of All Atomic Nuclei. Is Used As A Projectile In Large
The Proton Is Also Called A Accelerators To Bombard Nuclei To
Nucleon, As Is The Neutron. Produce Fundamental Particles. As
The Hydrogen Ion, The Proton
Plays An Important Role In
Question: How Is The Proton Chemistry.
Formed?

86. The Proton Forms, By Itself, Question: Is There An


The Nucleus Of The Hydrogen Antiproton?
Atom.
87. The Mass Of A Proton Is 91. Yes. The Antiproton, The
Approximately 1836 Times That Of Antiparticle Of The Proton, Is Also
An Electron, Or 1.6726 × 10-24 G. Called A Negative Proton. It Differs
Consequently, The Mass Of An From The Proton In Having A
Atom Is Contained Almost Entirely Negative Charge And Not Being A
In The Nucleus. Constituent Of Atomic Nuclei.
88. The Proton Has An Inward
Angular Momentum, Or Spin, And
77
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Is An
Antiproton?
Scroll Four
92. The Antiproton Is Stable In A
Vacuum And Does Not Decay The Smallest Particles Of Life
Spontaneously. (19x9=171)
93. When An Antiproton Collides
With A Proton Or A Neutron,
However, The Two Particles Are Question: What Are Things
Transformed Into Mesons, Which Made Of?
Have An Extremely Short Half-Life.
Because Protons Are Essential Parts All Things On This Side Are Made
Of Ordinary Matter, They Are Up Of Atoms, Which Are
Obviously Stable. Themselves Made Up Of Smaller
Particles Called Quarks, Beyond
Weight.
Question: What Is A Hadron? 2. There Are Even Smaller Called
Exotic Mesons Or Biaps, Such As
94. A Hadron Is Any Of A Class Protons: Units Of Positive
Of Sub-Atomic Particles That Are Electricity, Neutrons: Units Of
Composed Of Quarks And Take Neutral Electricity, And Electrons:
Part In The Strong Interaction. Electrically Negative Parts Of The
From The Greek Hadros, Meaning Atom; To Name A Few Which Are
"Thick". Made Of Zede Or Zele.

Question: What Is A Pion? Question: Now If H1 Is Recorded


As The Lighest Atom, Then
95. A Pion Is A Semistable Meson What Are Quarks, Biaps And
Produced Either In A Neutral Form Zedes?
With A Mass 264 Times That Of An
Electron And A Mean Lifetime Of 3. Quarks, Biaps, And Zedes Are
8.4 × 10–17 Second Or In A Beyond Weight Or Weightless,
Positively Charged Form With A Having No-Sum. Together, These
Mass 273 Times That Of An Form A Specific Pattern.
Electron And A Mean Lifetime Of
2.6 × 10–8 Second. Also Called Pi
Meson.

78
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So How Would You Infester, From Latin Infestere, From
Explain Atoms? Infestus, Meaning "Hostile".

4. Atoms Are Therefore,


Represented In A Circular Form Question: What Is The Link
And The Arrangement Of Its Between Manifestation And
Electrons In Relation To Its Nucleus Man-Infestation?
Is That Of The Planets To The Sun.
Quarks, Bi-Aps And Zedes Have 8. The Definition Explains Itself.
Form, Making Them Things With A The Word Infest, Or Infestation
Sum. Means To Be Hostile, And Human
Beings, For Their Very Survival,
Have To Be Hostile To Gaia, Or
Question: What Are Beneath Simply To Mother Nature, In Order
Atoms? To Survive. That Is, In Order For
Them To Build, They Must Destroy.
5. Beneath Atoms Are Quarks, 9. To Eat Vegetables, They Must
Smaller Forms Or Sums, And Rip Them From The Earth, And
Beyond That Is Ether, Without Thousands Of Years Of Man's-
What You Know As Form, The Infestation Has Resulted In The
Nearest You Can Get To Defining Plagues Of The Planet That Is
Ether Is Gas. Leading To Self Destruction By The
Mortal. This Is Not To Be Mistaken
With The Gods.
Question: So Zedes Are Without
Form?
Question: What Does This Have
To Do With Sub-Atomic Energy?
6. Yes, Zedes Or Zeles Are
Without Form Or Sum, As You
Know It On Your Seven Realm 10. Simply Sub-Atomic Means
Existence. The First Being The Beneath Atum, The Egyptian Deity,
Physical Plane, The Second Beyond Son Of Nun And His Female
The Plane Of Force. Counterpart Nunet. In The System
7. These Two Planes Identify Of The Male And Female You Find
Sums, Or The Equivalent Of The Chaotic Waters For When The
Manifestation. Man-Infestation, Male Ejaculates In The Liquid Filled
From The Middle English Infesten, Womb Of The Female, The Chaos
To Distress, From Old French Begins Between All The Sperm
Cells. They Race To See Which One
79
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Will Get To The Egg First, Parents Into Sub-Atomic Energies, As
Of Shu And Tefnut By Self Quarks, Bi-Aps And Zedes.
Fertilization, First Born Of The
Neteraat.
Question: What Is The Weight
Of A Zede?
Question: What Do These
Egyptian Deities Have To Do 13. On The Elemental Chart Of
With Nature? Matter As You Know It, Zedes
Would Have No Sum, Or Weight,
11. One: Nun Is The Male Part Making Them Nothingness When
And Nunet Is The Female Consort. Weighed On The Scale Of Sum, To
They Are The Deities Of Water. Something With Weight By The Law
3/4ths Of The Human Body Is Of Measurement. Its Center
Water, And The Lymphatic And Contains The Neutrons And
Circulatory Systems Are The Source Protons.
Of Life And Reproduction. Water Is 14. So, You Can See Where They
The Most Important Element In Get The Concept Of Gods, Living
Existence And Needed As A Source In A Spiritual Realm, Other Than
Of Conduction. Two: Shu, The The Physical Realm Would Be The
Male Is The Deity Of Air. Three: Link From The Material Plane Into
Tefnut, The Female Is The Deity Of The Plane Of Force, On To What
Rain And Moisture, That Is Becomes Known As The Spiritual
Atmosphere, Who Is The Mother Plane, Then The Mental.
Of Geb, The Male Deity Of Earth, 15. Notice, There Are Four Planes,
Soil, Sustenance, And This List Of And The Word Quarks, Or
Names Will Lead Into Nut, The Quantum, Is From The Number
Female Deity Of The Sky, Which Four.
Takes You Into Asaru The Male,
Aset The Female, Sutukh The Male,
And Nebthoot, The Female, Which Question: Is That Where They
Leads Into Human Kind. Get Their Spiritual Spook World
12. The Egyptians Were Known As From?
Alchemists, That Is Chemists. As
You Can See By The Names Of 16. Yes. They Refer To Them As
The Deities And What Is Ascribed Plasma, Plasmetic Energy, And
To Them, They Begin Before The Exmo-Plasma. The Word Plasma Is
Manifestation Of Nature And Matter From The New Latin, From Late
As You Know It, Which Puts Them Latin, Image, Figure, From Greek,
80
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
From Plassein, "To Mold", Where 23. Two Or More Atoms May
Energies And Gases Are Molded Combine Their Electrons And Form
Into Images, Called Etherians. A Chemical Unit Called A Molecule,
17. To The Religious Community, Mole-Cule.
Spiritual Or Angelic Beings. It Is All
Energy, Atoms, Protrons, Electrons
And Neutrons And Those Forces Question: What Is A Molecule?
Which Make Them Up.
24. A Molecule Is The Smallest
Particle Into Which An Element Or
Question: How Do Protons A Compound Can Be Divided
Work? Without Changing Its Chemical And
Physical Properties; A Group Of
18. Protons Carry A Positive Like Or Different Atoms Held
Electrical Charge (+) That Is The Together By Chemical Forces. From
Square. The French Molécule, From New
19. Around The Nucleus Are Latin Molecula, Diminutive Of Latin
Smaller Bodies Arranged In Rings. Moles, Meaning "Mass".
20. These Are Constantly Orbiting 25. Molecules Of Different
The Nucleus And They Are Called Elements May Combine To Form
Electrons. New Compounds. These Too,
Have Their Specific Patterns.

Question: What Are These


Particles Called? Question: What Is The Weight
Of An Atom?
21. The Path That These Particles
Which Carry A Negative Charge (-) 26. Each Atom Has A Specific
Are Called Shells. Weight Which Is The Sum Of The
Neutrons And Protons, And A
Specific Number Which Indicates Its
Question: How Many Protons, Appearance On The P Eriodic T
Electrons And Neutrons Does An Able Of E Lements That In The
Atom Have? Law Of Things, Something Or The
Sum Total Of A Thing.
22. Atoms Vary In The Amount 27. In Addition, A Symbol, The
Of Protons, Electrons And Initial Of The Elements To Which It
Neutrons According To The Belongs Is Also Used To Identify
Element To Which They Belong To. An Atom.
81
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What About The
Hydrogen Atom?
Question: Can You Give An
Example? 35. The H Ydrogen Atom Has An
Atomic Number Of One And An
28. Yes. The Be Ryllium Atom, Atomic Weight Of The Same
Appearing 4 On The P Eriodic T Number. The Un-Sum Of
Able, Has An Atomic Number Of Nothingness Is -1 Ether.
Four On The Sum Of Things. Yet, 36. Hydrogen Does Not Fulfill
On The Un-Sum Of Nothing Its - 4 The Requirements Of A Regular
Ether As Opposed To Matter 4. Atom. For One Thing, It Is The
29. The Element Is Identified By First On The Periodical Chart And
The Initials "Be". Is The Lightest And Simplest Atom
Or Sum.

Question: What Is The Atomic


Weight Of An Atom? Question: Where Did Helium
Come From?
30. An Atom Has An Atomic
Weight Of 9.012 Or 9.0. 37. It Was From A Single H
31. The Atomic Number Is Also Ydrogen Atom That H Elium Came
The Amount Of Protons. About.
38. In Order To Satisfy Its Need
For Completion, It Fused In The
Question: How Many Electrons Presence Of 3 Other H Ydrogen
Does An Atom Carry? Atoms So That The End Product
Was The H Elium Atom From 'I'
32. On The First Shell Of The Hydrogen To "We" Or "Us"
Atom There Are Usually Two Helium,
Electrons. 39. Which Satisfied The Condition
33. Other Shells May Have As For Being Complete, That Their
Many As 8. First Shell Hold 2 And Only 2
34. The Heaviest Atoms Are Electrons.
Those With The Most Electrons, 40. To Move On To The Actual
Which Determines The Amount Process Of The Obtaining Of H
An Atom Carries. Elium.

82
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Was The Final The Point Of Its Furthest
Product? Development, Back To The Root Of
Its Beginning, Then New Life Forms
41. The Final Product Of These 2 Link Etherically Back To Their
Stages Became The Helium Atom Beginning, And It Alters Its
Or Atum, A Composite Of Beings Beginning, So As New Life Forms
Into One, Aten, And Its Heavenly Come Into Existence, Which Are
Host, Or Neteraat. Links To The Beginnings Of Life
42. This Process, By A Grand Forms, Atoms Indeed Change.
Series And A Chain Of Reactions,
Re = Again Actions = Events, Re-
Occuring Events, Changed More Question: Why Do Modern Day
Hydrogen To Helium And Scientists Say Atoms Don't
Crystallization Of The Helium Change?
Took Place; Thus Forming A Solid
Substance In Which The Atoms Are 45. Because They Are Part Of A
Arranged In A Definite Pattern. Well Thought Out Plan To Cut Off
The Direct Link Between Living,
Question: Did This Complete The Lived And Life.
Atom?

43. A "Void" Area Occurred In Question: What Are These Three


The Atom, Between The Nucleus Principles, Living, Lived And
And Its Outer Shell. The Unseen, Life?
Existence Of Existence And The
Manifestation Of Things, The Shell 46. Let's Start With The Beginning
As The Names Are Written Life, Existence, Be It Intelligent By
Something - Anything, That Thing. Human Standards, Or In That
Intelligence Within Itself, As In The
Case Of A Jelly Fish That Has No
Question: Are Atoms Today The Brains, But Works Off Of An
Same As Atoms Of The Past? Instinctive Intelligence.
47. So Original Life Caused Living,
44. No. The Principle Is The Same. And Once Time And Change Has
But, The Mutation And Consumed The Original Form As In
Metamorphosis Of Life Means A The Case Of Sperm, To Fetas, To
Mutation, Growth, Development Baby, Then The Original Is
And New Forms Of Life, And Absorbed In What It's Becoming.
Because Existence Extends From Then "Lived" Is Accomplished
83
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
When It Has Reached The Peak Of A Planet Rotates And Revolves
What It Is To Become, And Man Around The Sun, Thus Electronics
Has Not Reached That Peak, He Is Would Yield The Meaning, Selected
Metamorphosing Into Totality, Motion, Energy In Motion.
Perfection. Thus, You Have Life,
Living And Lived, And This Applies
To Atoms And Cells As Well. Question: Is This What Existence
Is?

Question: What Is The 50. Yes. Repeated Solar Systems.


Difference Between The Energy Whether It's Atoms Or Cells. The
Of An Atom And The Energy Of Atom Today Has Many Sub-Shells,
A Cell? 99 Names That Is, Between The
Nucleus And Its Outer Shell (K)
48. They Only Differ In The Way There Are Other Shells Of Energy,
They Are Measured. Cells Work Off Etherians.
Of Electrical Impulses, Nerve 51. This Energy Is What Gives
Endings, And Atoms Works Off The Atom Substance, Messengers
Electrons. In Both Cases You See Of Truth. They Bring The Message
The Word Electra. Electron: Or None Would Know Of
Electronegative. From The New Latin Existence.
Electro-, From Latin Electrum, Amber, 52. Hebrews Said Yahweh,
From Greek Elektron. Christians Said Thehos, And
49. The True Meaning Of Electro, Muslims Said Allah, While Many
Or Electronics Is To Select Or Others Say Even Other Things As
Choose From The Middle English Names.
Electen, From Latin Eligere, Elect-, To 53. They All Are Wrong, For
Select : E-, Ex-, Ex- + Legere, To Yahweh, Thehos And Allah Are
Choose; Tron Is From Trans "To Physical Manifestations, Through
Move From Place To Place," As The What A Mortal Says Yahuwa
Solar System Has A Central Sun, Of "Moses" Thehos "Jesus" Allah
Helium And Hydrogen, Which "Muhammad", And Only Are
Would Be The Nucleus Of The Identified With The Physical Plane
Atom. The Planets Moving Around By Way Of These Messengers With
The Sun Would Be The Electrons, Whom They Would Not Exist.
And As There Is A Set Pattern And When True Existence Is Not
System Controlled By Forces, The Determined By The Hen, The Shell
Same Would Apply With Electrons Of The Egg, The Bayud "White" Of
In Motion Around The Nucleus, As The Egg, Or The Yoke Of The Egg,

84
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
But The Source Of Such A Well 57. The God Of Religion Who
Organized System Of Growths And Either Declares Or Thinks Things
Changes, Form To Becoming. Into Existence Must Be In The
Center.

Question: Is This The Beginning?


Question: Why Is That So?
54. This Is What Many Think Is
The Beginning, But In Actuality, 58. Because To Think Forward Is
You Can't Determine A Beginning To Acknowledge Backward. In
Until The End. Order For Future To Exist, Past
Must Have Already Existed, So If
God Started Existence From One
Question: How Can One Specific Point In Time, Time
Understand This Principle? Existed. To See God At The
Beginning Of Any Point Would Be
55. Time Is The Key And Change Depreciating His Abilities To Be At
Is The Motive. For You See, In The The Center Of All Things, And The
Religious Mind The Beginning Was Rim Of All Things At The Same
Caused By One Super Natural All Time.
Knowing God, Forgetting The
Principles Of Error, Mal-Functions,
Deformities, And Space, All Caused Question: If This Principle
By Energy. Applies For Space, Doesn't It
56. T His Energy Did Not Exist Also Apply For God?
Before Their God Created It. O F
Course This Is Merely A Belief, For 59. Absolutely, If There Is One
The Point Overlooked Is The Area God, There Must Be Another To
Which Fell Between The Nucleus, Determine The Principal Of One.
An Electron, It Was Of Total You Have No Need Of A One, If
Emptiness... A Vacuum, The There Is Not A Two And On, And
Dwelling Place Of Their Deity, You Can't Have A One, Without
Before Creation And Creatures To Percentages Of Itself. Each
Acknowledge Its Existence. Percentage Would Subdivide Into
Even Smaller Percentages Of Itself.
60. So The Principal Of Allah,
Question: So Where Would God (Rab) Or Eloh (God) Or Yahweh
Exist In Creation? (God), Adonai (Master), Being This
Individual Who Commands Things
85
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Into Being Is To Acknowledge That 64. The Most Abundant Element
This Individual Is Just That, An In The Universe Is Hydrogen.
Individual Out Of Many. An In- Although It Makes Up Less Than
Divide-Ual. One Percent Of The Earth's Crust,
61. One Of The Beings Divided Or By Weight, It Exists In Vast
Simply A Neter (Eloh) Of The Quantities As Part Of The Water In
Neteraat (Eloheem). These Beings Oceans, Lakes, Rivers And Ice.
Called By Different Names In 65. It Is Also Found In A Tree
Different Cultures Are Those That Structure In Gases In Vapor By
Seeded The Planet Now Called Ultra Violet Radiation From The
Earth. Sun Who Is Symbolic Of The
Tama-Rean "Egyptian" Deity Re. It
Is In All Things And Where It Is
Question: So Earth Is Like An Not, There Is No Life. It's One And
Electron Moving Around The Alone Being The First On The
Nucleus As The Sun? Element Chart.

62. Yes, In Fact Electrical Storms


On The Sun's Surface Coming From Question: Where Else Is
Its Center And Erupting On Its Hydrogen Found?
Surface, Resulted In The Planet
Moving Away From The Sun And 66. Hydrogen Is Also Found In
Getting Caught In Its Gravitational All Animal And Vegetable Tissue As
Pull. This Turning Of Atoms Of Part Of Several Carbon
Crystallization Still Continued. Compounds.
63. Ev Ery Element Originated
From Hydrogen. Because In Order
To Obtain "Something", You Have Question: What Are The Outer
To Start With Nothingness.....Void!!! Precincts Of The Atom
If Any God Is One And Alone, Controlled By?
Having No Equals, Then He Is The
Hydrogen Atom, Think On That. 67. The Outer Precincts Of The
Atom Are Controlled By A Shell, A
Negatively Charged Particle, Called
Question: What Is The Most The Electron.
Abundant Element In The
Universe?
Question: What Are Photons?

86
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
68. Photons Are The Quantum Question: What's In The Realm
Of Electromagnetic Energy, Of These Nuclear Forces?
Generally Regarded As A Discrete
Particle Having Zero Mass, No 73. The Weak Force Mediates The
Electric Charge, And An Indefinitely Process Of Radioactive Decay,
Long Lifetime, Seen As Light While The Strong Force Binds The
Released As Electrons Move Quarks Together, Weaving Webs Of
Between Shells. Energy Into The Form We Call
Matter, Hu-Min, Mortal S. God
In Flesh.
Question: What Do Photons Do?

69. Photons Carry Electromagne Question: What Is The Weak


Tic Forces Between The Electron's Force?
Shells, Then They Pass Through The
Inner Shell Of Carbon Atom, 74. The Weak Force Is A
Approaching One Of The Oldest Fundamental Interaction Between
And Magnificent Structures Of Elementary Particles That Is Several
Nature, The Nucleus Of The Atom . Orders Of Magnitude Weaker Than
The Electromagnetic Interaction
And Is Responsible For Some
Question: What Is The Nucleus Particle Decay, Nuclear Beta Decay,
Made Of? And Neutrino Absorption And
Emission, Also Called Weak
70. The Nucleus Is Made Up Of Interaction.
Protons And Neutrons , P=Positive
And N=Negative, Souls And Spirits
. Question: What Is The Strong
71. These Nucleus Particles Are In Force?
Turn Made Up Of Trios, Of Even
Older And More Fundamental 75. The Strong Force Is A
Particles, The Quarks. Trios = Fundamental Interaction Between
Three Or Om, Sal, Afsu , The Elementary Particles That Causes
Three Original Suns Then Came Protons And Neutrons To Bind
Shamesh. Together In The Atomic Nucleus.
72. Now We've Reached The Also Called Strong Interaction,
Realm Of The Nuclear Forces . Inter-Action.

87
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: How Do Sub-Atomic 80. Solidity Is An Illusion Created
Particles Interact? By Electromagnetic Forces That
Bind The Atoms Together, Or They
76. Sub-Atomic Particles Interact Look Together, When In Fact They
By Means Of 4 Fundamental Forces, Are N Ot.
(1) Gravitation (Physical
Attraction), (2) Electro Magnetism
(Emotions), (3) The Weak (Love) Question: How Is Electro-
And (4) Strong (Hate) Nuclear Magnetism Carried?
Forces . The Nature Of Things Seen
And Unseen. 81. Electromagnetism Is Carried
By Photons, And It Is Infinite In
Rang E. Together Means To-Gather,
Question: What Is Gravitation? Not Become The Same .
82. It Is Electromagnetism That
77. Gravitation Is The Natural Carries Its Rays From The Light To
Phenomenon Of Attraction Between The Stars And This Sun Is Just That,
Massive Bodies. Its Opposite Is A Star, All Happening In And Out
Levity. Of The Darkness; 3 Degrees Of
Darkness.

Question: What Is
Electromagnetism? Question: What Does The Weak
Nuclear Force Do?
78. Electromagnetism Is
Magnetism Produced By Electric 83. The Weak Nuclear Force
Charge In Motion. 2. The Physics Helps Power The Sun, And It
Of Electricity And Magnetism. It Presides Over The Phenomenon Of
Created Its Own Opposites. Nuclear Decay.
84. Tremendous Amounts Of
Energy Are Bound Up In The
Question: How Do Particles And Nucleus Of Each Atom (Solar
Forces Effect Everyday Life? Plexus ).
85. Some Nuclei Are Unstable
79. Particles And Forces Are The And Can't Contain Their Energy
Authors Of Every Event In Life, Forever (Spontaneous Combusti
From The Exotic To The Every On).
Day. 86. When They Decay, It's The
Weak Force Carried By Particles
88
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Called Weak Bosons That Governs 92. Gravitation, The Universal
The Proce Ss. Attracting Of All Massive Particles
Towards One Another Is T He
Weakest Of The Four Forces, But
Question: What About The Gravity Has Infinite Range And It
Strong Nuclear Force? Always Attracts, Never Repels (The
Electromagnetic Force).
87. The Strong Nuclear Force 93. The Single Minded Dedication,
Binds Quarks Together To Make That Makes Gravity The Force That
Protons And Neutron S. Holds The Planets, The Stars And
88. Without It, There Would Be The Galaxies Together (The
No Atoms (Cells) And The Universe Sympathetic Nervous System).
(Body) Would Be A Quark Fog
(Spirit) .
89. Strong Nuclear Forces Holds Question: Why Are There Forces
Quarks Together To Make Protons Different And Profound In
And Neutrons (Red And White Character (Body, Spirit, Soul
Blood Corpuscles) . And Ether)?

94. There Was Two Basic Forces,


Question: What Was The Levity, The Tendency Of Light
Universe Composed Of Before Objects To Rise, And Gravity, The
The Existence Of Protons And Tendency Of Heavy Objects To Fall.
Neutrons? 95. Weak Bozons, Are Heavy
And Can Travel A Very Short
90. When Protons And Neutrons Distance Before They Decay.
Didn't Exist, The Universe Was A 96. That's Why The Weak Force Is
Soup Quarks (Souls ). Only Limited To The Bank Of The
91. The Strong Forces Carried By Atom.
Particles Of The Physicists Called
Gluons, Because They Act Like The
Most Perfect Imaginable Glue Question: What's Beneath The
(Plasma) . Atom?

97. Smaller Particles Called Zedes.


Question: Is Gravitation A
Strong Force?
Question: What Is A Zede?

89
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
98. Just As You Have What's 104. The Universe Today In Its
Called The Lightest Element Natural Form Is Too Cold For Zede
Hydrogen, Once The Hydrogen Particles To Exist. However With
Atom Splits, It Became Quarks, The Splitting Of An Atom Created
Once The Two Pairs Of Quarks By Circular Motion, Where The
Split, They Become Bi-Aps, Which Atom Is Sped Up To The Point,
Is Short For Bi-Apetures Of Quarks. Where It Catches Up With Itself
And Each Bi-Aperture Again Sub- And This Collision, Causes An
Divides To Create Zedes. Explosion Of Intense Heat That
Yields The Zede. So With A Little
Help They Can Be Created.
Question: How Is This
Accomplished?
Question: What Are Bi-Aps?
99. Well, Scientists Were Informed
By Extraterrestrials That By Simply 105. When The Heat And Atom
Turning Up The Heat, Fueled By Comes Together, They Are Called
The Ambient Energy, A New Bi-Aps, Or Two Apertures, Then
Particle Called Zedes Or Zeles Will They Transform Into Zedes, Or
Appear, Which Is Capable Of Zeles.
Knitting Electromagnetic And The
Weak Force.
100. Photon Carried Off Question: How Is A Bi-Ap
Electromagnetic Decays, To Form A Formed?
Pair Of Weak Bozons, Carriers Of
The Weak Force. 106. You Have Protons And Anti
101. Bozons Transform Protons, When Matter Meets Anti
Themselves Back Into Zede. Matter The Results Is Annihilation,
102. Zede Particles Could Be They Cancel Each Other Out.
Created In Abundance Out Of The 107. A B I-Ap Is Made Of Proton
Heat Of The Electro Weak Epoch, And Anti Proton, When They
Weak Bozons And Photons Acted Collide They Become Zede, Put As
Interchangeably When The Universe Two Parts They Are Bi-Apertures.
Was Ruled By 3 Forces And Not
Four, The Law Of The Tetrahedron.
103. So We Have Two Forces Question: What Is Einstein's
Now, (1) Electromagnetic Forces, Theory?
(2) Weak Forces.

90
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
108. Firstly, The Character Of The 112. Most Particle Physicists Agree
Man And His Actions Renders Him That All The Elementary Particles In
Not The Genius Once Thought. For The Large Class Called Hadron
He Was A Chain Smoker, And (Which Includes The Proton) Are
Should Have Known The Dangers Made Of Various Combinations Of
Of Cigar Pipe And Cigarette (Probably) Six Types Of Quarks.
Smoking On A Human Body. But 113. These Quarks Are In Turn
As A Mathematician, He Was Quite Thought To Be Held Together By
Wise. The Exchange Of Possibly Eight
Types Of Gluon, Or Field Quanta.
114. Some Theorists, However,
Question: What Was His Propose A "Diquark" Model That
Theory? Does Not Require Gluons. This
Branch Of Particle Physics Is Called
109. It Was Known As T He Quantum Chromodynamics.
Grand Unified Theories, Which Says 115. Alternately A Gluon Striking
That There Are Triaps, Still Higher A Quant Can Be Transformed Into
Energy Levels, Three Of The Four A Weak Bozon.
Forces Might Function As A Single
Force, Exotic Particle Would Do
The Work Of Unification, It's Called Question: What Do Energy
The Quant, From Which They Particles Live On?
Derive Quantum, The Unknowing
Refer To It As The X Particle. 116. Particles Of Energy Live On
110. A Gluon, Carrier Of The Borrowed Time.
Strong Force Strikes A Quant, And 117. They Gather Themselves Up
It Is Transformed Into A Photon, From The Stray Energy In A
The Carrier Of Electromagnetism. Vacuum, Then Go Back On Into
Existence.

Question: What Is A Gluon?


Question: Is The Same Principles
111. Gluon, In Physics, Is A Of Colliding Atoms To Produce
Hypothetical Massless, Neutral New Forms Of Energy, Necessary
Elementary Sub-Atomic Particle, In Bending Time?
Which Mediates The Strong
Interaction That Binds Quarks 118. Yes It Is.
Together. 119. To Speed Up The Distance
Of The Upper Perimeter, To The
91
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Cloned Body, Which Results In The Question: What About Dealing
Particle Arriving At The Upper With Energy?
Perimeter, Point Of Origin, Before
The Particle Of The Body Can 125. In Energy This Same
Complete Its Journey Through The Principle, By Altering The Vibration
Clone To Arrive At The Same Point. Levels Can Be Made To Facilitate
120. Thus, Time Can Be Reversed The Same Space At The Same Time.
And Traveling In The Past 126. So We, The Ancients, Knew
Accomplished. To Seperate By Referring To One,
121. As Long As The Two As An Atom, And The Other, As
Particles Or Beings That Are The Adam.
Same Do Not Come Into Physical
Contact With Each Other.
Question: Are You Saying That
Atom And Adam Of The Bible
Question: What Would Happen Are The Same?
If They Do?
127. Well To Look At The Name
122. In This Case The Same Atom And Realize That There Is A
Particles Would Be Occupying The Tama-Rean Deity Call Atum, The
Same Place At The Same Time Yet, Head Of The Nine Enneads, (1.
From Two Different Time Sutukh, 2. Nebthet, 3. Aset, 4.
References. Asaru, 5. Nut, 6. Geb, 7. Tefnut,
8. Shu, 9. Re, The 9 Months Of
Conception For Birth Through The
Question: What About In The Woman), That Predated The Atom,
Case Of The Human Being? Which Comes From The Middle
English Attome, From Latin Atomus,
123. In The Case Of The Human From Greek Atomos, Indivisible,
Being, His Zero Time Reference, Atom : A-, Not; See A-1 + Tomos,
That Is The Point Of His Origin In Cutting (From Temnein, To Cut, And
This Time Frame Would Cause His The Hieratic Or Demotic Languages
Counterpart To Merge, Turning As Well As The Hieroglyphics Of
Inside Out. Ancient Egypt Predate English,
124. It Would Also Eliminate All Latin And Greek. It Should Be Clear
And Every Created, Thought And That The Phonetics Or Intonation
People Who Came In Contact With Of Atom Had To Have Come From
The Being Or Person. Atum, Which Is Also Spelled Atom.

92
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What About Adam? Neteraats, Whose First Abode
After Leaving Rizq Was Sibtu
128. The Same Applies. You Find "Sirius" In Ihm "Illyuwn", Before
The Word Adama In Ugaritic, Coming To This Milky Way, In
Akkadian, Chaldean, Sumerian, The Which This Planet Is A Part.
Tongues Of Ancient Babylon, Long
Before It Got Into The Bible Of
The Jews And The Christians, And Question: I Thought Atum Was
The Koran Of The Moslems. So A Person, Not The Sun?
Again With A Little Research It
Would Show You That It Also Is 132. And You Are Right In One
Borrowed. Respect. Atum As Atum-Re Or
Simply Tum Was The Great
Alchemist, From The 19th Galaxy
Question: So What Does That Ihm, Of Which Sibtu (Sirius) Was A
Have To Do With Atom, The Part.
Atomic Energy And Adam The
Man?
Question: And This Atum Came
129. Both Are The Point Of Origin To Earth?
From Energy In Motion, Or
Emotion. 133. Kane. This Atum, Called
130. That Is, From The Atom You Atum-Re Or Tum Was One Of
Get All Energy And From The The Incarnated Neteraat Priesthood
Adam You Get All Living Beings, Called Sem, And Was The Father
Or At Least This Is What Religious Of The Project Nun, Thus It Is Said
People Of Monotheism Are Taught Nun Gave Birth To Atum.
And Believe. So You Can See The
Clear Similarity Between Atom And
Adam. Question: So This Atum Was The
Son Of Nun?

Question: How Does The Tama- 134. Yes, Symbolically Speaking, As


Re Part Fit In? It Was Taught Previously, Atum Is
The Son Of The Force Of The
131. Because Atum As One Of Chaotic Waters, Nun, Whose Semen
The Three Res Or Suns, Namely: 1. Was Placed In The Womb Of
Atum 2. Atun And 3. Amun, Of Nunet His Consort, Bred Atum,
The Egyptian Gods Called The And This Germ As The Sea-Man,
93
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Semen Was Extracted From Atum Three Dolphin Genes That Were Similar
As Sperm, And Placed In The To Human Genes. Until Now,
Womb Of The Dolphin, For Researchers Have Never Been Able To Do
Transportation. Genetic Studies Of Dolphins Because They
135. This Is Called In-Vitro Are A Protected Species, Making It
Fertilization. The Word Womb Is Diffiult To Get Tissues Frm Them."
Dolphin, From The Middle English,
From Old French Daulfin, Blend Of
Daufin And Old Provençal Dalfin, Question: What Was The
Both From Medieval Latin *Dalfinus, Dolphin Project?
From Latin Delphinus, From Greek
Delphis, Delfin-, From Delphus, 136. This Dolphin Project Is
Meaning "Womb" (From Its Shape). Called The Fish-Man, And The
Scientists Today Have Just Genes Were Transported To This
Discovered That The Human Genes Planet In The Dolphin By Artificial
Is Closer To Dolphins Than Any Insemination, Which Led Into
Land Animals, As Was Recorded Cloning. Why There Are Seven
From The Discovery Channel, 8- Copies Of Each Person On Earth.
24-98. Taken From Discovery
Channel Online: "For Years, Marine
Biologists Have Told Us That Dolphins Question: What Do You Mean By
Share Many Traits With Humans, Chaotic Waters?
Including Intelligence And Friendliness.
Now, A Comparison Of Dolphin And 137. The Lymphatic And
Human Chromosomes Shows That The Circulatory System Of The Human
Genetic Make-Up Of Dolphins Is Being, Where The Chaos Begins, Is
Amazingly Similar To Humans. In Fact, When The Sperm Released From
Researchers At Texas A&M University The Male, Millions By The Millions
Have Found That Dolphins Have More Chaotically Races For The Egg In
In Common With Us Genetically Than The Ovum, And One Or Two In
Cows, Horses Or Pigs. Researchers At The Case Of Twins Succeeds. These
Texas A&M University Applied Are Chaotic Waters, For This Is All
"Paints", Or Fluorescently Labeled Done In The Liquid System Of The
Human Chromosomes, To Dolphin Body Of The Female.
Chromosomes, As Human Chromosomes.
Of The Remaining Nine Dolphin
Chromosomes, Many Were Combinations Question: How Was This Done?
Or Rearrangements Of Their Human
Counterparts. Researchers Also Identified

94
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
138. This Process Was Done By 141. It's Where The Geneticists Set
In-Vitro Fertilization, Transporting Out To Breed Or Re-Fill This Planet
Genes In The Dolphin To This With Beings Similar To Themselves,
Planet. Which In Time, With Much Or Re - Plenty The Earth,
Care Became The Fungi And Algae (Replenish) The Earth With
Of The Seas, And Then It Was Humans, And Protect Their Frail
Placed Into The Test Tubes Of The Beings From The Direct Rays Of
Ghibbore Or Alchemists, Who Bred The Sun.
Mortals.

Question: And How Was That To


Question: So Nun Is A Be Done?
Laboratory Project?
142. By Creating A Buga, Or
139. Yes. Nun, Also Known As Curvature Of Spheres As The
Nu Which Is The Sacred And Rainbow Is An Arch Of All Seven
Symbolic Name Used In The Spectral Colors, Appearing In The
Laboratory For This Great Project Sky 1) Red, 2) Orange, 3) Yellow, 4)
Of Seeding The Planet Earth With Green, 5) Blue, 6) Indigo, 7) Violet,
The Genes Of Amun And His And These Come From The Direct
Consort Amunet, Also Known As Rays Of The Sunlight, Broken Down
Niu And Niut. Or Bent As In A Bow.

Question: I Thought Atum Was Question: Are These Symbolic Of


The Son Of Nun And Nunet? The Spheres?

140. Yes, Atum As Mentioned Is A 143. Yes. You Have Your Seven
Part Of A Triad Of Three Spheres, 1) Troposphere, 2)
Geneticists Called Re, The All Stratosphere, 3) Mesosphere, 4)
Seeing "Eye", Which Oversee S The Thermosphere, 5) Ionosphere, 6)
Project, Symbolic Of The Iris Of Exosphere, 7) Outerspace, Just As A
The Eye, And Iris Means "Rainbow" Rainbow Has Seven Colors, So Does
Or The Rainbow Project. The Environment, It Also Has
Seven Spheres To Protect This
Newly Created Being From The
Question: Just What Is The Ultraviolet And Gamma Rays
Rainbow Project? Coming From The Sun.

95
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Who Are These Three
Genecists?
Question: Who And What Are
144. All Three Deities Are One In They To Humans?
The Order Of Re, That Is Atum,
Atun And Amun, And Amun As A 147. They Are The Human's
Scientist Volunteered To Use His Ancestors, Which Explains Why
Semen For The Experiment. Humans Have Gills While In The
Womb, Like A Tadpole, And A Tail,
Webs Between Their Fingers, And
Question: Why Is The An Inconstant Need Of An
Reproductive Fluid Of The Emergence In Water, Or The Intake
Human Referred To As Semen? Of Water, Or They Dehydrate.
148. At Their Arm Pits, There Is
145. Because They Are The Still Traces Of The Wings.
Original Ogdoad, Or 8 Sea
Creatures That Emerged From The
Island Of Flame, Referred To As Ur Question: Which Ones Are
Or "Light, Flame", Or Simply Their Directly Related?
Crafts Crashed Down In The Nile
River. 149. There Are 8, And They Are
Called Ogdoads, Also Called The
Malayket Bahri, River Angels,
Question: Are They Known By From Which The Mermaid Stories
Any Other Names In Any Other Came About.
Cultures? 150. There Were Four Pairs.
151. One Pair For Each Of The
146. Yes The Dogons Called Genetic Changes.
Them Nommos, The Yoruba
Referred To Them As Olukun, The
Pygmies In Africa Referred To Question: What Do You Mean By
Them As Ogrigwabibikwa, The Genetic Changes?
Dwarfs Who Changed Into Reptiles,
The Greeks Used Dercito, For 152. All Laboratory Experiments
Fishtail Humans, The Dealing With Genes, The Total
Mesopotamians Use Dagan, Half Changes Appear Every 4
Man Half Fish, The East Indians Say Generations.
Takshaka, King Of The Naga
Serpents.
96
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Who Are The Eight Or On Earth Shu, Symbolic Of Air,
Four Pairs In Ancient Tama-Re? "Breathing, Breath Of Life" And
Tefnut, Symbolic Of Water
153. They Are: Nun And Nunet, "Circulatory System". It Is Recorded "I
Heh And Hehet, Kek And Keket, Breathed (Neshamaw) Into His
Amun And Amunet, Whose Secret Nostrils, The Breath (Nephesh) Of Life
Names Were Niu And Niut. (Khay) And Man Became A Living
154. You Also Had Another Breed Nephesh", Nefu, The Seed Made
Of Genetic Strain, That Were Flesh By What Is Called Self
Known As The Dogri, Or Evil Fertilization, Is In Actuality The
Beings, Who Also Lived In The Nile Power To Pro-Create On Their
And From Whom The Serpent Of Own, Called The First Born Of The
Your Bible Came. Neteraat "Gods", Called Hu-Mim,
Combined Breed Of Reptile And
Mammal.
Question: Is This The Reptilian
Or Devil Story?
Question: Then What Happened?
155. Yes. This Project Was Called
Apophis, Also Known As Apep. 157. After This, These Sons Of
These Dogri Can Change The Gods, Neteraat, Anunnagi,
Themselves At Will Into Crocodiles, Nefileems, Ghibbore Went Into
Cats, Dogs, Hyenas, Goats, Frogs, The Daughters, Sexually Of These
Rocks, Trees, Plants, Piles Of Dates, Mortals And The Sons Of Gods
Or The Most Dangerous Disguises Were Born.
Of Men. These Became The
Symbolic Headresses And Costumes
For The Rituals Of Remembrance, Question: Are There Names
And The Secrets Of The True Recorded?
Origin Of The Human Being, Which
Is The Best Kept Secret. 158. Yes, They Are Recorded In
Ancient Tama-Re As Geb ,
Symbolic Of Earth "The Body"; And
Question: Who Oversaw This Nut, Symbolic Of The Sky "The
Laboratory Experiment? Mind". She Begot Asaru , Symbolic
Of Vegetation, Aset , Symbolic Of
156. Two Humans With Sacred Red Blood Cells, Corpuscles,
Symbolic Names, Neter: Amun Sutukh Symbolic Of Ignorance,
And Netert: Amunet, Who Bred And Nebthoot , Symbolic Of White
97
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Corpuscles. These Two Asaru And Question: Where Is The
Aset Begot Haru, Symbolic Of The Comparison?
Sun In The Sky.
159. Also This Asaru And The 166. The Comparison Comes From
Wife Of Sutukh, Nebthoot Gave The Conflict Between The Scientists
Birth To Anubu, Symbolic Of And The Theologians.
Death. 167. All Life Began To The
160. This Copulation Is What Bred Scientists With Atoms And Cells.
The Jealousy That Caused The 168. According To The Theologian
Death Of Asaru By Sutukh. All Life Began From A Man Named
Adam With A Soul.
Question: So Is That The Same
As Adam? Question: So Was There An
Adam In The Bible?
161. That Is Correct, In Concept 169. Again A Little Research Will
And Belief, For Adam Is Also The Show You That All Of The Stories
Son Of Atum And Lillith. And Fables In Your Bible Are
162. He Was The Father Of Cain Copied From The Egyptian
And Abel, Whose True Name Was Mysteries.
Kadmon, Was Part Of Another 170. Information That All Of Your
Seeding, Cloning And Replenishing Sacred Societies World Over Know
Of The Planet Earth, But Was And Confirm.
Supposed To Have Been Created 171. It Is The Religious Fanatics,
From The Dust Of The Ground, The Self Righteous That Are Blinded
Which Would Be The Same As Self By The Great Beam Of Light That
Fertilization, Because Fertilizer Is Prevents The Inner Sight.
Soil.
163. He Is Said To Be Created
From The Dust Of The Ground. Scroll Five
164. So You Can See The Similarity
Between Atum And Adam, And The Beginning Of Plant Life, The
Where They Got The Adam Story. Third Stage
165. Being The Egyptian Stories
Pre-Date The Judaic-Christian- (19x8=152)
Islamic Bible And Koran, It Is Clear
From Which The Plagiarism Came. The Ancient Tama-Rean Deity
Over Plant Life Is Called
Renenutet, Also Called
Thermuthis. I Am That I Am,
98
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Known As The Neter: Amunnubi Was Hieratic And Demotic, And
Roakhptah, Also Called Atum-Re, You Find Many Mentions Of Shu
And Tum Must Let My Voice Be And His Mate Tefnut In The Old
Heard On This Great Deity. Writing.
2. The Great A'aferti "Pharoah"
Amenemnes 3rd Resting On The
Limestone Base Is The One Who Question: So Is This Shu An
Decorated The Temple Of Sobek In Actual Person?
Kiman Fares, And Dedicated And
Built A Temple To Renenutet, At A 5. Yes He Was, And Also A
City Near Cairo, Egypt Today. Symbol Worldwide. Primitive
Peoples All Over The World Have
Identified "Air" And "Breath" With
Question: Is This A Tama-Rean "Spirit."
Ritual?

3. Yes This Dedication Was On Question: So Is Respect Of Air,


Behalf Of Life, Growth, Vegetation, Respect Of Spirit?
The Provider Of Sustenance To
Sustain The Physical Body, The 6. Yes, This Is Why In Religious
Provider Of Fresh Air Shu, To Circles They Are Always Looking
Sustain The Body And Trigger The For The Holy Spirit, In The Form
Ethers Through Proper Breathing. Of One Of Three Persons, Or For
This Dedication Was To Nourish A Spiritual Enlightment Through
Healthy Being Through Proper Chants, Dhikrs, Hymns, Mantras,
Eating. Yet, We Need To Breathe That All Pertains To Breathing And
To Live, So Breath Is Also A Vibration Through Proper
Physical Person. Intonation.
7. Thus, We Must Acknowledge
This Great Deity, Renenutet And
Question: What Is The Meaning Make Her Message And Methods
Of Shu? Known To The True Seekers, As To
What Was Discussed In The Dark
4. Shu, In Ancient Tama-Re Chambers Of Wa-Set That Great
Means "Uplifter, To Uplift Oneself". He Mystic Shrine At Nu-Amun, Thebes
Is Identified With The Air, Found In Or Luxor Today, And The Other
Hieroglyphs. Hiero Means "Sacred" Two Great Cities Heliopolis And
And Glyphs Means "Inscriptions". Memphis. That Is H.T.M, The
The Script And The Spoken Tongue Place To Learn The Secrets.
99
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Environments And Conditions, In
Which They Can Adapt.
Question: So Is The Ancient
Tama-Re Related To Growth
And Development? Question: What Is Bacteria?

8. Yes And We Live That Today. 11. Bacteria Which Is Plural Of


There Were And Are To This Day, Bacterium Is Any Of The
Cycles Of Growth. Periods Of Time Unicellular, Prokaryotic
For That Which Is Planted To Microorganisms Of The Class
Grow. All Farmers Are In Debt To Schizomycetes, Which Vary In
The Farmer Of Farmers, Nature Terms Of Morphology, Oxygen And
(Neteraat), And There Would Be Nutritional Requirements, And
No Growth Without Re (Ra), The Motility, And May Be Free-Living,
Sun. Saprophytic, Or Pathogenic, The
Latter Causing Disease In Plants
And Animals.
Question: When Did Plant Life
Begin?
Question: Why Is This Important
9. During The Third Period Of Information At This Time?
Creation, Or Re-Creation By The
Neteraat, Anutu, The First Forms 12. Because Most Of Us Have
Of Life Of This Cycle, As You Studied It Through Our Journeys In
Know It Began To Appear Which The Education System, Regardless
Were Simple Plants That Began As Of What School, Or Country Or
One-Celled Organisms Of The Language That We Learned In. We
Classes Known Today As Bacteria Never Thought The Day Would
And Algae. Come When Scientists Would Be
Manipulating The Climate, The
Weather And The Atmosphere To
Question: Where Did These Create Destructive Viruses And
Plants Originate? Bacteria, But This Day Has Come.
So It Is Important To Learn These
10. They Originated In The Air, Sciences.
And On Into The Waters, Yet In
Many Cases Their Structure And
Composition Enabled Them To Question: What Is A Virus?
Exist In All Types Of
100
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
13. A Virus Is Any Of Various Question: What Is An Organ?
Simple Submicroscopic Parasites Of
Plants, Animals, And Bacteria That 17. A Differentiated Part Of An
Often Cause Disease And That Organism, Such As An Eye, A Wing,
Consist Essentially Of A Core Of Or A Leaf, That Performs A Specific
RNA Or DNA Surrounded By A Function. An Instrument Or Agency
Protein Coat. Unable To Replicate Dedicated To The Performance Of
Without A Host Cell, Viruses Are Specified Functions. An Atom Or A
Typically Not Considered Living Cell Together In A Mass, Being Held
Organisms. From The Latin Virus, Together By Electromagnetism.
Meaning "Poison".

Question: Does A Musical Organ


Question: What Language Does Have Anything To Do With This?
The Word Bacteria Come From?
18. They Both Stem From The
14. The Word Bacteria Comes Same Word. A Musical Organ Is An
From The New Latin, From Greek Instrument Consisting Of A
Bakterion, Diminutive Of Baktron, Number Of Pipes That Sound
Meaning "Rod". Bacteria Tones When Supplied With Air And
(Bacterium, Singular), A Keyboard That Operates A
Microorganisms That Lack Internal Mechanism Controlling The Flow
Cell Membranes. Of Air To The Pipes.
15. The Most Common And 19. Both Organs Perform The
Ancient Organisms On Earth, Same Way. From The Middle
Bacteria Are Intimately Connected English, From Old French Organe
To The Lives Of All Organisms. And From Old English Organe, Both
From Latin Organum, Tool,
Instrument, From Greek Organon,
Question: What Is An Organism? Meaning "Work".
16. An Individual Form Of Life,
Such As A Plant, An Animal, A
Bacterium, A Protist, Or A Fungus; Question: Do Bacteria Differ In
A Body Made Up Of Organs, Sizes?
Organelles, Or Other Parts That
Work Together To Carry On The 20. Yes. Most Bacteria Are Less
Various Processes Of Life. Than 1 Micron (0.001 Mm/0.00004
In) In Length. Hundreds Of
Thousands Of Bacteria Can Fit Into
101
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
A Space The Size Of The Period At Question: What Is
The End Of This Sentence. Photosynthesis?
21. However, Colonies Of Bacteria,
Such As On A Laboratory Culture 25. Photosynthesis Is The
Plate Or On The Surface Of Salt Process By Which Chlorophyll,
Marsh Muds, Can Easily Be Viewed Containing Organisms, Green
Without A Microscope. Plants, Algae, And Some Bacteria
Capture Energy In The Form Of
Light And Convert It To Chemical
Question: What Is Prokaryotic? Energy.
26. Virtually All The Energy
22. Prokaryote Is Any Of A Available For Life In The Earth's
Group Of Relatively Simple Biosphere, The Zone In Which Life
Unicellular Organisms Lacking A Can Exist, Is Made Available
Nucleus And Other Features Found Through Photosynthesis.
In The More Complex Cells Of All
Other Organisms, Called
Eukaryotes. Question: The Earth Has A
23. The Term Prokaryote Is From Biosphere?
The Greek Pro, "Before"; Karyon,
"Nut, Kernel; Nucleus". There Are 27. Yes. They Too Are 1) Water,
Two Types Of Prokaryotes: And 2) Soil.
Eubacteria (True Bacteria, Including
Cyanobacteria) And Archaea (Or
Archaebacteria). Question: What Is A Biosphere?

28. A Biosphere, The Earth's


Question: What Is
Relatively Thin Zone Of Air, Soil,
Cyanobacteria?
And Water That Is Capable Of
Supporting Life, Ranging From
24. Cyanobacteria, Which Is About 10 Km (About 6 Mi) Into
Formerly Known As Blue-Green The Atmosphere To The Deepest
Algae Are Among The Only Bacteria Ocean Floor. Life In This Zone
That Can Perform Photosynthesis. Depends On The Sun's Energy And
With Some Exceptions, Bacteria On The Circulation Of Heat And
Cannot Perform Whereas Essential Nutrients.
Cyanobacteria Can.

102
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Why Do They Call It A Environment Conducive For New
Dome Structure With A Forms Of Life.
Controlled Atmosphere, If Earth
Already Has One?
29. Quite Simply, They Are Wrong. Question: How Would You
If They Set An Atmosphere Beneath Describe Life On Earth?
The Water, That Is Two Spheres. If
They Set One Beneath The Soil, 31. A Good Question, Because
That's Two Spheres, If They Set There Are Various Forms Of Life
Another In The Sky, That's Two On Earth Living In Different
Spheres, If They Set One Outside Environments.
The Earth's Atmosphere, Where 32. In Fact, In View Of The Fact
There Is No Air, That Would Be That There Is More Water To
Two Spheres. So You See, The Man- Surface Of The Planet Than Earth,
Made Environment Called A Sphere, It Should Be Called The "Planet
Would Be An Addition To The Water", And Not The "Planet
Many Other Spheres Or Earth". What They Call Continents
Environments Already Here. Are In Actuality One Continent
Connected. Either Above Or
Beneath The Water.
Question: What Was The
Original Atmosphere Of This
Planet? Question: What Of Life On
Earth?
30. That Depends On Before The
Suns Or After. Before The Suns And 33. Meaning The Surface Of The
In Particular, This Sun, You Had No Ground And The Seas And The Air.
Atmosphere. The Planet Was A This Life On What's Called Earth Is
Mass Of Ice For 2400 Miles. Frequently Described As Being
Beneath These Ice Caps Were Dark Either Prokaryotic (Microscopic And
Waters, Inhabited By Various Life Lacking Cells With Internal
Forms, Indigenous Of The Planet, Membranes) Or Eukaryotic
Or That Were Grown Here, And (Microscopic But With Clearly
Maldekians, Who Had Made Their Defined Internal Compartments).
Residence Beneath The Waters.
When The Sun Was Grown, The Ice
Began To Melt, There Was Question: Where Does Bacteria
Condensation, Or Moistness, Which Fit In?
Produced Atmosphere, An
103
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
34. Bacteria Are Prokaryotic Explained Previously Is Basically,
Organisms, Or Prokaryotes. Another Plants, People And Animal.
Group Of Prokaryotic Organisms, 40. However, These Critters Are
Archaebacteria (Archaea), Are No Very Different Life Forms From
Longer Classified With Bacteria. What Scientists Know. They Are
Hard One-Celled Creatures, Which
Were Discovered On The Bottom
Question: Does This Include All Of The Pacific In 1977 A.D. But It
Forms Of Known Bacteria? Wasn't Until Recently That Scientists
Discovered That Two-Thirds Of
35. Until Recently When Scientists Their Genetic Code Was Different
Have Discovered New Forms Of From Anything Biologists Had See
Life Unassociated With Any Known Before On Earth, Or In The Seas Of
Form Of Life To Date. Earth.
36. They Are Simply Referred To
As Archaea, Which Scientists Say
They've Found A New Form Of Question: Are These Another
Life Right Here On Earth. Form Of Bacteria?
37. These New Life Forms Are
Tough Little Microbes That Live In 41. Unlike Most Bacteria And All
The Boiling Water Spewing From Plants, Animals And Humans,
Volcanic Vents Deep Under The Archaea Lives Totally Without
Ocean, Thriving On Carbon Dioxide Sunlight.
And The Tremendous Water 42. When The Usual Organisms
Pressure. Start Dying, Then These Start
38. Scientists Say These Critters Singing, As Scientists Say. This
Are Proof Of A Third Form Of Discovery Indicates That Life Can
Terrestrial Life, Named Archaea Exist Under Extremely Harsh
After The Greek Word For Conditions.
"Ancient".

Question: Are All Bacteria


Question: How Are They Classified This Way?
Different From Other Life Forms
In The Ocean. 43. No. A Large Number Of
Bacteria, Such As The Green
39. Other Life Forms In The Bacteria, Purple Bacteria, And
Ocean Of This Earth Are Bacterian Cyanobacteria, Are Called
And Eukaryotes, Which As Phototrophs.
104
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
48. Plasmids Are Circular, Double-
Stranded Unit Of DNA That
Question: What Are Replicates Within A Cell
Phototrophs? Independently Of The
Chromosomal DNA
44. An Organism Capable Of
Synthesizing Its Own Food From
Inorganic Substances Using Light As Question: Do All Bacteria Have
An Energy Source. These Bacteria The Same Structures?
Are Able To Convert The Sun's
Energy Into Food In A Process 49. No. Some Bacteria Have
Called Photosynthesis. Structures Known As Endospores
45. Phototrophic Bacteria Have Around Their Dna And Other Cell
Dominated Earth's Seas And Portions.
Landscapes For Hundreds Of 50. These Thick-Walled Bodies Are
Millions Of Years And Remain Extremely Resistant To
Common Today. Environmental Stresses And They
Can Live In A Kind Of Dormant
Question: What Is The Structure Condition For Decades Or Even
Of A Bacteria? Centuries.

46. Like All Cells, Bacteria Contain


Genetic Material Known As Question: So Are You Saying
Deoxyribonucleic Acid (Dna). That Life On Earth Started With
Bacteria?

Question: Is It The Same As 51. Yes. During Its First Billion


Cellular Dna? Years On The Planet, Life Consisted
Mainly Of Anaerobic Fermenting
47. No. Cellular Dna Is Arranged Bacteria. As Oxygen Gas Increased
In Strands, Bacterial Dna Has A Because Of The Growth Of
Circular Arrangement. Bacteria Also Oxygen-Emitting Cyanobacteria,
Often Have Additional Genes On The Fermenting Bacteria Moved
Smaller Rings Called Plasmids. Deeper Into The Mud And Other
Substrates To Escape This Gas,
Which Was Toxic To Them.
Question: What Are Plasmids?

105
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: And What Was The 57. This Exchange Is Beneficial To
Results? A Species Because It Provides A
Way To Pass Favorable Genetic
52. They Expanded Into New Traits On To Unrelated Individuals.
Habitats, Such As The Intestines Of
Mammals And The Guts Of Insects.
Even Today, The Physiology Of Question: Is Bacteria And Virus
Most Bacteria Takes Place Without The Same Thing?
Oxygen.
53. While Many Aerobic Bacteria 58. No. Many Bacteria Become
Live On Or In Nearly Every Surface Directly Infected By Viruses Known
Around Us, Vastly Larger Numbers As Bacteriophages. Some Types Of
Of Fermenting Anaerobes Are Bacteriophages Enter And Kill The
Usually Just A Few Millimeters Host Bacterial Cell, Whereas Others
Away. Become Integrated Into The Genetic
Machinery Of The Host Bacterium.
59. In A Process Called
Question: How Does A Bacteria Transduction, Bacteriophages Can
Grow, Or Reproduce? Move Genetic Material From One
Bacterium, To Another And Even
54. Bacteria Reproduces By Means Between Different Species Of
Of A Process Called Binary Fission, Bacteria.
In Which A Copy Of The Dna Is
Made And Then The Outer
Membrane Of The Bacterium Begins Question: So Does Bacteria
To Grow Inward And Divides The Cause Disease?
Bacterium Into Two Identical Cells.
60. Of The Thousands Of Bacterial
Question: What Is Binary Species On The Earth, Only A
Fission? Small Fraction Cause Disease.
61. For Example, Cholera Results
55. Binary Fission Is A Method Of From Infection By Vibrio Cholerae, A
Asexual Reproduction That Involves Bacterium That Reproduces Quickly
The Splitting Of A Parent Cell Into In Drinking And Bathing Water
Two Approximately Equal Parts. That Has Been Extensively
56. Binary Fission Does Not Contaminated With Human Feces.
Provide Bacteria With A Way To Bacterial Pathogens Are Frequently
Exchange Genetic Information Disabled Or Killed By The Immune
Between Individuals. Systems Of Organisms.
106
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
65. Sterilization Is Necessary To
Destroy Highly Resistant Bacterial
Question: What Are Pathogens? Structures Such As Endospores.
66. Bacteria Are Like Living Paint,
62. Pathogens Are Microorganisms Covering Nearly Every Surface
That Cause Disease. Large Cells Imaginable And Living Within Other
Called Macrophages Attack And Living And Nonliving Things. Many
Destroy Bacteria That Are Not Exist In A Symbiotic Condition In
Normally Present In The Body, Which They Function As Partners
While Cells Called "Lymphocytes" With Other Organisms.
Bring About Other Immune
Responses, Including The
Production Of Antibodies. Question: What Is Symbiotic?

67. Symbiosis Is A Close,


Question: How Is Bacteria Prolonged Association Between Two
Controlled? Or More Different Organisms Of
Different Species That May, But
63. For Decades, Human Beings' Does Not Necessarily, Benefit Each
Primary Means Of Controlling Member. A Relationship Of Mutual
Microbial Growth Has Been Benefit Or Dependence. From The
Pasteurization, Sterilization, And Greek Sumbiosis, Companionship,
Other Heating Processes. From Sumbioun, To Live Together,
From Sumbios, Meaning "Living
Together".
Question: What Is 68. This Symbiosis Has Profound
Pasteurization? Consequences On People's Lives.

64. Pasteurization Is The Use Of


Mild Heat To Reduce Bacterial Question: Can You Give An
Populations In Foods, Whereas Example Of What You Are
Sterilization Is The Complete Killing Speaking Of?
Off Of Bacteria.
69. Yes. Example, The Agricultural
Industry Depends On The Existence
Question: What Does Of Bacteria That Can Transform
Sterilization Do? The Nitrogen Gas From The
Atmosphere Into Ammonia In The

107
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Soil That Plants Can Use In A Thoroughly Shine Upon The Planet
Process Called Nitrogen Fixation. Earth.
74. Although Some Of The Heavy
Carbon Vapors Had Descended And
Question: How Does Bacteria Some Were Still Disintergrating
Reproduce? From The Heat, There Still
Remained Enough To Prevent The
70. Like Fungi, Bacteria Feed On Direct Sunlight From Reaching The
Dying Material And Convert It Back Earth.
Into Basic Substances. 75. Thus The First Plants, Unlike
71. This Process Of The Larger Ones Which Came Later,
Decomposition Is As Significant As Could Not Depend On Sunlight To
Photosynthesis, For Without It Food Produce Their Energy.
Chains Would Cease, And Fallen
Trees, Leaves, And Other Refuse
Would Simply Pile Up. Question: So How Did Bacteria
Obtain Its Energy?

Question: Will You Find Bacteria 76. Bacteria And Algae Were And
In Elements? Still Are Able To Obtain Their
Energy By Other Means And This
72. Yes. Bacteria Strongly Was Possible Because Some Bacteria
Influences The Movement Of Key Produce Their Energy By The
Elements, Such As Sulfur, Iron, Chemical Changes They Cause In
Phosphorus, And Carbon, Around The Elements Of Their
The Globe. The Weathering Of Environment.
Rocks, Which Releases Elements 77. Some Types Oxidize Inorganic
Back Into Life Systems For Use, Is Compounds Such As Ammonia,
Generally Enhanced By The Sulfur, Hydrogen, Gas And Ferrous
Breakdown Processes Of Bacteria. Iron, Thereby Releasing Energy.

Question: So The First Plants Question: Can You Explain


Contain Chlorophyll? What Algae Is?

73. No. The First Plants Did Not 78. Yes. Algae Is Any Of Various
Contain Chlorophyll, Because At Chiefly Aquatic, Eukaryotic,
That Time, The Sun Did Not Photosynthetic Organisms, Ranging

108
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
In Size From Single-Celled Forms And By The Use Of Hydrogen
To The Giant Kelp. Instead Of Water.
79. Algae Were Once Considered
To Be Plants But Are Now
Classified Separately Because They Question: So The First Forms Of
Lack True Roots, Stems, Leaves, Life Were Simple Microscopic
And Embryos. From Latin Meaning Organisms.
"Seaweed". Algae, A Group Of
Structurally Simple Organisms That 83. Yes, That Is Correct. Y Ou See
Carry Out Oxygen- Evolving That The First Forms Of Life Were
Photosynthesis. The Simple, Microscopic Organisms
80. Although Most Algae Are Mostly Single-Celled. These Later
Microscopic—Some As Small As 1 Advanced To Organisms Of
To 2 Micrometers In Diameter (A Multiple Cells Of Cell Colonies.
Micrometer Is 0.000001 Meter, Or
0.00004 In)—Many Are
Conspicuous In The Form Of Pond Question: What Process Came
Scum, Seaweeds, Red Tide, Blue- After That?
Green Discoloration Of Aquarium
Walls, And The Green Coating On 84. Then Came The Algae And
Trees. The Fungi. Fungi, Are A Diverse
Group Of Either Single-Celled Or
Multicellular Organisms That Obtain
Question: So If They Didn't Food By Direct Absorption Of
Survive Off Of The Sun's Light, Nutrients.
What Did They Surive From? 85. The Food Is Dissolved By
Enzymes That The Fungi Excrete, Is
81. S Ome Types Of Algae Can Then Absorbed Through Thin Cell
Grow In Hot Springs With Walls, And Is Distributed By Simple
Temperatures Over 1760f. Here Circulation, Or Streaming, Of The
They Survive By The Conversion Of Protoplasm.
Calcium Salts And Magnesium Into
A Chalky Material Of Brilliant
Colors. Question: How Does Fungi
82. Yet Others Which Contain A Reproduce?
Cholorophyll-Like Substance Are
Able To Perform A Limited Form 86. Most Fungi Reproduce By
Of Photosynthesis By Absorption Spores, Which Are Tiny Particles Of
Of Light From The Red Spectrum Protoplasm Enclosed In Walls. The
109
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Common Mushroom May Form 12 Also Many Trees And Plants Above
Billion Or More Spores On Its And In The Seas.
Fruiting Body; The Giant Puffball
May Produce Several Trillion. Question: Whose Plan Was This?
87. Spores Are Usually Formed In
One Of Two Ways. In One Process 92. It Was Designed By The
The Spores Form After The Union Neteraat, Anutu, Called Anunnagi
Of Two Or More Nuclei Within A That These Creatures Came About.
Specialized Cell Or Series Of Cells. Larger And More Complex
Structures Would Not Have Been
Able To Survive In Earth's Early
Question: What Is Fungi? Environment.

88. Fungi Is Any Of Numerous


Eukaryotic Organisms Of The Question: So Does Bacteria,
Kingdom Fungi, Which Lack Algae And Fungi Still Play An
Chlorophyll And Vascular Tissue Important Role Today?
And Range In Form From A Single
Cell To A Body Mass Of Branched 93. Yes. Bacteria, Algae And Fungi
Filamentous Hyphae That Often Still Play An Important Role In The
Produce Specialized Fruiting Bodies. Balance Of Nature And The Smooth
89. The Kingdom Includes The Functioning And Preservation Of
Yeasts, Molds, Smuts, And Life On Gi "Earth."
Mushrooms. From The Latin, Akin
To To Greek Spongos, Sphongos,
Sponge. Question: What Formed The
90. They Played A Great Role In First Seeds?
The Preparation Of The Planet For
Other And Much More Complex 94. The "Master Recipe" For The
Forms Of Life. "First Seed" Which Produced The
First Organisms Was The Result Of
The Combination Of Certain
Question: Where Did These Life Elements In The Presence Of The
Forms Come From? Sunlight.

91. Many Life Forms On Earth Carbon Dioxide (Co2) + Water


Were Transported Here To Sustain (H2o) + Sunlight
Life Forms From Other Worlds,
= Carbon + Oxygen

110
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
98. At First, This Left Some
Simple Sugars And Starch + Plant Life Without Moisture,
Oxygen However, The Flow Of The Tides,
Which The Ancient Tama-Reans
95. The Effect Of The Sunlight Call Nun, Acted As An Agent In
Upon The Carbon Ring That Aiding The Seeds Of Some Species
Enveloped The Earth, Started A To Continue To Adapt On The
Chain Of Reactions In Which Planet Earth. Ultimately, A
Atoms Of Carbons, Hydrogen, And Different Type Of Plant Life, With
Oxygen Combined To Form The Ability To Live On Land
Molecules Of Simple Sugar. Began To Develop.
99. As Time Passed, Plants
Developed More And More
Question: When Did The Complex Systems To Adapt To The
Original Seed Come To Earth? Environment.
100. The Increased Vegetation On
96. The Original Seed Was The Earth Coincided With The
Brought To Earth When The Greater Degree Of Sunshine That
Vapor/Carbon Ring Ascended. Thus Was Made Available In The Fourth
It Was In A Water Environment Growth Created Period Which
That These Seeds Sprung To Life . Follows.

Shu (The Wind)


Question: What Happened To
The Plants That Were Living In
The Water? Question: What Part Does The
Wind Play?
97. The Separation Of The Land
From The Water Allowed The 101. The Winds Aid In The
Plants Which Existed In The Water Pollination Of Flowers Which In
To Make An Appearance On The Turn, Causes The Plants To Bear
Land, As The Fetus Is In The Sack Fruit.
Or Water Before It Comes On The 102. The Winds Also Help In The
Land. Dispersal Of The Seed, So Certain
Types Of Seeds Are Equipped With
A Kind Of Wing Type Structure
Question: What Affect Did This That Enables Their Flight-Like
Have On The Plants? Transport By The Wind.

111
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Does Water, And Air Is Wind And Breath And That Is
Wind, That Is Breath, Air Or Life.
Earth Have Intelligence?

103. As For Water, Where There Is Question: What Is Breath?


Moya "Water", There Is Life, Where
There Is Life, There Is Intelligence. 106. Simply Breathing. You Must
Inhale And Exhale. And The Word
Hale Means "Free From Infirmity Or
Question: And What Of The Illness; Sound". From Middle English,
Wind? From Old English Hal, Meaning
"Health".
104. There To, The Principle
Remains. Where There Is Wind
There Is Moistness And The Question: Can You Explain This
Movement Of Particles In Motion. Further?
There Is Life Where There Is Wind.
In Ancient Tama-Re, Shu Son Of 107. Yes. To Inhale Means To
Atum, Was The Wind. The Breath Take In Health, To Exhale Means
Of Life Is The Wind. Where There To Release Your Health. You
Is Wind There Is Life. Note: The Breathe In Oxygen A Form Of Gas,
Phonetical Similarity Between Atum Symbol O A Nonmetallic Element
And Atom. Constituting 21 Percent Of The
Atmosphere By Volume That
Occurs As A Diatomic Gas, O2,
Question: So Atum, The Ta-Mare And You Breathe Out Carbon
Deity And Atom The Atomic Dioxide, A Colorless, Odorless,
Energy Are Linked? Incombustible Gas, Co2, A Form Of
Gas.
105. Both Depend On Wind Or
Air As Energy To Exist, And This In
Ancient Time Was Called The Question: What Is A Gas?
Breath, Some Called It "Prana",
Others Called It Hayah, It Was 108. Gas Is The State Of Matter
Simply Wind Or Rawuh As In Distinguished From The Solid And
Ruakh Or Ruh Which In Time Liquid States By Relatively Low
Becomes Inscribed By Theologians Density And Viscosity. Note: That
And Philosophers As Spirit From It's The Density Level That Is
Spiritos, Which Is Wind Or Breeze.
112
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Separating Gas From Liquid And Question: What Is The Other
Solid, Which Both Must Have Gas Principle In Breathing?
To Exist. Density Level Is The Key.
113. There Are Two Forms Of Gas
Question: What Is Density? Necessary For Breathing Which Is
Wind Or Air, One Is Oxygen,
109. Density Is The Quality Or Necessary For Combustion, And
Condition Of Being Dense. The Other Is Carbon Dioxide,
Incapable Of Burning.

Question: What Is To Be Dense?


Question: What Does Breathing
110. Latin "Densus", To Be A And Burning Have To Do With
Combination Of Solids Or Liquids, This?
Brought Together To Appoint
Where They Are Inpenetrable. 114. As One Breathes In Oxygen,
111. In Our Atmosphere We Have It Fuses With Gases In The Body,
Various Degrees Of Matter And And It Lights The Inner Sun, Pilot
Various Degrees Of Liquid From Of The Solar Plex. It's Controlled By
Water, To Steam, To Ice. On The The Carbon Dioxide Which Is
Opposite Of Cold Ice, There Is Hot Incapable Of Burning, Thus You
Ice. The Same Applies To Gas, On Don't Breathe Out Fire. Yet, The
The Opposite Of Atomic Gas, Gases In Your Body Is Flammable.
There Is Etheric Gas. 115. But, Your Body Maintains A
Temperature Of 98.6 And If You
Receive What's Called A
Question: What Is Ether? Temperature, They Will Tell You,
112. Ether Is Any Of A Class Of Your Body Is Over Heating And
Organic Compounds In Which Two Could Go Into Convulsions, Or
Hydrocarbon Groups Are Linked By Even Spontaneous Combustion,
An Oxygen Atom, From The Middle Simply Burst Into Flames. So There
English, Upper Air, From Latin Must Be A Heating System In The
Aether, From Greek Aither. Note Body. Where There Is Heat, There
That Ether Is Identified With Is Fire.
Oxygen, One Of The Principles In
Breathing.
Question: What Does The Solar
Plexus Have To Do With Fire?

113
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
116. The Sun Has Always Been
Thought Of A Ball Of Fire, Burning
And Giving Off Heat And Light. Question: Even All Flesh?
Thus It's Called The Solar Plex.
117. The Word Solar Simply Means 121. Yes. The Physical
Sun. The Word Plex From Plexus Composition, The Flesh Is
Means To Braid Or Interwine. Composed Of The Elements Of The
Speaking About A Complex System Earth. In Ancient Tama-Re It's
Of Nerves Intertwining Throughout Called Geb Son Of Shu, The Wind
The Human Body And Leading To And Tefnut, The Moisture. Needed
Several Glands Of Which The Major To Culture Cells And Bacteria
Is In The Center Of Your System Growth, Necessary Elements In
Called A Solar Plexus. This Is Simply Life.
A Sun In The Center Of Your
Chest, That Fuses And Gives Off
Heat To Warm The Body, Or Question: Is This About The
Overheat The Body. Adam Of The Bible And The
118. The Sun Has Always Had The Qur'an?
Atomic Number 8, Which Is Oxygen
Had A Symbol Of A Circle. 122. Yes And No. The Man That
The Religious Theologians Call
Adam Was From A Word Borrowed
Question: Is This Why It's Called From The Ancient Sumerians. It's
A Circulatory System? Adama From "Ground" Or "Red
119. Yes That Is Correct. And This Soil". They Even Created Edom For
Circular Motion Of Inhaling And The Color Red For The Same Word,
Exhaling Health Is What Keeps You Which Dealt With The Blood
Alive. This Is An Intelligent Action. Needed In The Adama Project, For
Once The Solar Plexus' Sun Or The Cloning Of The Human On
Flame, Goes Out, The Body Called The Planet Now Call Earth.
Khat Becomes Cold, Lifeless, 123. Adama Does Not Merely
Declared Dead. Describe An Individual 6-10
Thousand Years Ago, Who Was The
First Human Being, But Rather An
Question: So The Elements Are Extraterrestrial Laboratory
Alive? Experiment With Genetic Splicing
To Create A Servant Of The
120. Yes, Where There Is Water, Neteraat, Anutu.
Wind, Breath, Air There Is Life.
114
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So The Bible And Skies As The Sun. This Was
Qur'an Story Of Man Being Symbolic Of The Creation Of The
Created From The Soil Of The First Male, Shu, Your Adam, And
Earth Is Untrue? Female Tefnut, Your Eve, Or
Hawwah. Shu Is The Light Or Fire,
124. It's A Sad Reality, But Yet It's As In The Sun, And Tefnut Is The
Still A Reality. It Is Untrue. Think, Water Or Moistness, As Male Is A
To Imagine That Any Religious Dry Creature And Woman Is A
Group Says An Allah Shaped Man Moist Creature, In Their
Of The Dust Of The Ground, Reproductive Organs, And Shu And
Qur'an 15:28, And The Torah Of Tefnut Gave Birth To Geb, Who Is
The Hebrews Genesis 2:7 Says Also Known As Seb, Meaning
"And We Shaped Man Of The Dust Of "Time", And They Also Gave Birth
The Ground", And The New To Nut, The Wife Of Geb, The
Testament Is A Product Of The Earth Deity, Which Were The
Old. Parents Of Asaru And Aset, Sutekh
125. And The Monotheist Of And Nebthet. Khefera Is An
These Three Organize Religions Incarnation Or Attribute Or
Based On The Greek Deity Or God Another Form Of Ra Or Re. In
Of Sarcasm, God Of Pain Monos, Here You Get Your Story Also Of
Namely Mosesism, Christism And Your Flood, For In The Anceint
Muhammadism, All Teach That Scrolls Of Egypt The Story Is Told,
Their God Be It, Eloheem-Yahweh, That Ra Became Angry With The
Or Thehos-Christos, Or Allah-Rab, Sins Of Mortals, And Assisted By
Shaped Man From The Dust Of Tefnut "Water", He Destroyed The
The Earth, Or The Dirt Of The Entire Human Race, Which Is
Earth. Or They Use Clay, Or They Afterward Revived (Replenished),
Use Mud. It's Proposterous, And I Afresh Out Of The Blood Of The
Will Tell You Why. Life Already Slime (The Cells), At The
Existed In Soil, And They Don't Intercession Of Nu, And The Other
Mention That They Copied Their Deities. This Is None Other Than
Story From The Tama-Rean Deity Your Flood Story Borrowed From
Khefera, Which Means "Appearing Ancient Egyptian Tablets And Your
Like Ra", Symbolic Of The Dub, Adam And Eve Story, As Well As
"Scarab Beetle". And The Scarab Your Created From Mud, Breathed
Beetle Rolls A Ball Of Mud, The Into Breath Of Life, Created From
Germ Of Life Into The Form Of An Water. These Are The Facts Of
Egg, And Out Of It Creates Life, Their Myths.
And Then Moves It Across The
115
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Isn't Dust And Sand Question: Don't Humans Get
Lifeless? Their Intelligence From God Or
Allah?
126. No, Dust And Sand As Well
Have Life, In, On Or Around Them. 130. That's What Is Sad About
In Fact, If You Grab A Hand Of Misinformation. Let's Look At It
Rich Soil From Anywhere On The Through Right Knowledge, The
Planet, Put It Under A Microscope, Right Wisdom, And The Right
You Will Find Life Already There, Overstanding, Which Will Replace
Already Existing. The Theories, Myths And
Philosophies Of Religion That
Teaches Ignore The Facts, And Use
Question: So These Scriptures Faith And Belief For Your
Are Wrong? Convictions.
131. Now I'll Open The Door To
127. Absolutely. The Concept Of Another Level Of Inquiry Into Their
"To Shape The Man, Adam Of The God Concept Of Order. The Big G
Dust Of The Earth" Is In Itself Or The Small G. Allah, Yahweh,
Inconsistant, For Life Already Adonai, Rab, Or Thehos.
Existed Where There Is Soil, And 132. Take For Instance, The
Life Already Exists Where There Is Acquired Immune Defiency
Water, And Life Already Exists Syndrome, ( A.I.D.S) Virus, That Is
Where There Is Air. Intelligent Enough To Enter The
Human Body, Aligns Itself With The
RNA Of The Chromosomes,
Question: So That Life Is Reconfigurates The Chromosomes,
Intelligence? And Destroy The Immune System
Through Producing The DNAs.
128. Yes, Again Where There Is
Life There Is Intelligence.
Question: Wouldn't This Be
Taking Control Over
Question: Is This The Same As Allah/Yahweh/God's Master Plan
Human Intelligence? In Genetics?
129. Human Intelligence Is One Of
The Lowest Forms Of Intelligence 133. Absolutely. That Is, An Un-
On The Scale. Realized Fact. In Fact, This A.I.D.S
Virus Alters The God Concept Of
Creation.
116
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
You Live And Walk On The Scalp
Of The Earth, Never Getting Into
Question: Are There Other The Brain, Spirit Or Soul Of This
Viruses More Intelligent Than Living Planet.
God?

134. Infadically Yes. The Same Question: They Have No Power


Could Be Said Of Ebola And Many Of Judgment And They Don't
Other Bacterias, Like Herpes, And Have Feelings?
The Likes.
135. These Are Intelligent Living 140. Yes And No, All Things
Entities That Out Smart The Have Life. Nevertheless , The
Smartest Humans, Thus Out Smart Clouds Still Continue To Shower
Their Concept Of An Unseen God The Earth After It Has Endured
Who Is In Control Of A System Of The Scorching Heat Of The Sun.
Growth, Birth, Mutation, Evolution The Elements, The Sun And The
And Creation. Planets Are Not Acting On Their
136. In Control Of Disease, "Dis- Own Nor By Accident There Is A
Ease". System To Things, An Emotion.
141. The Intelligence Behind Their
Actions Is Om Who Has Put Life In
Question: Can These Elements All Things That Om May Control
Direct Themselves Or Dictate To Them In Air. There Is Life In And
Themselves Change? On Each Stone. T Here Is Life In
And On The Seas. There Is Life In
137. The Earth, "Gaia" As And On The Trees. The Planet
Ancient Tama-Rean Calls Geb, Lives, It Vibrates, It Pulsates, It
The Son Of Shu And Tefnut, Feels, Breathes, It Grows, It Dies, Its
Has Emotions, And Thinks. Living.
138. Parts Of The Elements And 142. Yes, All Lives In All. The
Planets Are Mindless, Yet Earth Is Sun Is Summoned To Shine, The
A Living Entity, Just As The Human Water Is Ordered To Flow, And The
Body Has Hair, Nails, Teeth That Wind Is Summoned To Blow, And
Are Connected To Nerves That Are The Micro Life Form Are Each
Intelligent. Controlled By A Supreme Force
139. Yet, The Extremeties Or Who Put Hayuh "Life" In All
Protusions Are Not Intelligent. Life Things. Through Growth And
Lives In And On, And Even Change.
Through Them And All Things. Yet,
117
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
143. All Of These Are Controlled Question: So Insects Play A
And Guided By Om, And Its Many Great Part?
Components, Where Vibration
Causes Friction And Friction 148. Yes, And Are Overlooked,
Produces A Spark Of Life And Understudied And Never
Light. Appreciated For Their Contributions
To The Great Plan. You See You
Have Insects That Live On And In
Question: Are You Saying That Your Body All Your Life.
This Process Is Aided By The 149. You Are Like An Insect To
Wind? The Planet Earth, And As
Destructive As You May See A
144. Yes. Om Is Nature And Mosquitoe, A Cockroach Or A Flea,
Beyond, And The Process Of As You Have Grown To Be The
Fertilization Is Aided By The Wind, Destructive Pest Of Nature, Cutting
Called The Breath, The Soul, And Down Trees, Poisoning The Water,
That Has Essence, Substance, Depleting The Ozone, Creating
Emotions, And Existence To It. Global Warming, Green House
Effect, Splitting Atoms, And
Creating Viruses.
Question: Would Om Include
Physical Living Things As Well?
Question: Is This Progress Or
145. Absolutely. All Life Is Regress?
Perpetuated By Change. The Only
Definite Thing In All Existence Is 150. It Is Planned To Lead To
Change, And The Only Absolute Is Your Eventual Demise, If You Do
Existence, And Change Happens Not Learn To Cooperate With Om
Within Existence, Each Living Thing Or Nature, By Realigning Yourself
Detectable And Undetectable Is A With The Universal Forces That
Part Of This Great Plan. Control All Growth And Decline,
147. Yes, Even The Smallest Of That Inscribed The Plan Of
Insects, And Even Larger Insects, Metamorphosis, Evolution,
Such As Bees And Butterflies, Are Mutation, Growth And The Art Of
All Part Of This Vast Chain Of Life, Making And Even Creating.
In Which We Are All Linked, And 151. Yet, Like Most Parasites The
All Things Are Linked. Next Move Is To Turn On Each
Other, As Lupus Turns On The
Human Body, And Anemia Turns
118
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
On The Blood, Leprosy Turns On Misused It, And Let's Analyze That
The Nervous System, Cancer On Misuse Of An Ancient Story.
The Cells, And Humans On
Animals, Animals On Humans, And
Humans And Animals On Each Question: What Do You Mean By
Other. Misuse?
152. All Of This Was Patterned In
Your Original Creation. This Was 3. I Mean, If The All-Knowing
The Third Creative Stage. God, Be It Called Eloheem,
Yahweh, Adonai, Shadai, Olom,
El Roi, Ha-Shem Or Any Other
Scroll Six Name That The Hebrew Torah,
Which Bred The Old Testament,
The Emergence Of The Sun And Gave Birth To The New
(19x7=133) Testament, Which Gave Birth To
The Qur'an Was Indeed The All-
Knowing, Being They Claim These
Question: What Happened Things Wouldn't Happen.
During The Fourth Creative
Stage?
Question: Just What Happened?
During The Fourth Creative Stage,
The Neteraat, Anunnagi Called 4. Well Let's Take A Look.
Eloheem In The Torah Caused A Genesis 1:14 Makes The Statement:
Greater Emergence Of The Sun, "And Eloheem Said Let There Be Lights
That Had Made The Sun, Shamash In The Firmament Of The Heavens To
As It's Called Appear To Be The Divide The Day From The Night, And
Brighest Of The Stars To Supply Let Them Be For Signs And For Seasons,
The Earth With Light, Warmth, And And For Days And Years."
Stimulants For Growth. 5. The First Mistake Is "And God
Said Let There Be", Implying That
This One God Said Something.
Question: This Sounds Like 6. The Hebrew Word For Said
Genesis 1:14-19. There Is Awmar, Which Means In
All Cases "Say, Said And Speak, To
2. That's Because The Plagiarized Converse". The God Is Actually
Torah From The Ancient Tablets Speaking To Someone Or
Has Borrowed The Story, But Something, Admitting Presence Of
Others.
119
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
11. These Beings That Came Here
Were In A Mothership Or Craft,
Question: So You Are Saying Which Contained Smaller Crafts
That This God Was Not Alone? Called Holy Cities, The Size Of 1500
Miles In Length, Width And Height
7. Actually The Word God Is Not (Revelation 21:16-17: "And The City
There. The Hebrew Word That Is In (Polis, Ones Native City) Lieth
The Torah Is Eloheem, And It In (Keimai) Foursquare (Tetragonos),
Itself Is Not A Single. It's A Plural And The Length (Mekos) Is As Large
Of Eloh The Single. As The Breadth (Platos): And He
Measured (Metreo) The City With The
Reed (Kalamos), Twelve (Dodeka)
Question: So These Eloheem Thousand (Chilias) Furlongs
Were The Gods Of The (Stadion). The Length And The
Hebrews? Breadth And The Height (Hupsos) Of
It Are Equal (Isos). And He Measured
8. Not Really, It Was Just A Title The Wall (Teichos) Thereof, An
Used For The Pluralization Of Hundred (Hekaton) And Forty
Elohs, Because In Genesis 31:30, As (Tessarakonta) And Four (Tessares)
Pagan Gods, Psalm 8:5 As Angels, Cubits (Pechus), According To The
Psalm 82:6, As Men. Measure Of A Man (Anthropos), That
9. So It Was Merely A Title Is Of The Angel (Angelos) "), A Craft
Describing The Beings That Lived, (Revelation 21:2, Zechariah 5:1-
Roamed, Ruled And Visited The 2: "Then I Turned (Shuwb), And
Planet During That Time. Lifted (Nasa') Up Mine Eyes
(`Ayin), And Looked, And Behold A
Flying (`Uwph) Roll (Megillah).
Question: So This Was The And He Said Unto Me, What Seest
Original Creation Of Lights? Thou? And I Answered, I See A Flying
Roll; The Length ('Orek) Thereof Is
Twenty (`Esriym) Cubits ('Ammah),
10. Actually, When You Look At
And The Breadth (Rochab) Thereof
Genesis 1:2, It States That Void
Ten (`Eser) Cubits."
And Darkness Was Upon The Face
Of The Deep, And That The Spirit,
Ruakh Or Wind Of These
Question: What Is All Of This
Eloheem Moved Upon The Face Talking About?
Of The Waters. (Ezekiel 1:4,
Whirlwinds).

120
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
12. This Is Talking About A Craft, Divided Into Two Parts, The
A Mothership That Housed Smaller Firmaments Of The Heavens And
Cylinder Crafts, 30 Miles By 15 Feet. The Firmaments Of The Earth.
13. These Beings Were Apparently
Intelligent Beings Moving In The
Void And Darkness Before The Question: What Is The Meaning
Light. Of The Word Firmament?
14. In Verse 3 Of Genesis Chapter
1, It Says: "And These Eloheem Said 19. It Comes From The Word Firm
Let There Be Light, And There Was In English, Or Solid. So The
Light", 4 "And That They, The Heavens Are Firm And The Waters
Eloheem, Saw That The Light, It Was Are Firm According To This
Good." And At That Point This God Scripture.
Eloheem, Divided The Light From The
Darkness And Called The Light, Day,
And The Darkness Night, And Even Question: What Does The
Established Evening And Morning. All Hebrew Say?
Of This On That First Day.
20. It Uses The Word Rawqeeah,
Meaning "Extended Surface", Or Solid.
Question: So Why Is It Repeated So The Atmosphere Over The
In Verse 14? Planet Earth Was Composed Of A
Firm Heaven, Firm Waters, And
15. That Is The Misinterpretation, Void Of Atmosphere And Light.
Because Here The Statement Is 21. Yet, God Or Eloheem As A
Repeated "And God, The Eloheem Said Group Was Able To Dwell There.
Let There Be Light". So As You Can See The God Of
16. But At This Point He Is Putting Light Literally Dwelled Intelligently
The Light In The Firmament, That In Darkness Before And Utilized
Was Created In Verse 6, "And God, The Creative Forces From This
Eloheem Said Let There Be A Darkness, Before The Creation Of
Firmament In The Midst Of The As Genesis 1 Puts It, "The Light That
Waters". Was Divided From Darkness", Not
17. And Verse 8 Puts The Same Shined, But Divided From The
Firmament As The Heavens, Named Darkness.
By God In The Heavens. 22. The Light Was Taken Out Of
18. So The Atmosphere That The Darkness, And They Got
Surrounded The Planet Earth, Yawum "Day", And They Got
Extended To The Heavens, And

121
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Layul "Night". This Made Up Their The Greek Version Of Eloheem
Time Zone. Out Of The Heavens.
23. So This God Or Gods Lived
Within The Time Zone Of The
Earth, Which Is Controlled By The Question: Is Nibiru A Craft?
Rotation And Revolving Of This
Planet Around The Sun, And The 27. Yes. There Are Many Crafts Of
Determination Of Where It Is At, At Different Sizes Called Nibiru.
A Given Time Determines Daytime
And Night, Or Shadow Hours.
24. So In Order For Him To Question: Just What Does Nibiru
Perceive Night, He Also Had To Be Mean?
At A Specific Spot On The Planet
Earth. He Must Have Been Within 28. First You Must Overstand The
The Earth's Atmosphere In Order Meaning Of The Word Nibiru. It's
For The Sun Not To Be Seen At All From The Ancient Sumerian As
Times, As It Would Be If You Were Found In The Chaldean, Accadian,
Outside The Solar System Looking Aramic And Ashuric As Nabara,
In, Where They Claim Their God Is. "To Raise, To Elevate, To Go Up".

Question: So Where Was Their Question: Where Does The


God? Meaning "Planet Of Crossing"
Comes In?
25. Obviously, Their Eloheem Or
Gods Were Here On Earth And 29. The Fact That The Most Spoke
Were Able To See In Darkness. About Craft Nibiru Is A Cube That
Some Dwelled In The Sea And Whence, Is In Motion Revolves And
Some Dwelled On The Earth, And Rotates, And Creates An Orb,
Some Dwelled In The Air. Giving The Impression Of A Globe
Or Planet Structure. Thus, It
Inhabited The Name "Planet Of
Question: How Can A Person Crossing".
Dwell In The Air?

26. Simply By Using A Space Question: So Are You Saying,


Station, Which The Book Of There Is More Than One Nibiru?
Revelation 21:2 Calls The Holy
City, Coming Down From Thehos,
122
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
30. That Is Absolutely Correct. Questions: Some Crafts Can't
There Are Many Crafts That Elevate Enter Earth's Atmosphere?
And Travel Inter-Galactically From
Star Station To Star Station. 35. Exactly. The Larger Crafts
Could Never Fit In Here. Some Are
4 To 10 Times The Size Of Planet
Question: Are They All Shaped Earth, Which Has A Diameter Of
The Same? 7,925 Miles In Diameter And 24,896
Miles In Circumference.
31. No, There Are Many Different
Shapes And Sizes Of Nibirus
(Revelation 21:16-17). The Smaller Question: So How Will They
Ones Come Into This Planet's Rapture The Selected?
Atmosphere As Shams (Genesis 6:4)
Or Megillah (Zechariah 5:1-2) Or 36. Smaller Shams Will Come For
Ammuwd (Exodus 13:21). The Rapture. Take Selected
32. Others Are Mentioned In Genetically Bred Individuals For
Ezekiel 1:16 As Ofawn And The Reproduction And Replenishing By
Qur'an Chapter 17 As Buraaq. 50s In The Smaller Shams To The
33. All Of These Are Symbolic Mother Crafts, And Then Those
Names To Describe What Wasn't Genetically Calibrated For
Overstood In The Days Of Their Transformation And Transfiguration
Sightings. Today Men Attempt To Suited For Nibiru's Environment
Be More Intelligent And Simply Say Will Be Transported There.
UFO, Abbreviating Unidentified
Flying Objects.
Question: What Of The Others?
Question: So Nibiru Is A Ufo?
37. Many Will Not Survive The
34. Kane. The Many Crafts That Cataclystic Calamities That Are
Come In And Out, And Those Too Befalling The Planet. Many Will
Large To Enter This Small Earth's Simply Expire.
Environment Because The Declared
Intellectuals Of This Planet Have
No Spiritual Or Physical Question: Where Will Those
Attachments To The Beings That People Be Taken?
Man The Many Crafts To Them,
They Are Ufo. 38. Into Crafts That Hover In The
Air. Some Within The Earth's
123
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Atmosphere And Some Outside Of Light Up The Firmaments Of The
The Earth's Atmosphere. Heavens, And To Divide The Day
From The Night.
43. The First In Verse 4 Was
Question: Will They Reside Dividing The Light From Out Of
There Forever? The Darkness. But In Verse 13, It's
Speaking Of Dividing Out Of The
39. No. This Planet Will Be Heavens The Day From The Night.
Repaired Like Rizq And The
Selected Will Return To Re-Plenish
The Earth. Question: What's The
Difference?

Question: Is This What 44. One Happens Over A 23 Hour,


Happened Before? 56 Minute, 6 Second Of The Time,
And The Other Deals With 29 And
40. This Is Exactly What 1/2 Days To 30, To Make The
Happened Before, When Crafts Month On To 365 To Make The
Came And Hovered While The Year, Giving Us Our Seasons, Or
Earth Was Covered With Water And Solstice. For It States In Verse 14
There Was Total Darkness, And The "To Divide The Day From The Night,
Lights Were Created. And To Let Them For Signs And For
Seasons, And For Days And Years."
45. These Are All Limited For The
Question: So Just What Are The Powers Of A God, Who According
Lights Mentioned In Verse 14? To The Religious, Controls The
Boundless Universes. This Is
41. Notice That In Verses 3, 4 And Limited Information And Limited
5 Light Is Being Used As A Single, Powers Given To This God. Verse
That Is Divided. This One Light 16 Even Goes Further.
Was Your Sun, Responsible For
Your Days And Nights And
Evenings And Mornings. Question: What Does It Say?

Question: Is This Different Than 46. It States, "And This God,


The Sun In 14? Eloheem, Made Two Great Lights, The
Greater Light To Rule The Day And The
42. In Verse 14 Light Is Used As A Lesser Light To Rule The Night, He
Plural. And These Lights Which Will Made The Stars Also".
124
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
During The Day Because Of The
Brightness Of The Sun.
Question: And What Does This
Mean?
Question: What Does The Word
47. It Means, This Is Sun Mean?
Misinformation. For If God Made
Two Great Lights, Then It Was Not 51. The Word Sun Comes From
Your Sun And Your Moon. The Middle English, From Old
48. But Rather, A Mention Of Two English Sunne, Meaning "Solar,
Suns In Your Solar System, Because Solstice, Helium."
The Moon Is Non Luminous, And It
Does Not Give Off Its Own Light,
Nor Is The Moon In Any Way Question: How Many Suns Are
Formed, Shaped, Compared To The In The Sky?
Size Of The Sun As To Be Called
Great. In Fact, The Moon Is Smaller 52. The Number Of Stars Visible
Than The Planet Earth. To The Naked Eye From Earth Has
Been Estimated To Total 8000, Of
Which 4000 Are Visible From The
Question: What Was The Northern Hemisphere And 4000
Purpose For The Creation Of From The Southern Hemisphere.
The Sun? 53. At Any One Time In Either
Hemisphere, Only About 2000 Stars
49. It Provided Light, And Was A Are Visible. The Other 2000 Are
Means Of Determining Time On Located In The Daytime Sky And
Earth. The Purpose Of The Are Faint By The Much Brighter
Heavenly Bodies Was Not For The Light Of The Sun.
Entertainment Of Hu-Min's 54. From Earth, They May
Fantasies. Appear Close Together, However
Stars Are Many Light Years Apart.

Question: How Come We Can't


See Stars During The Day? Question: How Are Stars
Formed?
50. Stars Are Always Present In
The Sky, During The Shadow Time 55. Stars Consist Mainly Of
As Well As In The Day, But You Hydrogen And Helium, With
Think You Cannot See Them Varying Amounts Of Heavier
125
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Elements. Stars Begin As Clouds Of Have Soul. At Ether 9 You Have
Gas Which Materialized From God.
Clusters Of Hydrogen Atoms. 61. For 90% Of Hydrogen's Life
56. They Existed And Even More Time, This Is The Main Activity Of
Massive Clouds Of Gas Gave Birth A Star As A Human To Reproduce
To The Galaxies. Its Kind.
62. This Period Of Burning
Question: How Does A Star Give Hydrogen At A Consistent Rate
Off Light? Designates It As A "Main
Sequence" Star, A Light Star, A
57. Over A Period Of Time, Light Sun, And Is The Ether State.
Increasing Degrees Of Contraction There Is A Dark Star, A Dark Sun,
And An Increase In Heat Occurred The Black Sun.
Until Reactions In Their Centers
Produced Intense Heat And
Brightness Which Became What You Question: What Is A Light Star?
Call Light. Light Is Matter. Its
Beam Is Illuminated Particles. 63. Such A Star Is The Light Sun
You See That Is In The Center Of
Your Outer Solar System. The
Question: Which Elements Are Extremes Of This Stage Are
Used In The Formation Of Stars? Exceptionally Dim Stars.

58. Hydrogen The Most Abundant


And Simplest Gas In The Universe Question: When Does A Star's
Is One Of The Many Fuels Of The Light Become Dim?
Stars, The Light Of The Heaven
And The Earth. 64. Stars Begin To Decline When
59. All Elements And Other All The Hydrogen Is Used Up.
Substances In Existence Came 65. It Then Becomes What
Through Hydrogen To This Side Of Astronomers Call A "Red Giant".
Matter From Anti Matter.
60. In The Stellar Cores,
Hydrogen Is Converted Into Helium Question: So A Star Goes
And Other Heavier Elements. So It Through Stages?
Is, With Ether 1 You Have Energy
Darkness, Into Ether 2 You Have 66. Yes. A Star Goes Through
Sub-Atomic Energy. At Ether 7, Several Stages Of Expansion And
You Have Spirit. At Ether 8, You Shrinkage, Growth In Youth And
126
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Shrinkage In Old Age Is The Way Question: What Is Black Hole?
Of The Human Star. A S A Star, It
Exhaust Its Nuclear Fuel, It 73. A Black Hole Is An Extremely
Eventually Becomes A Compact Small Region Of Space-Time With A
"White Dwarf," A Small Dead Gravitational Field So Intense That
Star That May Be Even Smaller Nothing Can Escape, Not Even
Than The Planet Earth. Light.
67. Larger Stars Experience A 74. Black Holes Give Off No
More Dramatic Death. Light. T Hey Act Like Stellar
Vacuum Cleaners, Sucking Up
Matter And Energy From Space.
Question: What's The Next Stage 75. They Can Be Compared To
After Becoming A Red Giant? The Effect That Is Produced When
A Cup Of Liquid Is Stirred At High
68. After Becoming Red Giants, Speed.
They Collapse Upon Themselves, 76. Once The Spoon Is Removed
Producing Intense Heat And A Hole Is Made In The Center Like
Causing Their Core To Explode. A Miniature Whirlpool,
69. Such An Explosion Is Called A 77. Floating Objects Are Drawn
"Super Nova", From "Super" A And Sucked To The Center; Which
Prefix Of Latin Origin Meaning Is Also The Effects Of A Black
"Over And Above" , And "Nova" Hole.
Meaning "New" .
70. This Is Because It Appears To
The Naked Eye As A Bright New Question: So Black Holes Are
Star. Like Magnets?
71. Sometimes The Explosion
Blows The Entire Star To Bits 78. Yes. Black Holes Will Absorb
(Spontaneous Combustion) And At Any Stray Matter Or Energy That
Other Times A Lump May Be Left Passes Within A Certain Range Of
To Become A Neutron Star. It.
72. The Largest Remaining Bit Of 79. If It's Called A Black Hole,
A Star May Also Become So Not A Dark Hole, Then Before The
Compressed That It Possess An Light There Was Blackness Not
Intense Gravitational Pull And Then Darkness, And God Or Allah,
Becomes A Black Hole. Yahweh, Or Anu Was, So He Must
Be A Part Of The Original Darkness
Before The Light That Is True Black
In Blackness, Supreme Balancement.
127
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Is Bi-Polar?

Question: What Happens When 85. The Term Bipolar Refers To


Stars Start To Die? The Presence Of Two Lobes Of
Material Moving In Opposite
80. As A Star Dies, It Drives Directions.
Powerful Streams Of Gas And Dust
Into Space.
81. These "Stellar Winds" Sweep Question: What Is A Nebulae?
Up Matter Surrounding The Star
Into A Thin, Glowing Shell, 86. A Nebula, Or Nebulae Is A
Forming What Astronomers Call A Diffuse Mass Of Interstellar Dust
Wind-Blown Bubble. Or Gas Or Both, Visible As
82. The Word Astronomer Comes Luminous Patches Or Areas Of
From Middle English Astronomie, Darkness Depending On The Way
From Old French, From Latin The Mass Absorbs Or Reflects
Astronomia, From Greek: Astro, Incident Radiation.
Meaning "Star" + Nomia, "Number, 87. It Comes From [Middle
Division". English Nebule, Cloud, Mist, From
Latin Nebula.
88. Some Bipolar Nebulae Contain
Question: What Happens To The More Than A Sun's Worth Of Mass,
Bubble? And All Of Them Are Expanding At
Hypersonic Speeds.
83. As The Star And The Winds 89. Astronomers Now See Bipolar
Evolve, This Bubble Gets Sculpted Nebulae As The Imprint Of
Into A Multitude Of Diverse Shapes, Violently Colliding Stellar Winds.
Humans And Animals.
84. Within The Last Decade,
Astronomers, Studying Stellar Question: What Is The Purpose
Evolution Have Found An For The Creation Of The Sun,
Astonishing Variety Of Hour Glass, Moon And Stars?
Peanut, Or Narrow Spindle-Shaped
Clouds Of Brightly Glowing Gas 90. You Must Overstand That All
Surrounding Stars, Called Bipolar Things Are Created For Their
Nebulae. Specific Functions, Those Of Which
You May Not Overstand. Forms
And Deformity All Play Their Parts
In All.
128
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
91. Events In The Universe Affect Question: What About Our Sun
And Interact With Each Other. And Moon?
92. In Other Words, There Is No
Such Thing As An "Isolated 97. They Both Have Purpose To
Incident" That Affects Nothing The Planet. One Taking Up Where
Outside Of Itself. The Other Leaves Off.
98. The Moon Controlling The
Tide And Cooling Of The Planet, As
Question: What Does Life On The Sun Moves Into Another
Earth Depend On? Position On The Planet.
99. The Point Being The Sun
93. Life On Earth, To The Great Never Stops Shining, And The
Extent Depends On The Activities Moon Never Stops Reflecting Its
Of Its Sun. Light.
94. The Sun, As I Have Shown, 100. The Misinformation Is
Came Into Existence By The Intentionally Taught To Encourage
Combination Of Hydrogen And Faith And Belief, Without
Helium Atoms. Investigation That Leads To Facts.
101. Thus, The Trust Goes Into
Theologians, And Not Astronomers.
Question: What Was Their Your Faith Goes In Theologians
Purpose? And Not Anthropologists.
95. The Sun, Moon And Stars 102. Your Belief Goes Into
Produce The Much Needed Theologians And Not Earth
Illumination, Warmth, And Scientists, Alchemists, Gemologists,
Stimulation For Growth On The Paleontologists, And Mineralogists.
Planets, In Which Solar Systems 103. Those Men And Women Who
They Govern. Have Followed In The Footsteps Of
96. Though From Earth You See The Ancient Egyptians And
Other Stars, They Are Merely Suns Investigated The Causes And Effects
And A Part Of Other Systems. Most Of Existence.
Are Much Larger Than Your Sun
And The Stars Serve You No Question: So The Sun Does Not
Purpose, But Guidelines, Markers Rise And Set, As The Bible
And Calendars. (Numbers 2:3, Joshua 12:1,
Genesis 28:11) And Koran (18:86,
18:17, 18:90) States?

129
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
104. Absolutely Not. Another Equinox, Milleniums, Centuries,
Degree In Enforcing The Spell Of Decades, Years, Months, Weeks,
Religion Based On Faith And Days, Hours, Minutes, Seconds, And
Beliefs. They Lost The First, With This New
105. The Earth Does Not Stand Imperfection.
Still, Nor The Moon, Nor The Sun 112. It Would Be Extremely Hot
Or Any Other Heavenly Body For Here On Earth, And The Earth's
That Matter. Vegetation Would Perish.
106. The Planet Is Moving Around
The Sun, The Sun Is Not Moving
Around The Planet, So As To Rise Question: Why Was The Moon
And Set. Created?
107. It Is Made To Appear That
Way For Those Who Do Not Wish 113. The Moon Was Created To
To Investigate Right Knowledge, Buffet The Rays Of The Sun, In
The Right Wisdom And The Right Order That The Earth Could Be
Overstanding. Cooled And The Tide Controlled.
114. By Way Of The Earth's
Rotation Around The Sun, The
Question: How Do The Heavenly Changes In The Elements Are
Bodies Control Time? Observed, These Are The Seasons.

108. When The Neteraat


Appointed The Sun And The Moon Question: So Is That Why We
As Indicators Or Signs Of The Have Summer And Winter
Times, Seasons, Days And Years, Solstices?
This Marked The Cycle On Earth Of
A Beginning And An Ending. 115. Yes, According To Where A
109. They Were Like Two Great Particular Place Is Located On
Clocks That Did Not Need Winding. Earth, It May Experience Two,
110. Unaffected By The Revolving Three Or Four Seasons.
Earth, There Would Be No Shadow
Time, And The Earth Would Have
No Time For Rest. Question: What Is The Purpose
111. Yet, The Earth Was Hit By A For These Changes?
Large Meteorite And Shifted To A
23 Degree Axis, And The Perfection 116. These Changes Are Very
Pattern Was Broken, And Put Into Helpful And Necessary Because
Cycles Of Epochs, Precessions, They Are The Main Factors In The
130
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Germination, Growth, And Without The Amenities Created By
Reproduction Of The Plant The Tamperers Of Nature, The
Kingdom. Children Of Destruction, They
Would Quickly Remember Their
Relationship To All Other Animals
Question: Who Is The Ruler Of In This Great Chain Of Life.
The Plant Kingdom? 122. We Witness The Beauty Of
This Aspect Of Creation On The
117. El Kuluwm, Whose Voice Is Outskirts Of The City, The
Om. Countryside And Under The Open
Sky At Shadow Time.
123. They Refer To The Big Cities
Question: How Important Is By The Names Of Fruits, Such As
This? "The Big Peach" And "The Big
Apple", Which Implies That
118. Very, Because This Cycle Is Humans Are Worms And Insects,
The Mainstay Of Physical Life On Feasting Away On Their Own
Earth. Source Of Existence Until There
119. Without These Vital Changes, Is No More.
There Would Be No Food For The
Beast Animals, And Humans
Animals, Who Forgot They Too Are Question: And How Did We
Part Reptile, Mammal And Deity, Learn To Monitor The Sun From
Which Makes Them The Human The Moon?
Animal.
124. By Their Size And Purpose.
And This Was Accomplished
Question: Why Don't Humans Through Time And In Many Cases
Realize They Are Animals? Through Admiration, Reverence
And Worship.
120. Because They Move Into 125. In Time When Realizing That
Congested Cities And Isolate The Sun Appeared To Be Of A
Themselves From Animals And Greater Asset To Human Existence
Nature, With The Exception Of The Moon Became Subject.
Selected Pets, That They 126. As They Say The Sun Was
Domesticated To Make Themselves Symbolic Of Male, And The Moon
Feel Superior To Nature. Was Symbolic Of Female. When In
121. Yet, If They Returned To The Actuality Neither Has A Gender,
Rural Life And Had To Survive And Both Were Worshipped

131
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Interchangeable. And We Are For The Many Planets In This Solar
Dependant On Both For Our System.
Existence.

Question: And Do The Stars Give


Question: How Did They Become Sustenance To The Earth?
Objects Of Worship?
131. No, But In The Period
127. In The Ancient Belief System, Referred To As The Shadow Hour,
In Order That The Moon Be When The Sun Has Appeared To
Rendered Prideless And Subservient, Move Beyond The Earth And The
Yet Still Maintain Its Appointed Moon Is Not In A Full State The
Functions, The Worshippers Made Stars Provide Light.
The Visible Stars And Their Great 132. Although Much Farther Away
Amount An Equal Force Of Power. Than The Moon, Their Light Still
128. Thus, Creating Our Triad As Reaches The Earth And Aids Earth
1) The Sun, 2) The Moon, And 3) Beings In Finding Their Direction,
The Stars, When In Actuality This Is And Times Of The Years.
A Monad, Because Stars Are Suns
And The Moon Broke Off Originally
From The Sun As Well, So You See Question: So All Things In
Where Actual Incidents Change Into Nature Are Working Together?
Myths.
133. Yes, All Is In The All And
Felt Through Its Voice Om. So You
Question: I Thought The Moon See, Nothing In The Universe Is
Broke Away From The Sun? Better Than Another, For All
Created Things Have Their Purpose
129. You Are Correct, But So Did And Each Are Important As The
All The Planets And Suns In This Other.
Solar System, As The 554 Million
Tons Of Hydrogen Changes Into
550 Million Tons Of Helium Each Scroll Seven
First On The Sun.
130. The Remaining 4 Million Tons The Beginning Of Animal Life
Causes Electrical Storms And (19x6=114)
Explosions On The Sun. One Of
These Explosions Is Responsible As Was Mentioned Before, Early
Tanen, Tiamat , Which Became
132
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Eridu, And Then Grafted Into The Question: What Is The Lie?
Torah, The Bible As Aramic Hebrew
"Ereth", And Into The Qur'an As 5. The Lie Is, You Refer To This
Ashuric Arabic "Ard", Simply As The Planet Earth, When Land
Earth. Mass Is A Fraction Of That,
2. Both These And All Semitic Compared To Water Over The
Languages Come Form The Original Surface. Thus, This Is In Actuality A
Language Nuwaupic, Cuneiform, Water Planet.
Hieratic, Ugaritic, Chaldean, And
Akkadian. It's A Word That They
Do Not Define In Middle Or Old Question: Why Would They Hide
English Erthe, Or Eorthe Used For This Fact?
Earth, And The Latin Is "Terra" Or
Greek, "Ge." 6. Because An Environment Is A
3. So They Borrowed The Confession Of The Life Stock Of It.
Sumerian Terms In Greek, Gi From That Means If Most Of The Planet
Qi, Which Becomes Geometry, Is Water, Then In Actuality This Is
Simply Meaning To "Measure Gi", Not A Dry Land Planet, But An
Also Geography, Which Means To Aquarium.
"Write Out Gi", Geology Which
Means "The Study Of Gi". All Of
These Words Have Its Roots In The Question: What's An Aquarium?
Sumerian Word Gi.
7. An Aquarium Is A Place For
Question: Why Is That Aquatic Animals And Plants, Which
Important? Live In Water. From The Latin
Aqu³Rium, Source Of Water, From
Neuter Of Aqu³Rius, Of Water,
4. Because G Is The Seventh Letter From Aqua, "Water".
In The English Alphabet, The
Fourth Letter In The Hebrew
Alphabet, Gimel, And The Fifth Question: So Are You Saying
Letter Geem In The Arabic That The Planet Earth Is
Alphabet, Which Became Jeem, And Actually An Aquarium?
The Third Letter, Gamma In The
Greek Alphabet. And 3 + 4 + 5 + 7
= 19. It Is Important Because Of 8. Absolutely. Facts Are Facts, And
The Lie. Aquatic Animals Are, Fish, Whales,
Dolphins, Frogs, Turtles, Alligators,

133
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Crabs, Lobsters, Shrimps, Oysters, Form, But Water, Deep Water
Simply Reptilians. Covering Everything.
9. Thus, Your Statement In 11. These Neteraat, Which Came
Genesis 1:2, Which States: "And The Here Hovered, As The Bible Put It,
Earth (Ereth, Eridu) Was Without Form Above These Waters.
(Too-How) And Void (Boo-How)
And Darkness (Khoshek) Was Upon
The Face (Fawniym, Surface) Of The Question: Then What Does It Say
Deep (Tehowm, Depths Of The Sea), Happen?
And The Spirit (Roo akh, Wind) Of
God (Eloheem, Plural Gods) Moved 12. Well, Verse 3 Clearly Says:
(Raw-Khaf, Hovered) Upon The Face "And God (Eloheem) Said (Awmar,
(Faniym, Surface) Of The Waters Spoke Out, Uttered Words), Let
(Mah-Yim)". The Original Beings (Hayah, Let There Come To Pass) There
That Lived On The Planet Earth Be Light (Uwr), And There Was Light".
Came Out Of Waters Of This Earth, 13. So These Beings, Some Call
When The Conditions And The Them Gods, The Hebrew Has
Climate Was Suitable For Them To Eloheem, But They Weren't
Live On Land. As They Were Hebrews, And Didn't Speak
Evolving, The Earth Was Also Hebrew, And In Their Language
Evolving. The Conditions On The They Were Called Anutu, And Then
Land Had To Be Suitable For Those After Coming To Earth, Qi Was
Beings That Thrived In The Seas Added, They Became Anunnaqi.
And Could Breathe On Land, For They Also Were Called The Neter.
Them To Adapt To Land Living. Only The Creatures That Could Live
Under The Sea Lived Here When
They Arrived.
Question: So When The Eloheem,
As The Bible Calls Them,
Arrived Here, There Was Question: Where Does The Word
Nothing Here? Earth Come In?

10. That's Correct According To 14. Being They Were Land And
The Quote. When The Neteraat, Sea Dwellers, They Had To Stay In
Which The Sumerian Called Crafts Called The Holy Cities, Or
Anunnaqi, And The Bible Call Cylinder Crafts, As Described In
Eloheem Arrived Here, There Was The Bible Zacheriah 5:1-2, Or In
Darkness, And No Shape And No Ezekiel 1:4, Being They Were
Making This A Temporary Home,
134
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
They Referred To It As "A Home 18. These Begin To Form Larger
Away From Home". In Their And Larger Molecules, Until Protein
Language That Word Is Eridu, Was Formed.
From Which You Get The Word
Earth.
Question: So This Process Is
What Formed The Living Cell?
Question: What Was The
Atmosphere Here? 19. Yes. It Was This Formation
Which Ultimately Resulted In The
15. It Was Composed Of Gases, Prototype Of The Living Cell.
Ammonia, And Methane, In
Addition To Water, And Later
When They Brought The Sun Close Question: And What Was The
Enough To Evaporate The Water, Stage After The Creation Of The
So That The Land Mass Would First Cell?
Surface You Had Environment.
20. The Stage After The Creation
Of The First Cell, Involved The
Question: How Did These Gases Development Of The First Animals,
Reach The Earth? And These Were Single-Celled
Organisms.
16. The Cooling Of The Earth
And The Subsequent Falling Of The
Vapor Rings, Allowed These Gases Question: What Are These
To Reach The Waters Upon The Single-Celled Organsims Called?
Earth.
21. This Group Are Known Today
As "Protozoa" Which Is From The
Question: How Did These Gases Greek Language "Proto" Meaning
Form Organisms? "First In Time" And "Zoa"
From The Word "Zoia" Meaning
17. The Exposure Of Ultra-Violet "Animals".
Rays From The Sun Made Possible 22. The Simplest Of This Group
By The Greater Availability Of Was And Still Is The Amoeba, A
Sunlight, Caused These Gases To Small Mass Of Transparent
Form Simple, Organic Molecules. Protoplasm, Cytoplasm Which Does
Not Have A Definite Shape.

135
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Is Protoplasm? Question: Can You Break Down
Each Element That Makes Up
23. The Complex, Semifluid, Protoplasm?
Translucent Substance That
Constitutes The Living Matter Of 28. Yes. A) Water, Hydrogen And
Plant And Animal Cells And Oxygen Is One Of The Mediums In
Manifests The Essential Life Which Chemical Reactions Occur. It
Functions Of A Cell. Is The Largest Component Of
Protoplasm.
29. B) Protein Is Built By The
Question: What Is Protoplasm Amino Acids Which Were Formed
Composed Of? From The Basic Elements Of
Carbon, Oxygen, And Nitrogen.
24. Protoplasm Is Composed Of Amino Acids Are The Building
Proteins, Fats, And Other Molecules Blocks Of Life.
Suspended In Water, And It 30. C) Fatty Acids Are Composed
Includes The Nucleus And Of Carbon, Hydrogen, Oxygen, And
Cytoplasm. In Some Cases Phosphorous.
25. From The Greek Pr½To-, From 31. D) Carbohydrates Are
Pr½Tos, Meaning "Early, Or First," Substances Made Of Carbon,
And The Word Plasm, From The Hydrogen, And Oxygen.
New Latin, From Late Latin, Image, 32. E) Salts Or Mineral Salts Are
Figure, From Greek, From Plassein, Made Of Sodium And Other
To Mold. Elements. In Combination With
Chlorine, It Produced Sodium
Chloride.
Question: Can You Provide A 33. Other Sodium Compounds
List Of What It's Composed Of? Are Made With Calcium, Fluorine,
Iron And Iodine.
26. Yes. It Is Simply The Neteraat's
Recipe For Protoplasm. And Here Is
The Listing Of The Make Up Of Question: So Is This What
Protoplasm According To Element Amoeba Was Made Of?
Name And Percentage Amount. 34. Yes. Y Ou See The Amoeba,
27. Protoplasm Is Made Of 80% As An Example Of The First Form
Water, 15% Protein; 3% Fatty Of Animal Life, Was Composed Of
Acids; 1% Carbohydrates And 1% The Basic Elements.
Salt. 35. These One-Celled Animals
Feed On Other Microscopic
136
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Organisms By Engulfing Their Food Question: What Does The
And Making A Small Cavity In Cytoplasm Do?
Which To Digest It.
40. At The Same Time The
Cytoplasm Forms Around The New
Question: What Makes These Nuclei And The Two Parts Separate,
Organisms Move? Producing Two Entities.
41. Other Animals In This Group
36. The Organism Moves By Display Similar Characteristics.
Streaming Its Cytoplasm To Produce 42. Many Of Them Lead A
The Shape Of A Limb, These Are Parasitic Mode Of Existence And
Called Pseudopodia Or False Feet. Are The Causes Of Disease In Man
And Animals.

Question: What Is Cytoplasm?


Question: So These Organism
37. Cytoplasm Is The Protoplasm Live In The Human Body?
Outside The Nucleus Of A Cell.
From The Greek Kutos, Meaning 43. Yes. Many Types Of
"Hollow Vessel". And From Plasm, Protozoans Live In The Intestine,
Again From New Latin, From Late And Other Parts Of The Body Of
Latin, Image, Figure, From Greek, Man Without Causing Harm.
From Plassein, Meaning "To Mold". 44. Some Are Neither Harmful
Nor Beneficial, And Yet Others
Contribute To The Formation Of
Question: How Do Amoeba New Soils And Other Earth
Reproduce? Deposits.

38. A Full Sized Amoeba May


Reproduce By Asexual Question: What Is The Next
Reproduction. Group After Protozoans?
39. The Nucleus Divides Into
Two Parts And Moves Away From 45. The Next Group After The
The Center Of The Cell In Opposite Protozoans Were The
Directions. "Metazoans". These Differed In
Many Ways From Protozoans.
Metazoans Are Multicellular Animals
Of The Sub-Kingdom Metazoa, A
Division Of The Animal Kingdom
137
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
In Traditional Two-Kingdom 51. This Means That They
Classification Systems. From New Depended On Assistance From
Latin Metazoa, A Subdivision Of The Intelligence Above Theirs, And
Animal Kingdom : Meta- + -Zoa, Instincts As A Baby To Know That
Pl. Of -Zoon, Meaning "Animal". Colostrum Is In The Mammary
Gland Of The Mother.
52. For Those Beings It Is Obvious
Question: What Are Metazoans That There Is An Ingrown
Composed Of? Intelligence That Provided The
Sustenance For Them To Sustain
46. Metazoan Organisms Are Themselves.
Composed Of Distinct Tissues And 53. Other Life Forms Who Have
Organs Sometimes Possessing To Seek For These Sustenance In
Several Organ Systems. Other Places, Are Obviously Inferior
47. They Are Of Course Many In Intelligence.
Times Larger Than The First Group
Of Animals.
Question: What Does That
Mean?
Question: How Was The Increase
In Size Formed? 54. It, Simply Means Mobilization.
They Therefore, Needed Organs
48. The Increase In Size Of Living For Movement With Which They
Things Came About By The Could Find Food; And Organs For
Formation Of Colonies Of Cells Converting That Food Into Energy.
And By The Specialization Of A
Specific Task.
49. Such Specific Tasks Were Question: Thus Migration Was
Necessary For The Survival Of The Necessary?
Species.
55. Yes, And In So Doing, Animals
Or Cells Changed Environment.
Question: What Do You Mean? That Means Climatic Changes, And
Their Bodies Needed Protection.
50. Let Me Explain: For One
Thing, Animals, Unlike Plants Were
Incapable Of Producing Their Own Question: All Of This Is
Food. Controlled By El A'lyun?

138
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
56. One Has To Know The Question: How Did Things
Difference Between El A'lyun And Become?
El Kuluwm.
60. By Outgrowth From All, Yet In
All. Life In All Grew Into Existence.
Question: What Is The Life In Beings And These Beings
Difference Between El A'lyun Became All That The All Wanted.
And El Kuluwm? 61. Existence Is To Exist, To Exist
Is To Have A Sum, A Weight, Mass,
57. El Kuluwm Is Not Confined And All Things That Exist Vibrate
To A Place In Space Or What's At Different Modes And Speeds.
Called Time, Being Om-Nipresent,
Om-Nipotent, Which Simply Means Question: So Existence Vibrates:
Present Where All Things Are, And
Present Where Power Is, Thus 62. Yes And This Is What
Alleviating The Possibility Of Being Determines Its Density As Matter
God In Heaven, Or A God Coming Or Anti-Matter, Or Ether, Which
To Earth, Or A God In The Grew Etheric Beings Of Which El
Universe, But Rather An All, That A'lyun, Who Is Anu Is One, As A
All Is In And Of, Including Heaven. Group Called 9 Enneads , The 7
58. El Kuluwm Is, And Each Arch Angels, 1) Gabri'el , 2) Uri'el
Individual Thing Is, The It Or That, , 3) Uzzi'el , 4) Rapha'el , 5)
Or There, Or Here, The Is, Is Exist Izraa'el , 6) Zamar'el , 7) Miyka'el
And Is Safe Until One Says "Exist , And Originally There Was Also 9,
As", And Introduces As "A" Or As But Two Fell, Azazel And His Son
"The", Which Confines The Being Sama'el , Of Your Bible And
To "A" Thing, Or "A" Place, Or "A" Koran .
Person, Again Stepping Away From
El Kuluwm Significance.
59. The All Is A Statement That Question: What Is An Ennead?
Nothing Can Be Taken Because All,
Nothing Can Be Added Because All, 63. An Ennead Is A Group Or Set
Which Simply Means, Where Would Of Nine, From The Greek Enneas,
You Put It, Or Where Would You Ennead-, From Ennea, Meaning
Get It From, Because Even It, Is All. "Nine".

139
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: These Heavenly Host Egyptian Mysteries Say Atum, And
Are Actual Beings? In His Infinite Wisdom, He Had
Gifted Each Colony Of Cells With
64. That Is Correct. T He Heavenly The Specific Ability To Function
Host Are Existing Beings That According To The Needs Of The
Governs All The Various Moods Organism.
And Vibrations That Distinguish
Different Levels Of Energy That
Manifest As Life. Question: Do The Lower Forms
Of Life Come From That?

Question: Then What? 69. All Forms Of Life Are The


Same. It's A Matter Of What Density
65. T He Next Level Is The Level They Are On, Which Are
Neteraat, Eloheem, Anunnaqi, Simply Vibrational Levels On The
Malaaikat, Or Angelic Beings. Physical Plane, And All Cells That
Matter, Or Are Matter Are In
Actuality The Same.
Question: Is There Another 70. If They Change, They Are
Level? Changing Mode And Moving Into A
66. Yes. Beneath Them Is The Higher Or Lower Level Of Energy.
Physical Manifestation Of Etheric
Beings As Humans.
67. All Are Differentiated By Question: So What About
Animals?
Modes Of Vibrational Level,
Capable Of Occupying The Same
Space At The Same Time. Thus, It's 71. Humans Are Animals Like All
Not A Matter Of Where They Exist, Others. The Intelligence Level For
It's A Matter Of Fact That They Survival Is The Same In All Animals.
Exist. 72. Yet, Nature Has Taken A
Change By Interference From
Beings Outside Of This Solar
Question: And These Beings System, And They Upgraded Genus
Govern Life? Homo To Homo Erectus, Then
Seeded Homo Erectus To Breed
68. That's Correct, And In The Homo Sapien.
Case Of This Cycle Or Era Of Time, 73. The Leap In Evolution
The Bible Says El A'lyun, The Interferred With The Natural Cause
Enuma Elish Says, Anu, The Of This Specie Of Ape Reptilian,
140
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Called Man And Threw Off Other Question: So Dinosaurs Are
Animals Intelligent Levels For Lizards?
Survival, In So Far As They Had To
Move Their Habitats To Avoid This 77. No. Dinosaurs Were Not
Carnivorous Creature Called Man, Lizards But The Biggest Flesh
Who Killed For Recreation And Eating Dinosaurs Were Indeed
Fun. Note: Wrek-Creation. Terrible. They Are Considered
Reptilian Just Like Lizards Are Of
The Reptile Family.
Question: So Now, Other 78. They Stood About Twenty
Animals Appear Dumber Than Feet High And Had Skulls Four Feet
Man? Long With Huge Teeth.

74. That Is Correct, But Let Us


Go Back And Examine How It Question: At What Period Did
Began Here In This Aquarium, Dinosaurs Exist?
Falsely Called Earth.
79. Dinosaurs Existed In The
World During The Mesozoic Era,
Question: So All Animals The Triassic And The Beginning Of
Originated From Water? The Cretaceous Period.
80. All Animals, Like The Plants,
75. Yes, And These Animals Developed Into A Wide Variety Of
Multiplied And Diversified And The Forms In The Ocean Before They
Waters Teemed With Life From Were Able To Move Into The Land.
One-Celled Animals To The Many
Marine Invertebrates, Animals
Without Bony Skeletons, To The Question: How Did These
Large Marine Dinosaurs. Animals Multiply?

81. The Creatures That Inhabited


Question: What Does The Word The Waters, Multiplied According
Dinosaur Mean? To The Same Pattern As The Plants
We Discussed Earlier: That Is, By
76. The Word Dinosaur Comes The Fusion, First Of The Two Cells
From The Greek Words Dinos And Then Subsequent Division
Meaning "Terrible" And Sauros And Multiplication.
Meaning "Lizard". 82. It Was In Such A Manner That
These Creatures Multiplied.
141
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
89. Living Things Were Placed In
Question: Can You Witness And Their Categories By The Neteraat.
Overstand The Consistency 90. All Creatures Would Without
Involved In The Neteraat's The Interference Of Man
Master Plan Of The Creation Of Reproduce According To And With
Everything? Their Own Kind.
91. In Other Words, They Were
83. A Pair Is A Pair, And All Highly Prejudiced.
These Pairs Were Commanded To 92. In Spite Of This, They Were
Increase, And They Did Increase Able To Live And Function
Within Their Own Species. Harmoniously.
84. This Pairing Action Is Part Of
The Plan Or Partner.
85. Even The Process Called Question: How Long Did This
"Asexual Reproduction", A Last?
Single Cell Must Divide Into Two In
Order To Increase. 93. Over A Period Of Time, The
Sea Dwelling Creatures, Began To
Migrate Into The Rivers And
Question: Did You Ever Wonder Streams And Into The Swamps.
Why The Neteraat Made Things 94. Plants Were Still Very Plentiful
Function In Pairs And Not At This Stage Of The Earth's
Threes? Development.
95. In Order To Survive The New
86. It Takes Two To Start The Environments, They Had To Grow
Ball Rolling. New And Adaptive Structures.
87. Two Is The Number That
Leads To Ultimate Dependancy.
88. Because Of Its Nature, It Question: Did Any Problems
Paves A Straight Path To The Occur During The Stage From
Ancient Ones, For Everything Water To Land?
Came About In Pairs And In Turn, 96. Yes. In The Journey From
Must Be Subservient To The One Water To Land, They Encountered
Responsible For The Existence Of Three Main Problems: Firstly, They
The Neteraat. Needed A Moisture Regulating Skin,
So That They Would Not Dry Out.
97. Secondly, They Had To
Question: Why Is That? Develop Organs To Extract The

142
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Oxygen From The Air, In The Hey Favored The Warm Moist
Oceans. Areas.
98. Thirdly , They Needed Safe
Places In Which To Deposit Their
Eggs. Question: How Many Different
Breeds Came Out Of This?

Question: What Did They Need 103. Today, There Are Three Main
For This Change? Classes Of Amphibians.

99. Consequently The


Development Of Lungs And Limbs Question: What Are
Amongst The Most Important Steps Amphibians?
For The Adaptation Of Life On
Land. 104. An Amphibian Is A Cold-
Blooded, Smooth-Skinned
Vertebrate Of The Class Amphibia,
Question: What About The Skin? Such As A Frog Or Salamander,
That Characteristically Hatches As
100. The Most Evident Changes An Aquatic Larva With Gills. The
Occurred In The Skin, Which Larva Then Transforms Into An
Became Tough In Order To Retain Adult Having Air-Breathing Lungs.
Moisture Within The Body And To
Protect It Against Other
Unfavorable Conditions. Question: What Animals Are
101. The Blood Vessels Multiplied, Classified As Amphibians?
The Fish-Type Skull Flattened And
The Jaw Became Attached Directly 105. Amphibians Are Animals
To The Skull. Which Are Capable Of Living On
Land As Well As Water Such As:
Frogs, Toads, Salamanders, Newts,
Question: What Kind Of Animals And Caecilians.
Were These? 106. Frogs And Toads Have Short,
Tailless Bodies And Long Hind Legs
102. These Descriptions Of That Are Well Developed For
Course Match The Reptiles And The Leaping.
Amphibians Which Were The First 107. Salamanders And Newts
Animals To Appear On The Land. T Have Tails And Short Legs That Are
Well Adapted For Walking.
143
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
108. Caecillians Are Worm-Like 114. The Abundance Of Vegetation
Legless And Burrowing, Digging That Was Made Possible Partly
Into The Earth, Animals. Through The Increase Of Sunshine
After The Fourth Creative Period,
Ensured A Large Supply Of Food
Question: Do Plants Feel? For Animals Which Were Yet To
Come, Animals That Eat Other
109. Yes, All Living Things Feel Animals And In Fact Beast Of Many
On Their Own Level. What's Wrong Kinds.
With Humans Is They Define
Emotions And Intelligence By Their
"Yard Stick". Scroll Eight
110. The Neteraat Created
Everything In The Same Manner. An Increase In Size
Plants, Like Animals Are Also (19x3=57)
Living Things And Have
Intelligence, Instinct And Feel.
That's Why A Plant Will Grow Question: How Was It Possible
Toward The Sun For Nourishment, For Some Creatures To Grow
Or An Insect Will Change Its Color Into Such Massive Structures
For Survival. Such As The Whale?

All Organisms Increased In Size


Question: Why Was That? Through The Multiplication And
Specialization Of Cells.
111. Because They Need, In Order 2. Those That Are Taller Came
To Exist, The Same Basic Elements From Those That Are Shorter The
That Other Creatures Need. Original People Were The Little
112. The Neteraat Has Also People. You Grew Upward As All
Placed Balancement In His Creation. Other Things On This Planet.
This Is Why All Living Things Are
Interdependent. The Plants Need
Carbon Dioxide. Question: So The Original People
113. In The Food Chain, The Of Earth Were Pygmies?
Smallest Of Plants Are Food For
The Smallest Animals Which In 3. Pygmy Is Not The Right Word
Turn, May Be Eaten By Larger To Use, But The Original
Animals. Indigenous People Of The Planet
Earth, When It Became Earth Were
144
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Tahites, What's Wrongly Called Been Proven To Contain Quarks,
Dwarfism, Or More Actively Little And The Same Sciences That
People, For The Tahites Or Ptahites Applies To Atoms, Applies To
Were Not Deformed. Cells Grow, Adams, Cells. The Building Blocks
Plants Grow Toward The Sun. Of Life, Be It Organisms Or
Compounds.

Question: What Are Cells?


4. A Cell Was The Smallest Question: So Does The Cell
Structural Unit Of An Organism Increase, When An Animal
That Is Capable Of Independent Increases In Size?
Functioning, Consisting Of One Or 7. The Increase In An Organism
More Nuclei, Cytoplasm, And Means An Increase In Tissue Which
Various Organelles. They Were Is An Increase In Mass.
The Smallest Units Of Life. To Date
Scientists Have Found And Proven
That Cells Are Compounds Of Question: And How Does That
Smaller Forms Of Existence, Which Work?
Have Sum.
8. The Formation Of Different
Types Of Tissue Is Accomplished
Question: What Is The Similarity When Groups Of Cells Work
Between A Cell And An Atom? Together For A Specific Function.
9. A S Humans, Animals, And
5. An Atom Was The Smallest Unit Plants, Grew Larger And Larger And
Of An Element, And A Cell Was More Complex, They Needed A
The Smallest Unit Of An Organism, Greater Variation Of Tissues.
Until The Splitting Of Atoms And 10. It's Not That The Actual Cells
The Cloning Of Cells. Individually Get Larger, It's The
Amount Of Cells That Increase, As
In The Increase Of Fat In Fatty
Question: Are You Saying That Foods Makes One Obese.
Atoms And Cells Are Not The
Smallest Forms Of Energy And
Life? Question: What Happened After
That?
6. Absolutely. To Date Atoms And
In Particularly The Hydrogen, Which 11. These Formed Organs And
Is Supposed To Be The Lightest Has Organ Systems.
145
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Why Is Pre-Historic
Used?
Question: Were There Any
Defects? 16. To Confess That There Was
Time, People And Animals Existing
12. Yes, T He Increase In Size Before A Specific Group Of People
Was Crucial For Some Species Recorded Stories That Became The
According To The Environment In General Concensus. Pre- Simply
Which They Developed. Means "Before", And History Is
13. The Neteraat As Alchemists From The Middle English Histoire,
And Architects Are The Fashioners From Old French, From Latin
And They Fashioned Many Things Historia, From Greek, From Historein,
In Creation For Specific Purposes. To Inquire, From Hist½R, "Learned
Man". Simply Before The
Acquisition Of Knowledge.
Question: Just What Does
Neteraat Mean?
Question: And What Was The
14. The "U" On The End Is Cause For Their Extinction?
Plural. The Root In Ancient Hieratic
Is Na Ta Ra, And Means "A 17. The Basic Cause That The
Guardian, A Protector, One Who Looks Dinosaurs Became Extinct Was The
Out For Others." It's Simply A Tama- Rise Of Mountain Ranges During
Rean Way Of Saying God. The The Cretaceous Period.
Feminine Of Which Is Netert.
Plural Of Course Is Neteraat.
Question: What Do You Mean?

Question: So Prehistoric Earth 18. When The Mountain Ranges


Was The Home Of Many Large Formed, The Great Seaways Drained
Animals? From The Continents And The Vast
Swamplands That Were The Homes
15. Yes. Early Earth, Pre-Historic Of The Dinosaurs Dried Up And
Times Was The Home Of Many Most Died Of Dehydration.
Massive Dinosaurs Most Of Which 19. This Caused Tremendous
No Longer Exist. Changes In Climate And Food
Supply.

146
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So The Rapid Change Mammals And Reptilians, Called
Wasn't Adjustable For These "Terrible Lizards" Or Dinosaurs,
Dinosaurs? Just Like The Microscopic Ones,
Cells, Fungi, Algaes, Microbes,
20. No. T He Dinosaurs Had Played Their Part In The Master
Become Specially Adapted To The Plan Of Evolution And
Old Acquatic Conditions. When Development Of And On This
These Conditions Had Changed Planet.
Rapidly, The Dinosaurs Could Not
Adjust.
Question: So Evolution Is A
Fact?
Question: Did The Plants Die
Also? 27. Evolving Is A Fact. Growth,
Expansion, Change, Mutation And
21. New Plants Appeared And Even Genetic Manipulation, Which
The Old Ones Died Out. Results In Alteration Of A Species
22. The Plant Eaters Could Not Are Indeed Facts.
Live On The New Plants. 28. Yet, The Natural System Works
23. As The Plant Eaters Died Out, By What's Called Time.
The Meat Eaters That Depended On
Them For Food Also Died.
Question: So They Needed Time
To Evolute Or Evolve?
Question: How Long Did This
Process Take? 29. Absolutely In All It Took
Sometime Before These Animals
24. This Long, But Slow Process Developed Into The Kinds That We
Took From 10 Million To 20 Million Are Familiar With Today.
Years. 30. Although The Species
25. By The End Of The Developed From The Simplest Form
Cretaceous Period, Almost All The Of Life They Developed Into A
Dinosaurs Had Disappeared From Wide Variety Of Many Different
The Earth. The Others Were Characteristics, Which Includes You.
Destroyed In The Cataclystic
Destruction Caused By A Massive
Meteorite. Question: Was This A Grand
26. Again It Was By The Design Plan?
Of The Neteraat, These Massive
147
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
31. Yes. Still The Neteraat
Established Limits Whereby No
Group Outstepped Its Bounds And Question: Were There Other
Became Mingled With Another. Interventions In Life's
32. Once The Patterns Were Masterplan?
Established, The Prototype Of A
Species Was Complete, It Was 36. Yes. The Extinction Of
Stabilized, And Would Therefore Animals Has Occurred On Account
Reproduce Copies Of Itself. Of Drastic Changes Such An
Incident Took Place During The
Age Of Great Reptiles.
Question: So There Was A 37. Scientists Are Still Trying To
Control Over The Growth And Overstand What Caused The
Death And Extinction? Dinosaurs To Disappear From The
Planet.
33. Yes. Certain Species Were 38. Discoveries Of Their
Allowed To Flourish And Yet Fossilized Remains Have Been Quite
Others Were Destroyed Or Simply Common And Indicate That They
Overpowered By More Dominant Perished In An Era When Very Cold
Species Or Became Extinct. Temperatures Dominated The
34. Environment Changed, Climate Planet.
Changed And Many Species That
Were A Part Of The Chain Of Life
Were Phased Out, While New Ones Question: Have They Agreed On
Came In For The Forward Thrust What Happened?
Of Life. As All Living Things Make
Their Journey Back To Godhood. 39. No, But In Recent Years, The
Quest For The Clue To The Missing
Dinosaurs Has Picked Up
Question: So The Meaning Of Momentum.
Life Is? 40. Speculations Range Such As:
Overflowing Of The Arctic Ocean,
35. To Complete The Circle From An Exploding Super Nova
Whence You Come You Must Destroying The Ozone Layer. A
Return. As A Living Entity, Growth Volcanic Erupting On The Moon
And Death, Distinction And Reproducing A Ring Of Dense
Extinction. These Were Still In Particles Around The Earth.
Accordance With The Will Of The 41. This Caused A Heavy
Neteraat. Shadow To Blanket The Earth,
148
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Blocking Out The Light Of The Sun Question: Did This Life Ever
For A Significant Period Of Time. Change?

46. Yes It Did. After Many


Question: What Really Millions Of Years Life Crawled
Happened? Onto The Land That In Time
Surfaced As The Plane Tilted On A
42. The Earth Was Struck By An 23 Degree Axis And The Dust
Asteroid, Causing Its Poles To Tilt, Cloud Parted And Sun's Light Hit
Throwing The Planet Into An Ice The Waters And The System Of
Age. This Massive Meteorite Upon Evaporation And Condensation And
Impact Created Large Wind, And The Condensed Vapors Became
Sand Storms Which Laid Blankets Clouds, Land Mass Eventually
Of Ash Over The Planet Killing The Appeared.
Dinosaurs And Most Other Life 47. Creatures As The Whales
Forms. Crawled Out Of The Sea, Walked
The Land And In Time Went Back
Into The Sea, And Today They Are
Question: Then What Happened? Descendants Of Animals That
Could Live On Land As Well As
43. Those Aquatic Beings That Their Original Home Which Is
Existed Deep Within The Sea, Many Water.
Thousands Of Feet Beneath
Survived As Life Forms. Such As
The Microbes. Question: This Sounds Like The
44. In Time With Evolution They Creation Story, Is It?
Became Algae And Fungi Again And
Life Flourished Under The Seas 48. Well, In Reality Creation As
While There Was No Longer A Mentioned Before Simply Means
Surface On The Earth. "Growth".
45. The Dust Cloud Blocked Out 49. It Is A Reocurring Incident
The Light Of The Sun And There Each Time With Slightly Different
Was Simply Void And Darkness Events. So We Can Call It A
Upon The Face Of The Deep Creation Story, Not The Creation
Waters, Yet Life Dwelled Therein. Story.

149
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So Are Whales Confessing Their Religious Theories
Reptilians Or Mammals? Are Wrong. Their Scientific Data Is
Incomplete.
50. The Fact That The Whales Of
Today Have Lungs Is Evidence That
This Origin Stems From A Mammal Scroll Nine
That Once Lived On, Land As Well
As Its Original Home, Water. The Winged Fowl
51. In Fact, The Whales Still Have (19x5=95)
The Bones Of A Five Fingered
Hand Covered By The Skin And
Flesh Of Their Paddle-Like Flippers Question: What About The
And Some Have Hip Bones. "Winged Fowl"?
52. Whales Have Flat Tails Which
Help To Rise Easily To The Top Of The Winged Fowl Bird Is A
The Water For Air, And When They Descendant Of A Higher Order Of
Swim They Use Their Flippers As Fish Whose Fins Were Enlarged
Oars. And Thinned, Thus Enabling Them
53. They Have No Scales Or Gills To Fly Above The Waters.
And The Skeletal And Circulatory
Systems And Brain Are Quite Unlike
Those Of A Fish. Question: So Birds Are
54. The Whale Is Always Reptilians Also?
Changing Adapting Itself To A New
Environment As Do All Living 2. Many Were And At First,
Things That Respond To The Merely Skimmed The Surface, That
Condition Of "Survival Of The Is Leaped From The Water The Way
Fittest". The Salmon Does As It Travels Up
55. Simply Whales Are Much Like Stream. A S Time Passed, Its
Humans And Dolphins Belonging Abilities Became More Developed
To The Whale Family. Humans Are And It Took Flight. A Leap Or A
Mammals And Reptilians. And Jump Is Still Flight.
Scientists Today Are Now Saying
That Dolphins Are Closer To
Humans Than Monkeys Are. Question: Does This Still
56. Whales Are Mammals And Happen?
Reptilians.
57. Present Day Scientists Have
3. Yes, The Salmon Still Takes
No Classification Of This Without
Flight And There Are Still Some
150
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Varieties Of Fish That Display This Fly Above The Earth In The Open
Trait. Firmaments Of The Heavens."
4. The Most Well-Known Of 10. The Separation And "Wa" Is
These Are The Flying Fish. Inclusive, Meaning That This Fowl
5. There Are Several Other Was Also Created By The Eloheem
Varieties Of Fish That Are Known Out Of The Waters. As A Part Of
To Jump Out Of The Water And The Abudant Life.
Glide Occasionally, Like The Whale
And The Dolphin, Etc.
Question: So All Birds Come
From Water?
Question: Is This Where Birds
Come From? 11. Yes, Even As Far Back As The
Pterodactyl. This Is Why A Duck Is
6. Birds Come In A Wide Variety Considered A Bird Or A Fowl, But
Of Colors, Sizes And Species; Has Webbed Feet. And He Is One
7. They Are Among The Most Of Many That Belong To The Same
Widely Known Animals, Family.
8. F Or This Reason They Are 12. Chickens Have Webs And
Featured In The Legends And Myths Scales On Their Feet, And Can't Fly
Of Many Societies. For Long Distances. Penguins Have
Feathers Like Scales, Flippers Like
Wings, And Webbed Feet, And They
Question: Can All Birds Fly? Don't Fly.
13. So, To Assume As The Bible
9. That's An Interesting Question And The Qur'an Does, That All
Because Monotheist, Or Those Fowl Fly Is An Absolute Untruth.
Believing In The Bible Or Qur'an, Though, Most Birds Are Capable
Must Realize That Their God Makes Of Flight, Yet There Are Others
Quite A Few Mistakes Pertaining To Who Are Not.
What Is Referred To As Fowls, Or
Fowl Of The Air And Neglects To
Mention Fowls Of The Earth, And Question: What Is A
Fowls Of The Lakes. Genesis 1:20 Pterodactyl?
Clearly States That Birds Were In
The Sea First, And I Quote: "And 14. Any Of Various Small, Mostly
Eloheem Said Let The Waters Bring Tailless, Extinct Flying Reptiles Of
Forth Abundantly The Moving Creatures The Order Pterosauria That Existed
That Hath Life, And Fowl That May During The Jurassic And Cretaceous
151
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Periods. From The New Latin Cuckow, And The Hawk After His
Pterodactylus, Reptile Genus : Greek Kind, And The Little Owl, And The
Pteron, Feather, Wing; From -Pter, Cormorant, And The Great Owl, And
"Feather, Wing" And From The The Swan, And The Pelican, And The
Greek Daktulos, Meaning "Finger". Gier Eagle, And The Stork, The Heron
15. Ask Yourself, Why Doesn't After Her Kind, And The Lapwing, And
Your Bible And Qur'an Speak Of The Bat".
Flying Rodents Or Flying Reptilies,
But Only Flying Fowl.
Question: What Is A Bat?

Question: Why Didn't They? 18. A Bat Is Any Of Various


Nocturnal Flying Mammals Of The
16. Simply, Because The Authors Order Chiroptera, Having
Of The Bible And The Qur'an Membranous Wings That Extend
Didn't Know. From The Forelimbs To The Hind
Limbs, Or Tail And Anatomical
Adaptations For Echolocation, By
Question: Are There Other Which They Navigate And Hunt
Mistakes Pertaining To Fowl, Prey.
Amongst The Monotheists? 19. So A Bat Is Not A Fowl Or A
Bird. But More Closely Related To
17. Yes Right In Leviticus 11:13- The Rodent. An Outright Mistake
19, It Calls A Bat A Fowl. The On The Part Of The God Of The
Hebrew Word For Fowl In The Bible.
Quote Is Ofe, Meaning "Winged 20. And Isaiah 2:20 Makes It Clear
Bird", And The Word For Bat In That This God Knew Bats, Because
The Quote Is Atallafe, "Bat". He Feared Them As Being Idols Of
"Whatsoever Hath No Fins Nor Scales In Worship Or For Worship.
The Waters, That Shall Be An
Abomination Unto You. And These Are
They Which Ye Shall Have In Question: Just What Is A Fowl?
Abomination Among The Fowls; They
Shall Not Be Eaten, They Are An 21. The Word Fowl Is From The
Abomination: The Eagle, And The Middle English Foul, From Old
Ossifrage, And The Ospray, And The English Fugol, Meaning "Flight". Yet,
Vulture, And The Kite After His Kind; Most Of The Creatures Declared
Every Raven After His Kind; And The Fowls Don't Fly.
Owl, And The Night Hawk, And The
152
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
22. All Are Related In Some Way Question: Why Would God Or
To Sea Creatures Having Scales, Gods Do Such A Cruel Thing?
Webs And Water Proof Feathering.
Birds Come In All Sizes. 26. It's The Religious
Misinterpretation Of Superior
Beings That Leaves The Impression
Question: Why Can't Certain That They All Must Be Good, The
Birds Fly? Term God Even In The Bible,
Which Gave Birth To The Qur'an Is
23. Actually, If They Are Called Sometimes Applied To Evil Beings,
A Bird Or A Fowl, They Should Be Disagreeable Beings As In All
Able To Fly, Regardless Of Their Cultures.
Size, Because Pterodactyls Were
Larger Than Any Bird We Have
Today, And They Flew. Question: Were These Spiritual
Or Physical Beings?

Question: How Did They Change 27. Both, For The Word A'aferti
From Fish To Birds To Reptiles Has Its Root In A' Fa Ra, "Dust,"
To Rodents? And Implies The Taking On Of
Dust Particles, Dehydrated Blood.
24. As Was Stated Earlier, The Yet, It's Translated As Pharoah As A
Animals Mated Within Their Own Human Yet Spiritual God, Who All
Species And Did Not Mix. Howev Gave Reverence To The Neteraat
Er, Intervention By Extraterrestrial Which Has Its Roots In Na Ta Ra,
Alchemists And Geneticists Which Means "Watchers Or
Experimenting And Tipped The Guardians". Spiritual Beings Who
Scales, Thus Producing Disorder. Can Personify.
28. So Both Principles Are
Covered. And There Were And Are
Question: Is There Any Proof Of Good Physical People, Bad Physical
This? People; Good Spiritual Beings And
25. Proof Of This Disorder Is Bad Spiritual Beings.
Found In The Offspring Of Various
Animals That Were Mated Out Of
Their Class. This Was Done By Question: Is This The Reason For
Genetic Breeding. The Imperfection In Creation?

153
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
29. Yes. Some Scientists Succeed After The Likeness Of God. (2
And Some Fail. The Sad Thing Is Samuel 21:20, 1 Chronicles 20:6).
That These Ancient Scientists In 32. It Is Clear That All Men On
Religion Are Called God, And The Planet Are Not In The Image
Religious People Respect The Of God. Anthropomorphism Or
Perfections And Ignore The Not, Some Have Five Fingers, Some
Imperfections, Or Refuse To Have Six.
Acknowledge If One God Is In 33. With These Many
Control Of All Things, And He Deformities, Like Siamese Twins,
Would Be Responsible For All The It Is Clear That Humans Were A
Imperfections In Creation, As Well. Product Of A Higher Intelligent
Experiment.

Question: All Deformities Are


God's Fault? Question: Are Flying Rodents
And Reptilies A Form Of
30. No, Many Diseases, Viruses, Deformity?
Deformities Are Caused By Human
Beings Themselves. Bad Diet, Bad 34. No. Being They All Were
Health Habits. Many Deformities Originally From The Sea. Some
Have Occurred With The Aid Of Examples Are: The Bat, A Rat-Like
Human Kind. Mammal With Wings.

Question: Can You Give Question: The Bat Is A Rodent


Examples Of Some Of These Or A Mammal?
Deformities?
35. A Rodent Is A Mammal.
31. Yes. A.I.D.S, A Man Made
Virus That Alters The Question: And What Do Modern
Chromosomes. Down Syndrome, Scientists Classify A Mammal
Alzeheimer's, Cancer, Polio, Herpes, As?
Hydrocephalic, Dwarfism,
Gigantism, Not To Mention Many 36. Mammals Are Any Of Various
Forms Of Disfiguration, One Which Warm-Blooded Vertebrate Animals
Stands Out In The Bible, Is People Of The Class Mammalia, Including
Having Six Fingers And Six Toes, Human Beings, Characterized By A
Which Religions People Can't Covering Of Hair On The Skin And,
Explain If Man Is In The Image And In The Female, Milk-Producing
154
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Mammary Glands For Nourishing Question: Now Back To The
The Young. [From Late Latin Fowls And Bats, Are They
Mamm³Lis, Of The Breast, From Unnatural?
Latin Mamma, Meaning "Breast."
40. Yes. The Bat Is The Result Of
The Unnatural Breeding Of The
Question: Are Humans Mammals Bird Which Accounts For Its Wings
Or Reptilians? And The Rat Which Accounts For
The Fury Appearance On The Body.
37. Both, They Are A 41. Bats Have A Keen Sense Of
Combination, Having Both Lungs Hearing, Which They Use To Guide
And Gills. As Well As, Wings. Just Them In Their Flight.
As Many Snakes And Whales Have 42. Their Wings Are Actually Five
Hips Without Legs, Thus Humans Fingers Covered By A Thin
Have Wings Beneath Their Arm Membrane.
Pits, Which They Once Used To Fly 43. Bats Are The Only Flying
And Swim. Mammals.

Question: Are You Saying Question: How Many Species Of


Human Beings Once Flew? Birds Are There?

38. Exactly, That's Why Their Face 44. There Are Many Species Of
And Body Is Aero Dynamic From Birds.
The Top Of The Head Downard. 45. They Range In Size From A
But When Standing With A Flat Wing Span Of Six Inches To A
Face And Flat Body, They Are Wing Span Of Five Feet.
Subject To The Dangers Of G 46. Bats Depend On Flying As A
Force. Mode Of Movement Even More
39. Humans As Descendants Of Than Birds.
Reptilians Once Swam In The Deep
Seas And Breathed Using Their Gills
As They Did In The Water Sac Of Question: Which Other
Their Mother's Wombs. Creatures Are Choice Bred?

47. The Aardvark Is Another


Choice Bred Creature. It's
Commonly Referred To As An
"Earth Pig."
155
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
48. Some Scientists Claim That Tigers Have Been Known To Mate
The Origin Of The Aardvark Is With Lions.
Unknown. 53. The Offspring Of Such
49. It Is Described As Having A Relations Are Called "Tigons"
Stout Pig-Like Body. When The Male Parent Is A Tiger ,
And "Ligers" When The Male
Parent Is A Lion , From The Bengal
Question: Where Did The Tooth Tiger, Related To The Saber
Aardvark Come From? Tooth Tiger Of Pre-Historic Times.

50. The Aardvark Is A Mutation


That Occurred On Account Of Question: What About The
Crossbreeding Of The Rodent, Mule?
Feline And The Canine . It Is An
Offshoot In The Making Of The 54. The Mule Is Another Mixed
Wild Boar, Who Later Was Bleached Animal. It's The Offspring Of The
Into The Albino Domestic Pig, Or Horse And A Donkey.
Souse. 55. Mules Are Usually Sterile
Because Of The Chromosomal
Difference Of The Parents.
Question: You Mean The Pork 56. This Interferes With The
That People Eat Is A Genetic Normal Production And
Experiment? Maturation Of The Sex Cells.
57. Thus, Mules Are Incapable Of
51. That Is Correct, In Fact All Reproducing Their Own Kind.
White Or Albino Reptiles, Mammals However The Female Mules Can Be
And Fowls Are Genetic Mutants. Bred With A Male Horse Or A Male
Intentionally Bred For Human Donkey And Produce A Foal, Which
Genetic Mutants. The Bible Zechariah 9:9 Clearly
Makes A Mistake And Says A Colt Is
The Foal Of An Ass.
Question: And Are There 58. And This Is An Out Right
Others? Mistake, Because A Foal Is An
Offspring Of A Male Horse And A
52. Yes. You Also Have Ligers Female Mule.
And Tigons, Also Said Tiglon:
Under Certain Conditions, As In
Enforced Confinement Of Zoos,

156
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So All Life On This 64. The Cloning Of The Adult
Planet Came From The Same Sheep Was Done By Dr. Ron
Source, Water? James, Managing Director Of Ppl
Therapeutics, At The Roslin
59. Actually The Air That People Institute, Edinburgh United
Breathe In Daily Is Still A Form Of Kingdom.
Water. Water Takes Many Forms
And Densities.
60. So Be They Indigenous Of Question: What Is The Meaning
This Planet Or Transported To This Of The Word Clone?
Planet To Waters, You Could Say
Life On This Planet Had Its Origin 65. The Word Clone Is From The
In Water. Rising From The Lowest Greek Kl½N, Meaning "Twig". Yet,
To The Highest. Is Used In The Scientific
Community As To Make Mulitiple
Identical Copies Of A Dna
Question: Could You Explain Sequence.
Further? 66. They Prefer To Use The Word
Clone Without Giving You The
61. Kane, The Simplest Form Of Definition. They Give You The
Animals Range From One-Celled Above Definition, Because Twig
Protozoa To Animals With A Would Reveal That The Root Of
Backbone. The Word Clone, "Twig" Is More
62. Western World Scientists Related To Grafting Than Breeding,
Today Are In The Process Of As In The Case Of Plants And
Cloning And Have Successfully Fruits And Even Animals.
Cloned Sheep And Mice. A Science 67. They Grafted A Tangerine And
That The Ancient Tama-Reans A Peach To Make A Nectarine, Or
And Sumerians Had Many In The Case Of When The Botanists
Thousands Of Years Ago. Wants To Change The Color Of A
63. Today, They Are Finally Plant They Will Graft Twigs
Becoming Able To Clone A Full Together And In The Fourth
Grown Sheep Which Means That Generation Create From A Red The
They Are Able To Clone Full Extreme Which Will Be The Albino
Grown Adults, As Well As The Re- White, Then Combine The Two To
Growth Of Bones, Tissues, And The Create A Spotted Leper And Then A
Likes. As In Ancient Time, Pink Plant.
Keloiding Was A Process Of Limb 68. This Principle Also Was Used
Growth Or Regeneration. On Humans. Some Were Bred With

157
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Reptilians, Some With Gibbons, As What They Are. Myths And
And Some With Baboons Resulting Fables Are Not Supported By Any
In Various Species Of The Human Scientific Data.
Race With Different Natures.
69. Some Are Born With The
Instincts To Kill. Question: So What About God?
70. The Results Are, Some
Humans Are Herbivores And 76. If These Scientific Facts Are
Carnivorous. True, And They Have Been True,
71. Some Kill For The Pleasure Of Then The Religious Concept Of
It Called Serial Killers, Others For Creation Is Wrong, And You Don't
Food Called Hunters And Even Need Their Kind Of God To Create.
Some Have A Taste For Human 77. President Bill Clinton Had
Flesh Called Cannibals. Banned Cloning, Which Led Private
72. As In 2 Kings 6:28-29 And Business To Fund These Projects.
Where Israelite Women Are Boiling 78. Reseachers In Scotland Have
And Eating Their Kids And Developed A Technique For
Leviticus 26:29, Where They Are Cloning Unlimited Numbers Of
Told To Eat The Flesh Of Your Genetically Indistinguishable Sheep.
Sons And Daughters. 79. Only Five Identical Lambs
73. These Varying Natures In Have Been Created So Far, And
Humans, Which Result In Mental Three Died In The First Days Of
Disturbances To Insanity, Are A Life.
Results Of Genetic Tampering And 80. But Scientists Said The Success
Crossbreeding With Animals And Could Open The Door To Mass
Reptilians. Production Of Gene-Altered
Animals With Desirable Traits, Such
As Sheep With Better Wool Or Pigs
Question: How Does Cloning Or With Humanized Organs Suitable
Genetic Splicing Affect Religion? For Transplantation Into People.
81. Researchers Said That The
74. The Fact Is That These Technique Could Also Be Used To
Scientific Realities Blows The Cover Clone Human Embryos.
Off Of All Religious Beliefs That A 82. However This Was Banned By
God Said "Be" Or "Let There Be", President Clinton.
And Puff, Things Came Into 83. Some Scientists, Namely Keith
Existence. H.S. Campbell, Ian Wilmut And
75. Scientific Discoveries Are Their Colleagues At The Roslin
Making Bibles And Qur'ans Appear Institute In Edinburgh Describe

158
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Their Approach To Cloning 90. Yes. Researchers At The
Animals. Oregon Regional Primate R Esearch
Center Announced They Had
Produced Two Monkeys With A
Question: What Did They Say? Procedure Similar To That Used
By Scottish Researchers.
84. They Stated That They Started 91. The Cloning Of The Rhesus
With A 9 Day Old Sheep Embryo, Monkeys, Born In August, Used
Made Of A Hundred Or So Cells, Primitive Embryos, Rather Than
Which They Removed From A Adult Animals, As In The Cloning
Pregnant Ewe. With The Sheep.
85. The Team Allowed These
Cells To Divide Repeatedly In
Culture Dishes. Question: So Man Is Now God
86. In Less Than A Week, And Is Creating?
Thousands Of The Identical Cells
Filled Several Dishes. 92. Yes, If These Are Facts, And
87. Separately, The Researchers These Are Facts.
Gave Hormone Shots To Female 93 This Totally Destroys Religious
Sheep To Induce The Release Of Concepts, That Says That Only God
Eggs From Their Ovaries, Much As Can Create.
Fertility Specialists Induce Ovulation 94. Religion Cannot Answer To
In Women Trying To Become The Fact That Humans Have Taken
Pregnant. The Role Of What They Call God,
88. This Team Created A Healthy Or Eloheem, Or Yahweh, Or
Lamb From A Normal Adult Cell Thehos, Or Allah And Are Creating
Taken From The Udder Of An Ewe. And Making.
89. While It Took Scottish 95. So If Man Is In The Image And
Scientists Almost 300 Embryos To Likeness Of God, Then God Was
Produce One Healthy Sheep Named Creating Gods, Who Will In Time
Dolly, Which Some Of The Do What Gods Do, Create More
Offspring Were Deformed And Gods, Thus Man Created By God Is
Died. Now Creating.

Question: How About Animals Question: What Is The


Other Than Sheep, Any Closer Difference Between Creating And
To Human? Making?

159
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
96. Creating Is Growing And Cooked To Make Apple Sauce
Something From Nothing, And Or Apple Pie, You Have Made
Making Is Utilizing Things Already Something, From Something Grown
Grown. Or Created

Question: How Can You Grow Question: How Does This Relate
Something From Nothing? To Humans?

97. The Key Is Some-Thing. Or 104. Well, You Have Your Ta-Ma-
The Sum Of Something. Re As Atum, Atun And Amun.
98. When You Plant A Seed You 105. You Have Your Seeds Or
Have One Type Of Thing, Or Its Cells And They Are Developed And
Sum Or Total. Grown In The Laboratories.
99. Once That Seed Grows Into A 106. Then These Seeds Are
Tree And Yields A Fruit Or Flower, Brought Together And We Have A
It Has Become Several Different Type Of Being.
Things.

Question: What Do You Mean By


Question: Can You Explain A Type Of Being?
Further?
107. Well, If You Look Around
100. Of Course, The Seed Is One You Will See That There Are All
Thing. The Tree Another, The Different Types Of Beings, Be They
Leaves Another And The Fruit Yet Animal, Reptile, Amphibian Or
Another. Even Insect, And Of Course The
101. Yet, They All Have Their Human Animal.
Origin In The Original Seed.
102. Without The Sun's Light, The
Water And The Earth, Simply Ta- Question: The Human Animal,
Ma-Re, You Would Have No What Do You Mean?
Growth Or Creation.
108. Humans Would Like To See
Themselves As Other Than A Part
Question: And As For Making? Of The Animal Kingdom, When
They Do And Act Just Like All
103. Yes, As For Making, Once Other Animals.
The Apple Is Grown, Picked, Peeled
160
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
109. They Kill To Survive, They Question: Which Race Was
Scheme, They Shed, They Copulate, First?
They Produce And They Die. There 112. Without Sounding Racist, Or
Are Many Different Breeds Of Prejudice, Science, Anthropology,
Humans. Geneticist Have Proven Beyond A
Shadow Of Doubt That The
Negroids Were The First On This
Question: Different Breeds Of Planet And That All Others Came
Humans? From Them.

110. Yes, More Than Just The


Normals Accepted Concept Of The Question: Does That Make Them
Three Races. The First Being, What's The Mothers And Fathers Of
Called The Negroid, The Second All Other Races?
Being, The Mongoloid, And The
Third Being The Caucasoid. Within 113. Actually Yes And No, Because
Each One Of These Races There It Makes Them The Mothers Of All
Are Many Species. Others, Being All People Come
From The Woman.
Question: And How Will I
Recognize Them? Question: So The Woman Is
God?
111. Different Heights, Bone
Structure, Skin Texture, Hair 114. That Is The Unspoken But
Texture, Color, Blood Types. The Well Known Truth In The Scientific
Whole Variety Of Different Community, That God Produces
Metabolisms Reveal Just Like Gods. So I Repeat, When God Was
Different Breeds Of Canines. You Creating God And Said "I Create In
Have So Many Different Dogs, Yet My Own Image And After My Own
All Belonging To The Canine Likeness", This Creating God Would
Family, The Same Applies To The Have To Have The Power Of God
Human Animal, From The Chiwawa To Create Other Gods, Thus The
To The Great Dane, Rom The Perpetuation Of God Eternal Was
Pygmy To The Watusi. That's Just In The Original Creation Of God.
Within The Negroid Stock.

161
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Scroll Ten

The Origin Of Creation Question: How Will I Know


Right From Wrong?
(19x20=380)

Now That We Have Arrived Here, 7. Because It Was Necessary For


Which Is There On Planet Called The Forces Of Nature To Select
Earth, Plan-E.T And Are With Our One From Your Own To Lead The
Children, The Black People, Way And Break The Spell, Your
Melaninites, The Nuwaupians, We Own Supreme Being. Amunnubi
Only Await The Moment. Raakhptah.

Question: What Is Meant By The Question: How Much Time Did


Moment? We Have?

2. We Awaited For The Hour 8. A Mere Half Of A Minute In


Glass To Empty. The End Of The Years. Thirty Years Was Needed
Evolutionary Cycle. From 1970 To 2000, The End Of
3. The Ape Man, The Cave Man, The 6000 Year Reign Of The
Man's Kind 6000 Year Evolutionary Lucipherians, Sata, Satan, Shaytan,
Cycle Has Come To An End. Leviathan, Beelzebub, Master Of
4. It's Our Time, The Primitive Filth, Lord Of Flies, The Human
Man. The Neolithic Man. By Serpent, Lipless Snake People, And
Primitive We Mean The Prime Or Now I Can Begin The Great Work
The Best? Of The Second Half Of The Minute
In Years To The Year 2030, The
Reformation As The Purifier, Setting
Question: Is This The End Of The Record Straight Of Re-Newing
The World As We Know It? Our-Story, Resurrecting The
Mentally Dead, The Sleeping Gods.
5. Only The World Of The Devil.
His Time Has Run Out.
Question: Who Appointed You
6. The Cycle Of Mankind Is Over
To This Position?
And It Is Now The Revolutionary
Cycle Which Means Evolutionary In
Reverse, Back To The Beginning Of 9. I Am Appointed By The Forces
Time Before The Making Of The Of Nature To Determine And
Physical Devil On Earth. Disclose To The People:
162
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Tehuti, From Septet (Sirius) Even
1. The Hidden Past, Called Djehuti, Zehuti, Djhowtey,
2. The Changing Person Or In Greek They Called Me Thoth,
3. The Ruling Future. Toth, Thought, Thout, And
Hermes Trismegistus,
16. Also Called By The Arabs Of
Question: What Is The Meaning Islam Al Khidr, Al Masih, And By
Of Nature? The Hebrew Rabboni, Ha
Mashiakh, Also Called, Issa Al
10. Nature Is From The Latin Haadi Al Mahdi, The Grand Mufti
Natura Or Natus "To Be Born". Of The Western World Al
11. So Nature Birthed Me At The Mukhlas, "The Purifier" Al
Right Place, At The Right Moment Mujaddid, "The Reformer" Al Qubt,
In Time To Fulfill The Mission Of "The Axis" Al Imaam, "The Leader"
Renewing Our Story. Melchizedek, "Angel Of Justice",
12. I Came Not To Change The Miyka'el, Angelic Being, Yaanuwn,
Truth, But To Fulfill The Truth. "The 19th Elder" Murduk, "The
13. Time Has Revolved Aunnaqi" Malachi, "The Messenger Of
(Revolution). It's Time For You To Fulfillment" And Atum-Re, The
Re-New Your History (Our-Story). Great Deity Of The Sun, Re "Ra,
Roi" Raised To The Heights 7200
Degrees, 360 Degrees Of Physical
Question: Who Are You, And (Understanding) And 360 Degrees
Where Are You From? Of Spiritual (Overstanding), The
Supreme Grand Hierophant Of
14. I Am A Product Of Your The Ancient Egiptian Order.
Needs. An Answerer To Your
Questions, A Fulfiller Of Your
Dreams. Question: Atum-Re Why Do You
15. However, First Know That I Have So Many Renaat "Names"
The Great Neter: Amun Nubi ?
Raakh Ptah, Who Did Not Rule
On Earth But Rule Amongst The 17. What Many People Don't
Stars, Am Also Known As Know About Egiptian Aafertiaat
Amunnubi Rooakhptah Or "Pharaohs" Is That We All Change
Amunubi Rah Ka Ptah, The Sun Our Names Many Times And Had 1
Raising Out Of The East Unto The Secret And Sacred Name In Tones, 3
West, Who Throughout Time On Special And 5 Other Titles Called
Earth, Was Known As The Great Royal Names .
163
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
18. Five Elements Denoting Their Or Her Leadership Waab
Connection To The Neteraat "Holy Priest" Or Priest Of
"Deities" Their Divine Purpose And Ceremonies And Rituals,
Function. Teachers Of The Mysteries,
Semu "Funeral Priest ",
Protectors Of The Dead,
Question: What Does These Originally The Priests Of
Royal Names Include? Anubu , Guides Of The
Spirit World, Links Between
They Include : The Living And The Dead,
Or Djat "Vizier".
* (1). Haru - A Name To *( 3). Neter - Deity Name
Link Oneself To The Noble Golden Name Depicting The
Or Royal Family . This Was Royal Person As The Gold
Done As The Name Was Of The Neteraat "Gods" .
Written In A Serekh . The The Earthly Manifestation Of
Serekh Was Like A Shenu The Divine Ones, Ila
"Cartouche" But With A Mutajassida, Avatara, And
Symbol Of The Royal Deity, Their Beloved Names Like
In This Case A Falcon Or Re, Hotep, Bes Or Aset .
Hawk Topped The Serekh They Would Take On Names
With The Symbol Of Haru Of Egiptian Deities Just As
"Horus" . This Was The Way You Say Abdullah,
Of The Egiptians. As Christian , They Link To
Nubians , And The Blood Your God Or Incarnation Of
Seed As Well As Descendants Deity.
Of The Ancient Egiptians
Today, You Have This Right . * (4). Nisut-Bit Name Or
Just As Muslims Call Title Preface By Two Names
Themselves Muhammad , Meaning This A Ruler Out
Khan Or Shariyf, To Link Of The North Or The South
To His Noble Family Or Al . "Bit " Out Of The Nisut
Mahdi. This Was How We "North" Raising Out Of The
Did Things. East.
* (2). Nebti - The Throne * (5). Sa - "Son Of Birth
Name Or Office Of Master Name, This Is His Or Her
Titl E. Aaferti "Pharaoh", Actual Birth Name Given By
Rabboni, Imaam, Reverend Their Earthly Parents Like
, The Name Or Title Of His "York, Williams Or

164
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Jackson" . This Is Your By Six Ether Forces, Negative Spirit
Blood Line Name . So All Forces Of Sympathy, Pity, Apathy,
Egiptians Had Many Names Jealousy, Dis-Contentment, The
Which Caused Many Name Laws Of Self Defeat And Inferiority
Changes. Think First. You're Complexes.
A Pupil, Then A Student, 24. You See Before 1999, You
Then A Teacher, Then A Worshipped Spooks, Spirits, And
Professor, Then An Ghosts.
Employer, Then A Boss. All 25. In Turn For Your Soul They
Of These Are Change In Promise You Grace, Which In The
Titles And Names. Hebrew Old Testament (Genesis
6:8) It's Khane "Favor", Not
19. And The Other Three Names Forgiveness For Your Sins.
Are How They Are Received As, 26. Yet In The New Testament
Example Are: John 1:17 It Has The Word Kharece
"Joy". That's Fund, Not Forgiveness
20. All The Same Persons, Just For Your Sins.
How Each Language Translates The
Same Name.
21. And The Final And 9th Name Question: What Are Your
Is Called By The Ancient Egiptian Promises?
The Sacred Name, The Big Name
Or The Hidden Name Of Power In 27. Favor And Joy Two Things
Tone, Because It Contains The The Wealthy People Get Right Here
Secret Tone To The Essence Of The On Earth, Not Forgiveness, Which
Being Or Person That Opens The In Hebrew In The Book Of Psalm
Door That Makes It Irresistible To 103:4, The Word Is Seleekhaw
Respond To; "Forgive" Or In The New Testament
22. The Name Used In Pa The Book Of Colossians 1:14, The
Hanument "The Movement" To Word In Greek Is Aphesis
Invoke The Help Or Aid Of These "Remission, Forgiveness".
Deities.

Question: Isn't Grace Salvation?


Question: How Were We Fooled
In The Past? 28. No. Your Grace Is Not Your
Salvation (Genesis 44:18) Which In
23. In The Old World Religion Of The Torah Or Old Testament Is
The Moon God Sin, Given To You Yeshooaw In Hebrew And In The
165
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
New Testament Greek Sotayreeah Md, (Medical Doctor) But Both Are
"Salvation" (Luke 1:77). Called Dr. Or Ph.D. Even D.D,
29. So Black People You Are Being Doctor Of Divinity, Said As Doctor.
Fooled. 36. In Egipt We Ask For Help
30. The Devil Has You From The Being Or Person That
Worshipping Ghost, Hebrew Could Help Us Right Then And
Gawvah (Genesis 25:8), And Greek There.
Pnyoomah "Ghost, Spirit" (Matthew 37. However, You Call On Allah,
3:16). Jesus, Christ, Yhwh, Ja, Dios, God,
31. Read Their Bible Or Qur'an Lord, And No One Helps You. You
And See They Have You Under A Still Suffer And Die.
Spell, Ghost-Spell (Gospel) 38. Your Hospitals Are Full Of
(Matthew 4:23). You, Sick And Dying With No Help.
32. You Must Look Up The 39. You Should Be Worshipping
Words, Not Just Their Translations. The Nurse And Or Doctor Who
That's The Devil's Trick. The Graces Actually Saves Your Relative's Life,
Are The Daughters Of Zeus 1. Not Some Un-Proven Spook, Called
Aglaia, 2. Thalia (Muse). The Super Natural, Super-Natural.
But You Don't, You Just Say Thanks
Doctor.
Question: What Salvation Does
Ancient Egipt Offer?
Question: How Can A Spirit Be
33. In Ancient Egipt And Now We Super Natural?
Call On Those That Could Relly
Help Us With Our Problems And 40. It Can't. The Word Super Is
Health Conditions Right Now When From Latin Supra "On Top Of" And
We Need Them. Natural Is From Latin, Which Is
Roman Naturalis, From Natura,
Meaning "Nature, Born".
Question: What Is The 41. So Your God Or Deity, Allah,
Difference? Is Super Nature. Well, That's Just
What Nuwuapu Teaches The All In
34. The Doctors Of Today Were All. That's The Way You See It, Or
The Alchemists And Priests To Us Should I Say Don't See It.
Egiptians.
35. Even Today You Give The
Title Of Doctor To A Ph.D.,
(Philosophy Doctor), Who Is Not A
166
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Who Takes The Credit Question: So Can God Be A He
For Healing? And Not A She, Yet
Omnipresent?
42. Once A Person Is Healed By
The Doctor Or Nurse, You Run 46. No. To Say He Is Not A She,
Right To Your Church, Synagogue, You Are Saying He Is Not
Mosque, Or Place Of Worship And Omnipresent As A Male Only, That
Give Thanks To A Spiritual Spook Is, If He Is Not A Female Or A
God, Allah, Yhwh, Etc. Some Male And A Female, That Is What Is
Unseen, Unproven, Spook Man, Called A A He-She, The Real
God The Father, God The Son, God Meaning Of The Word Bi-Sexual, A
The Holy Ghost, Because It's Hermaphrodite, Not Even A
Always A "He". "Allah Or Our Hemaphrodite.
Father Who Are In Heaven".
43. So This Spirit Has A Gender,
Male, And All Men Come From Question: Can A Spirit Be Male
Females. That Is A Fact. Or Female?
44. To Call God A "He" Or A
"Father" Is To Give Him Genitalia, 47. Yes Because The Word Spirit
As The Freemason Or Masonic "G" As Nafs Also Relates To The Person
And Their Term Two Ball Cane, And Personality. In The New
Making God A "He." Testament You Will See Pneuma In
Matthew 1:18 Meaning "Breath
Wind Or Spirit". The Root Of This
Question: What Of Female's Word Is Found In Pneumonia, Which
Genitalia? Originated From The Alteration In
The Word Pleumonia, From Pleumon
45. Being Females Do Exist And Which Means "Lung". You Need
Have Chromosomes And Genes, Or Your Lungs To Breathe And
What They Call The X- Without That Breath Of Life, You
Chromosome And The Y Of The Would Die, And Become Ghost, Or
Male Is A Maimed X, Then In 6-Ether Which Is 9-Ether In Death..
Actuality The Rib Came From The
Woman, Not The Male. The Very
Word Man Is From Sanskrit Manu Question: What Gender God Do
"Thinker". Sanskrit Is The Language The Monotheistic Relgions
Of East Indians. Worship?

167
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
48. They Have A Male God, (Unseen, Invisible Things) Theos (God),
Ghost, Spirit, That They Cannot The Firstborn Of Every Creature:".
Even Confirm Exist Or Existed. 50. Now How Can A Physical
The Word Ghost Can Be Found In Man/God Jesus Christ Be In The
Genesis 5:8 In The Bible As Gana Image Of The Unseen God, When
Or Gawnah Is Where Their God In Order To Get An Image You
Came From As In The "Ghost God". Have To Be Seen?
Pa Tam'a-Hu "White" Race 51. This Is The Root Of Your
Worship And Have So Many Of Religion, The Blinding Light Of
You Worshipping Also. The Word Ignorance, The Spell.
Ghost Comes From Middle English
Gost, From Old English Gost, Breath,
Spirit. They Worship This Divine Question: What Does This Have
Force Because They Cannot And Do To Do With Doctors And God?
Not Have It. You As 9-Ether
People Have This Divine Breathe, 52. You Never Give Thanks Or
The Breath Of Life, The Soul And Honor To The Doctor Or Nurse
Spirit, 2 Yods. They Only Have A That Actually Healed You, The
Spirit, One Yod. In The Hebrew As Ones Who Performed The
Found In Genesis 2:7, The Word Operation, Or Your Relatives Who
For Living Soul Or Divine Breath Is Prayed For You And Their Own
Neshawmaw. When Adam Was Powers Healed You.
Originally Born As A Nefesh Khay 53. In Ancient Egipt, Pa Waabaat
Yj Vpn "Living Soul" With One "The Priests" Were The Alchemists,
Yod (Y), He Was Given The Chemists, Doctors And High Priests,
Neshamaw Khayyeem Myyj Hmvn And They Were Being Respected,
"Breathe Of Life" With Yods (Yy) Appreciated And Revered As Such
Which Was Blown In His Nostrils, And Were Worshipped For What
Making Him A Living Soul. They Did To Relieve People's
Sufferings.
54. The Ancient Egiptians Had
Question: Can An Image Be Respect For Their Waab "Priest"
Unseen? And Their Relative, Their Own
Blood Seed. That's Who We Were.
49. No, Yet They Call Jesus A Part
Of A Three Part God In One.
Question: Is Respect The Same
(Bible, Colossians 1:15), And I
As Worship?
Quote: " Who Is The I-Kone (Image,
Figure, Likeness) Of The Aorotos
168
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
55. Yes In A Sense. Idolizing, Question: Who Are We Really?
Worshipping, Respecting, Revering,
Are All Forms Of Worship. 60. You Are The Descendants Of
The Star Constellation Known As
Septet Or Sirius, Who Seeded This
Question: Why Does It All Sound Planet.
Like New Information? 61. Not All Black People Have
Come Through Septet, Many Are
56. Well In Fact It Is Outformation From The Seed Of Apophis, Simply
And The Time Has Finally Come Called Black Devils, But All Have
For Me To Give You What I Come From Beyond These Stars.
Reincarnated To Give You,
Nuwaupu.
57. I Have Given You Nothing But Question: Who Or What Cast
The Facts Here In The Western The Spell?
Hemisphere And It Spread All Over
This Planet, And Now All Over The 62. The Nuwaupians Of Latter
World People Are Waking Up. Time Have A Spell Cast On Them
58. The Mummy Is On The Rise. By Amam "Leviathan" That Is A
Only The Truth And Nothing But Form Of Amnesia.
The Truth I Give. It's Resurrection
Time.
Question: Who Is This Seed In
Egipt?
Question: What Was Wrong
With The Nuwaupians?
63. The Cursed Seed And Their
Iniquities Have Come Down To
59. There Was A Spell Cast Upon Their Offspring, The Hyksos "Pa
The Nuwaupian "Nubian Ethiopians Tamahu" Pa Tuta , "Caucasian" ,
Moors" (The Woolly Haired People) Also Called The Jacobites Or
The World Over, And It Is An Evil Yacub's People, Or The Jebusite Of
Hypnotic Spell Of Amnesia, Spiritual Canaan.
Ignorance, And Racial Indifference
Cast Upon Black People As They Question: What Is The Tool For
Allow Themselves To Be Called, Casting And Enforcing The
Nigger As Well As Negro, Afro- Spell?
American, African American, Or
Colored People. 64. 1) Commitment, 2) Loyalty, 3)
Devotion, 4) Belief, 5) Faith, And 6)
169
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Wealth, As Taught In His Doctrine 71. When You Make The Decision
Used To Indoctrinate And Enslave Your Self To Not Believe Their
The Minds Of Black People, The Form Of 6 Ether, Gas, Spirit Force,
World Over. God In His Image, Or Not To
65. Their Records Are Called The Accept Christianity In Its Many
Bible And Qur'an. Forms, You Become A Cult, A Non-
66. These Are His Own Books Of Conformist, A Trouble Maker.
Th E Dead. 72. You're No Longer Out Of
67. They Contain The Laws Of Your Mind.
Their God, Who Is A Spook, Spirit, 73. Now You Learn To Mind Your
And Their Books Are Full Of Own Business.
Nothing But Stories About Dead 74. You Are In Your Right Mind If
People. You Return Their Moon God Called
Sin To Them. A God You Have To
Romance, A God That Charms You.
Question: Don't People Make 75. You Must Love And Adore
Their Own Decision Then Free Their God And Their Image.
Will To Accept A Religious 76. When You Realize Their 6,000
Doctrine? Year Cycle Is Over, And You
Decide To Return To Your Own
68. No, And The Big White Lie Is Egiptian Deities And Way Of Life,
That You Have Or Were Created And At That Point Your
With Free Will, Self Determination Revolutionary Cycle Will Have
By A Spirit God Or Lord And Begun For You And Kind.
Master That Loves You. 77. They Will Begin To Dissipate,
That Is To Dis-Appear.

Question: Who Is This Lord And


Master That Blacks Are Tricked Question: Who Is The "They" In
Into Loving? The Above Paragraph?

69. That Lord And Master Is The 78. Pa Sata "The Serpent" Amam
White Man, Who As A Transparent Or Leviathan, The Giant Sex And
Being, That Is Transparent Skin, Is Spirit Force That They Use In White
In The Image Of A Ghost. Magic To Rule You.
70. And You Have Learned To 79. They Want You To Desire
Worship His Image And To Want Only To Be With And Love Their
To Be Like Him And Her And Have God And Them.
Lost Knowledge Of Self And Kind.
170
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
80. They Can Do Anything To And This Is Why No One Before
You And You Still Love Them. Now Has Been Able To Really Unite
81. This Evil Force Is Able To The Nuwaupian In Any
Control People, Body And Mind, Considerable Numbers.
And Even Nations By Sex, Lust And 87. And Is Also Why The People
By Spirit Generated From Blood, Of Egiptian, Ethiopian And
Semen, And The Waters Of The African Descent, By Blood And
Planet Earth Mixing, And This Is Suffering Seed And Genes Have Not
Done By Stimulating Sex In Various Been Able To Dare To Make Any
Ways. Real Progress Towards Freedom
82. First You Lust After Things He And Equality Amongst Themselves.
Has Set Up To Trap You. 88. For With The Help Of The
Caucasian Amam "Leviathan" (The
God Of The Caucasians) Who
Question: Just What Does Sex Hypnotized, That Is Enchanted, The
Have To Do With This? Nuwaupians With His And Her
White Magic Power Of Six Ether
83. They Rule You Also By Way And Sealed The Hynoptic Spell
Of Physical Lust And Sex In The (Hypnosis) With Their Religious
Moon Cycle, The Night, For The And Spiritual Ignorance Called Faith
Last 6,000 Years, Which Is How Old And Belief, Mosesism, Jesusism,
Europe Is, Not The Whole World. Muhammadism, It's Called A Hex
84. And The Name Europe Is Or A Mojo, Abbreviation Of Moses
From Europa, Which Means "To And Jesus.
Enter In", She Was A Phoenician 89. The Spell Enforces Racial
Female Deity, Wife Of Zeus, The Indifference To Self And Kind,
White Bull. Worshipping Their God In Their
85. Europa Was A Fertility Or Sex Image.
Goddess, The Greek Harlot 90. People World Over Are
(Revelation 17:16) Of New Babylon Seduced By The Freedom Of Evils
And Old Babylon. In Europe And Its Offspring
America, And Australia, And Their
Explicit Sexuality, Cyber Sex
Question: When Will Their Time Addicts.
Come To An End? 91. One Method Is They Get
People Addicted, That Is A-Dick-
86. Their World Ended 9/9/99, Ted To Nudity And Lust On The
Nine To The Ninth Power Of Nine, Computer.
By The Re-Emerging Of Nuwaupu.
171
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
92. It's Called Their Sex Matrix, Revelation 18:23). Zarthustera
Which Comes From The Latin (Zoraster) And His Followers
Matrix "Breeding Animal". Also From Migrated To India In The 10th
Mater For "Mother". Century And Became Known As
The Parsis, Meaning People From
Pars Or Persia. His Teachings
Question: How Do They Keep Mostly Are Preserved In The 17
Control? Hymns Known As The Gasthas
Found In A Part Of The Yasra A
93. They Control Your Emotions Sacred Avesta Scriptures.
By Enticing You With Lust And Zarathustra Was Taught Personally
Indecent Exposure And Things Like By Ahura Mazda, Ormuzd, Or
That, Which They Could Not Do Or Ohrmazd God Of The Sun, Son
Get Away With In Their Own Of Zurvan God Of Infinite Time, A
Lands. Hemarphrodite, Who Fathered
94. They Defect And Come To Ahriman, The Evil One. Zarathatra
This New Babylon Or Nod, Where Said Ahura Mazda Came From The
Evil, Lust, Sex, And Explicitness Is Sun And Is Depicted With Winged
The Law Of The Land, And A Sun Disk. He Appeared To
95. And The Only Way The Spell Him In A Series Of Visions.
Can Ever Be Broken And The As You Can See They Have Many
Nuwaupians Be Really Free Again, Forms Of Religions That Help
And Free Indeed, Is That The Enforce Their White Maic Strongets
Spiritual Ignorance Be Destroyed Is The Addiction To The Media The
By Spiritual Knowledge And Seat Of All Of The Programming
Overstanding; That Destroys 9-Ether And
96. And The Racial Indifference Be Replaces It With 6-Ether Force Of
Destroyed By Racial Knowledge Wisdom Strength Beauty Without
And Overstanding, As Taught Only Using The Cure, Black Magic, A
By Nuwaupu, Sound, Right Power For Black People, And A
Reasoning. Real Formula That Will Reverse The
97. So It Is Futile, That Is Hypnotic Spell Of Amnesia
Impossible, Trying To Free Enforced Through His White Magic,
Hypnotized People From This False White Supremacy, With
White Magic Called Sorcery, Mageus, Teachings Like White Is Good And
Or Magus, Magi From Farsi Black Is Bad. Their Incantations
"Persian" For Fire Attributed To Over Nubian People As They Teach
Zarthustera (Zoraster) It Can Be It In Their Own Books.
Found In The Greek In Acts 8:9,

172
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
98. In Acts 8:9 And Revelation Right There In Their Bible And
18:23. This Time The Word Used In Qur'an.
The New Testament In Greek Is 103. They Call It Sex, Drugs And
Pharmakeia "Witchcraft" Or Violence, The Three Principles Of
Pharmacy, That Is Far-From- Their Lifestyle.
Mercy.
99. The Word Kehshef Is The
Hebrew Word For "Witchcraft" Or Question: What Are Their
"Sorcery", Or Qehsem "Divination", Symbols Of White Racism?
Or Greek Miqcam.
100. Note Divine In Genesis 44:15 104. Snow White, Angels With
Is Nawkhash, The Same As White Wings, Jesus White, Dressed
Genesis 3:1 For "Serpent, In White With A Halo Around His
Enchantment", To Cast A Spell, Head. Muslims Dress In White
Incantation, A Spell. Robes.
105. So God Or Allah Must Be
White Also. That's White Magic.
Question: Is This An Actual 106. Light Is Good, Dark Is Bad.
Hynoptic Spell? 107. This Is All White Magic And
Can Be Cut Off, Just As You Cut
101. Yes And That's What Must Be Off A Light To Get A Good Night
Broken. Also Note The Greek Word Sleep And Awake New And
Pharmacy, To Use A Drug. That's Refreshed, Born Again, Irthed N
Their Trick, To Drug. The Sun, But White Magic Is
102. You Get Spellbound With Keeping Them In Captivity Both
White Magic. The Word Magic Physically And Mentally.
Comes From Middle English Word
Magik, From Old French Magique,
From Late Latin Magica, From Latin Question: What Of Black Magic,
Magice, From Greek Magike, From Isn't That Evil?
Feminine Of Magikos, Magician,
Magical From Magos, Magician. 108. No, But This Is What They
Magus Is From Middle English Would Like You To Believe, That
Magi, From Latin Magi, Pl. Of Anything Prefixed With Black Is
Magus Sorceror, Magus From Greek Bad.
Magos, From Old Persian Magus. 109. Part Of The Black Magic
From Magh Meaning "To Be Able, Formula To Reverse Or Destroy
To Have The Power Of Fire." Their The White Magic Evil Hypnotic
Own White Witchcraft And It's

173
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Spell Of Amam "Leviathan" Is This 117. When The Mind Is Out Of
Series Of Scrolls, Nuwaupu. Order, The Person Is Out Of Order.
110. Again, I T Is Futile Trying To
Unite So-Called Negroes, Physically
Without First Uniting Them Question: Can You Please
Mentally. Explain That, Atum-Re?
111. If We Can Achieve Mental
Unity, And We Can, We Are 118. When The Mind Of
Automatically United Physically Nuwaupians Are Divided The
Because A Person Talks And Acts Physical Persons Are Divided,
The Way That He Or She Thinks. Common Knowledge Meaning,
112. Hence The Results Of Knowledge That All Or The Mass
Ignorant Thoughts Are Ignorant Majority Of Nuwaupians Will
Words And Ignorant Works, If The Overstand And Accept Will Unite
Minds Of Those Of A Kind Are Our Minds In The All.
Enslaved, That Kind Is Enslaved No 119. This Is Our Source That Is
Matter Where They May Be. About Us, For Us.
120. This Is Knowledge, And It
Alone Will Liberate Us.
Question: What Must We Do? 121. It's Not For Them. This Is
Your Secret, Truth. Let It Make You
113. You Must Take The Initiative Free.
To Stop Ignoring The Truth About 122. There Can Be No Physical
Self And Kind. Unity As Long As The Spell Of
114. If The Minds Of Those Of A Racial Indifference Is Upon Us, For
Kind Are Free The Physical Persons Love Of Self And Kind.
Are Free Or Will Soon Be Free, 123. Now That The Destruction
Because The Mind Is The Control Of The Spell Is Complete, T He
And Thereby Determines The Nuwaupians Will Have A Free
Course That The Person Or Persons And United Mind.
Will Take. The Right Path,
Nuwaupu, The Ancient Egiptian
Order. Question: How Will This Be
115. You Are In The All And The Achieved?
All Is In All.
116. You Are Not Mere Mortal 124. Right Knowledge With The
Men, You Are Their Gods, Their Help Of The Forces Of Nature That
Lords, Their Masters. Will Destroy The Evil Spell Of

174
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Confusion, Ignorance Apathy And 131. This Series Of Scrolls Called
Disunity Among Nuwaupians. The Sacred Records Of Atum-Re,
125. You Will Begin To See Your Or The Black Book, For Good
Gods, Nature At Work On Their Reasons Provides Some Of The
World Right Now. Questions And Answers
126. It's Coming Down Just For Necessary To Break The Evil Spell
You. Of White Magic.
127. Vengeance Is Mine, Saith
Your Gods, Your Deities.
Question: Then What?

Question: What Is The Purpose 132. When The Spell Is Broken


Of Right Knowledge? The Spell And Its Evil Results Of
Disunity, Hate For Each Other
128. Right Knowledge Is Disorder, Apathy And Oppression
Designed To Free, Discipline And Will Pass Away From The Nubians
Unify The Minds Of Nuwaupians, And Other Oppressed People, Our
Then The Rest Of Your Heritage Sons And Daughters, The Other
Will Come As Sufficient Effort Is Races Of People Of Color.
Made To Teach All Others Of Your
Seed.
129. Right Knowledge, Right Question: What Is The Reward?
Wisdom And The Right
Overstanding Are The Black Magic 133. All Nuwaupians Who
Formula Necessary To Counteract Accept The Answers And
And Destroy The Evil White Magic Explanations In These Series Of
Hypnotic Spell Of Amam Scrolls Called The Sacred Records
"Leviathan"; The Devil. Of Atum-Re And The Facts Of
130. Because Right Knowledge Other Books That May Follow Will
Causes The Nuwaupians To Think Soon Be Liberated From Oppression
Right And Take The Right Steps And Captivity And Be Free.
Toward Liberty, Justice And 134. That Is The Reward. Mental
Equality Amongst Our Own By The And Phyiscal Freedom. A
Help Of The Forces Of Nature At Reinstatement On Your Throne.
Work Right Now. Just Look All
Around You. They Are On Their
Way Out And Nature Is Doing It
For Us.

175
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: When Were The 139. I Impart To You Only Right
Nuwaupians Removed From Knowledge, Right Wisdom, And
Their Throne? The Right Overstanding, To Break
The Spell With Nuwaupu.
135. The Nuwaupians Are The 140. I Called You Out Of
Caps Stones Of All Existing People Mosesism, I Called You Out Of
And Lost His And Her Spiritual Christism, I Called You Out Of
Powers Long Ago, Turning Their Muhammadism,
Souls Over To The Devil To Lust
After Him And His Kind. 1) Christianity Is The Ism Or
Religion Of White People So
Their God Jesus Is White.
Question: Can It Be Regained? 2) Judaism Is The Ism Or
Religion Of Aramean, So Their
136. Yes. These Scrolls Will Help Ha Shem Is Aramean.
You Regain Your Spiritual Powers 3) Islam Is The Ism Or
By Helping To Destroy Ignorance Religion Of Pale Arabs, So
Because Without The Restoration Their Allah Is An Arab.
Of Your Own Spiritual Powers Of 4) Buddhism Is The Ism Or
Nature You Can Never Be Free And Religion Of Asian, So Their
Equal And Gain Use Of Your Own Buddha Is An Asian.
Spiritual Powers That Are In 5) Hinduism Is The Ism Or
Nuwaupu (Pronounce Noo-Wah- Religion Of East Indians, So
Poo) The Spiritual Science Of The Their Ziva Is A East Indian.
Ethiopian Nuwaupian. 6) Zorastrianism Is The Ism
Or Religion Of Persian, So
Their Mazda Is A Persian,
Question: Who Are They?
141. I Called You Out Of All The
Other Isms, Saying To You "Come
137. They Are The Woolly- Out Of Beliefs And Faiths My
Haired People All Over The Planet People, Come Out Of The Grave,
Earth And Their Children, Called Ye Are Gods, Not Merely Mortals,
Soul People, Or People Of Soul. But The Sons And Daughters Of
The Great Gods Who Created All
Things, Built Pa Miraat "The
Question: Who Are You To Us?
Pyramids" And Subkhaat
"Monuments" And Tekhenu
138. I Am The Keeper Of The
Sacred Word, Made Flesh.
176
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
"Obelisk" Of Egipt, And As Their Set Down In The West (Mattew
Children, You Too Are Gods. 24:27).
142. Stand Up And Take Control 150. All Comes Forth From
Of Your Life And Destiny. Yaanun.
143. Again The Whole World 151. You Slept But Now Raise
Knows Who And What You Are With Yanuwn, Atum-Re I Am
And Where, You Came From, But Your Savior, None Other Have You.
You. 152. Let Me Show You Your Way
144. They All Want To Keep You Of Life. Let Me Give You Back
Down As The Foot Stool. Your Own Powers. (Malachi 4:2).
145. Get Up You Mighty People, 153. The Time Has Come For This
Stand Still. Sayhu "Mummy" To Raise From The
146. Ye Are Gods, Children Of Mental Death, Out Of The Grave,
The Most High, The Eloheem, The Neb Ankh "Sarcophagus".
Nephileem, Aalihaat, You Are Of 154. Unbind Your Hands And
The Four Forces Of The Four Feet, Face Your Body And Mind.
Corners Of The Universe, Neteraat, 155. Shake Off The Filth Of His
Elul, Anunnaqi, Nommos. World.
147. The We, The Us, That Said 156. It Is Time For You To Come
"Let Us Create", A Mortal In Our Out Of Her My People, And Put
Own Image, A Kind Of Man, Not Back On Your Flesh That Of The
The Original Man, The White Man, Seed Of The Deities Who Birthed
But He Became Spoiled By His Evil You, Your Cloak Of Destiny.
Nature And Went Bad (Genesis 157. Get Up You Nubians, Who
6:6), And I Was Amongst The Were Originally Called Nubuns Or
Original Gods Of Creation Of The Nuwbun, Muur "Moor", Stand Up
White Race, As The 19th Of The 24 You Neteraat, You Gods.
Time Keepers. (Revelation 4:4) I 158. Take Your Rightful Place As
Am Called Yanuwn Or Yaa-Nun." The Makers, Owners, Cream Of The
Yaa=O Nun= "Inert". Planet Earth And The Boundless
148. That Is Nun, The Primeval Universe. You Are Neteraat "Gods".
Waters, From Which All The Deity 159. The Message From The
Indeed Originated. Neteraat, Who Sent The Visitor Is
Becoming Clearer And Clearer Each
Earth Year, Who I Am, Why They
Question: What Is Nun? Raised Me Up Amongst You, And
Why The Neteraat Are Back And
149. Nun Is The Gateway For The Even From Where They Came?
Sun To Raise Out Of The East And

177
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
160. Yet, The Demon Seed (John Light Of Lightning, Which Is A
8:44) Of Apophis Or Apep, Satyrs, Destructive Force Of Energy.
Baphomet, Faunus, Diabolos,
Dragon, Satan, Shaytan,
Nakhash, Leviathan, The Giant Question: What Is Wrong With
Sex Serpent, Who Is The Moon Or A Wanna Be?
Lunar God Sin, Greek
Harmarteeah, Sin, Which Is Also 165. A Wanna Be, Has No Mind, A
Spelled Cin, Sincere, Which Is Really Wanna Be Is Possessed By A Pale
Sin-Seer, Your New Psychics And Spirit Force, A Wanna Be Is Like A
Seers Of The Old Age, Calling It Tree With No Roots.
New Age, The Evil Ones, Accusers, 166. Black People Come From A
Even Their Time Is Up. Moral Society.
161. This Lust Demon Also Called 167. However, This Evil Demon
Lucipher "Light Bearer" (Bible Isaiah Brought Lust Into The Picture And
14:12, Qur'an 61:8, "Their Intentions It Does This By Stimulating Sex In
Is To Extinguish Allah's Light With Various Ways And This Is Why It Is
Their Mouths, But Allah Will Complete Called A Sex Force As Well As A
His Light Even Though The Unbelievers Spirit Force.
May Detest"), The Devil Rings In 168. They Tell And Teach Lust.
The Amber Light Or The Fire, Now Even The Internet Is A Web
White Magic. To Catch Your Soul, Being The
Computer Is The Beast That
Everyone Is Logged In And Given
Question: What Is Meant By A Number, Which Spell Bounds
White Magic? Black People And They Give Their
Very Souls.
162. White Magic Is The Forces 169. They Give The Computer All
That White People Use To Enslave They Have. They Live By It.
All Other People Into Worshipping
Their Gods In Their Image And
After Their Likness. Question: What Was The Law Of
163. Accepting Their Mental And Morals?
Physical Abuse With A Smile,
Prostrating, And Praying, To Their 170. Originally Sexual Intercourse
Spirits And Ghosts. Was Only For Reproduction And
164. White Magic Is The Spell Of Pleasure Was Given As A Gift, But
Leviathan. Just As Light Is Good, It Was Forbidden For Other Than
Until They Come To The White That, And Especially Not For
178
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Lustful Gratification, Which 177. Thus Resulting In Most Of
Resulted In Explicit Activities, Your Madness And Insanity On The
Abominations And Fornications. Planet.
171. When The Gift Of Pleasure
Has Become An Uncontrollable
Urge That Results In Rape And The Question: How Was Character
Likes As Taught In Cinema, Conception Controlled?
Internet, (Enter The Net). 178. Originally The Leaders Of
172. Sex And Lust Is On Sale All Your Clans Told You By The Stars,
Around You. The Alignments, Seasons, And
173. You Can't Get Away From It When It Was Best For Two People
And That's The Spell. To Give Birth. Sex Was A Sacred
174. Something The Caucasian Is Ritual.
Known For As He Spreads His
Venom Throughout The Other
Races, Seduction. Question: When And Where Did
It Go Bad?

Question: What About Birth And 179. The God Sin, "Sin Nanna",
Reproduction? Europa, A Nymph Introduced
Perversion, That Was To Have Sex
175. An Exact Time Was Given Out Of Season, Saying The Moon,
For Reproduction Of Your From Monos (God Of Sarcasm,
Offspring, So As Not To Have Pain), Or Monotheist (Mono-
Them Born Any Month And Time, Theory), Is Romantic.
Any Season, Out Of Due Season, So 180. When The Moon Is Full
As Not To Create All Kinds Of Women Are More Sexual.
Personalities. 181. To Be Mooned Is To Show
Your Gluteus "Buttocks", The Moon
Has A Luster Or Lust-Re Tonight,
Question: What Is Out Of Due The Word Lust In Greek Is
Season? Epithumia, Which Is Said Epee-
Thoo-Mee-Ah, Lust, Desire,
176. When Two People Of The Craving, Moonlight And Music, All
Wrong Astrological Or Zodiacal Pertaining To Sex And Romance.
Sign Give Birth At The Wrong
Time, The Child Is Defected.

179
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What About Seed Question: What Did The
Mixing? Egiptians Teach About Apophis?

182. It Was Unlawful To Mix Your 191. Apep Or Apophis Was The
Godly Seed With The Curse Seed Or Enemy Of Re, He Attempted Each
His Offspring, The Children Of The Day To Stop The Work Of Re And
Curse Seed, It Was Considered To Block The Sun From Its
Bestiality. (Leviticus 18:22-23). Appointed Passage As Atum-Re,
Atun-Re , And Amun-Re Through
The Sky As Khaf-Re, The Scarab.
Question: What Was The Name 192. They, The Evil Race, Pa Tuta
Of This Cursed Seed In Egipt? Produce All The Problems In Our
Seeds Through White Magic.
183. This Offspring Or Race Was 193. Forces Of Sight Verses Those
Called In Egipt Apophis Or Ape, Of Blindness, Those Of Actions
The Dog-Headed Third Root Race. Verses Those Of Thinking.
184. The First Root Race. Negroid, 194. The Reader Will Overstand
The Second Root Race Mongoloid, These Scrolls Better, If He Or She
The Third Root Race, Caucasoids. Remembers, Re = Again,
185. The First Root Race Black, Membership "Join A Group",
That Is True Blacks Or Blues, Are Leviathan Is The Sun God, The Star
The Only Race With Human Hair. God, Earth God, And Moon God
186. All Other Have The Same For Mankind, A Kind Of Man,
Hair As All The Other Animals. Human Beast All Straight Haired
187. In Fact Many Of Them Have Peoples. Not The Same As Our
Hair All Over Their Body. Deities:
188. Their Seed Goes Back To The
Baboon, Then Back To The Jackal, 1) Sun = Re
And She-Wolf, The Roman Story Of 2) Moon = Khonsu
Romulus And Remus. 3) Star = Aset
189. This Is Why The Dog-God Is 4) Earth = Geb
Their Best Friend.
190. They Sleep In The Same Bed 195. Leviathan Can Manifest Itself
With Them, Eat With Them, And As The Sun God Shamash, At One
Even Kiss Them In The Mouth, Time, The Earth God, Adamah, At
And Allow Them To Live In Their Another Time, The Moon God Baal,
Homes. At Another Time, And The Star
God, Ashtoreth At Still Another
Time, Or It Can Manifest Itself As A

180
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Combination Of Two Or All Four Power And Of Course, This Means
At The Same Time. That Leviathan Is Very Powerful
And Very Deceptive.
198. In Fact, Leviathan Is The
Question: Is This The Same As Forces Of Trickery, Deception, And
The Adam In The Bible And Hypocrisy.
Qur'an?

196. The Group Called Adam Six Question: What Is Leviathan?


Thousand Years Ago Was
Incarnation Of Earth God Known 199. Leviathan Is The Spirit Forces
As Erets "Earth" Adamah "Ground" Of The Bible And Qur'an.
In Hebrew, Dagan In Mesopotamia, 200. Leviathan Is Six Ether, That
Zeus In Greek, Jesus In Roman, Is, Spirit Fire As Amber Light, That
Baal, In Akkadian, Eli In Ugarit, Produces Ghost.
Jahovah In Hebrew, Gad In 201. Ghost Is The Spirit Of A
Canaanite, Gutt In German, Which Dead Person. Leviathan In
Became God In English, Etc. Phoenician Is A Serpent Monster
Moreover, Leviathan Is God At One Who Inhabits The Deep.
Time And The Devil At Another 202. It Must Be Noted That The
Time Or Both At The Same Time. Phoenicians Were Excellent
God As Gad, 10th Letter In Mariners, People Of The Sea.
Hebrew, Yod Short For Ya Or Jah 203. If The Reader Overstands
(Psalm 68:4), And Jah Is Short For This Paragraph, He Or She Can
Jehovah From Y.H.W.H, The 10th Overstand The Scrolls Called The
Letter In English Is J Of Ja. Gad Sacred Records Of Atum-Re.
Means "Troops". (Torah, Genesis 204. In These Scrolls There May
49:19). They Were The Protectors Be Repetition, But It Is Needed For
Or Guardians "Gods" Over The Clarity And Emphasis.
Other Tribes Of Israel. Guard-God,
Gad, Which Became Gutt In
German. Question: Did The Caucasians
Try To Conceal These Truths.

Question: The Devil Has Equal 205. Yes. The Caucasians (Hyksos,
Powers With God? Romans, Canaanites, Russians,
Germans, Jews, And Other Greeks)
197. Yes, Their Devil And God Is Suppressed The Egiptian Way Of
The Same Being, And Has The Same Life By Taking Certain Books Out
181
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Of Circulation, Burning Others, For God Is Gutt Then Look At
Forbidding The Adherents To Goat Again, The Same Word.
Practice It, Changing Words, Names,
Times, Places, And Killing Off The
Egiptian Waabaat "Priests" And Question: Why Did They Use
Prophets (Matthew 23:35) Who December For The Christmas
Protested And Resisted. Holiday?

212. Because Pan (Capricorn Of


Question: What About Christ The Zodiac) Is Born Every
Jesus And His Death? December Around That Time And
Jesus Of Two Thousand Years Ago
206. The Killing Of Jesus Christ, Was Considered To Be Capricon,
Krisna, To The Hindu Of The Scape Goat Of God Who Did
Pantheism. Pantheism, Pan= Panic, Not Come Himself, But Sent His
Theism - Theos. Only Begotten Son To Die For The
207. Their God Panic At His God Sin (Sins) (1 John 3:16).
Death. Pan Leader Of The Satyrs, 213. So He Was Azazil, The Scape
Half Man And Half Goat With Goat Goat, Baphomet Or The Ram.
Hair And Horns. 214. Ra In Egipt, A Good Deity
208. Therefore They Called The To Us, And Pan In Europe, An Evil
Death Of Jesus The Death Of The Deity To Them.
God Pan (Same As Faunus). 215. You Fight In Light. You
209. Pan Is The Goat God And Think In Darkness As Naar "Fire",
Caucasians Celebrate December Spark Of Chaos.
25th, As The Birthday Of Jesus 216. The Greek In The New
Christ Or The Crisis They Create Testament For Light Uses Phos Or
For All Other Races Every Year. Foce Which Is Simply Force.
210. They Call It Christmas, The 217. Also It Was Recorded In
Mask Of Christ. Ancient Egipt That From The
Waters Of Nun, Which Will Raise
Up In The End Of Days And
Question: Who Was Behind The Engulf The Planet, Consuming All
Mask? Save Asaru And Atum, Both Living
In The Form Of Reptilians, That Is
211. Judas, The Real Person Homo-Sapien Or Homo-Serpents.
Crucified Who Was Another Azazil, 218. This Is After The Six Great
Scape Goat In Their History. Goat, Balls Of Fire, The Great Meteorites
Now Look At The German Word
182
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Hit Earth, To Bring Things Back To Atum-Re, Meaning In The
How It All Started. Universal Affairs Of My People.
219. Put Out The Evil Light. End 226. I Let All Know I Was Not
His Life Or Their Lives. Evil The Normal Boy, Introducing
Backwards Is Live. Things Never Seen Or Heard In The
220. He Must And Will Be West Before.
Stopped. 227. Such As The Six Pointed Star
221. They Control The Words, And Crescent, The Nose Right, The
You The Thoughts, Theirs Is An Veil, The Name Nubian, The First
Understanding, Yours An Adhaan Called Out Loud, Ansaars,
Overstanding, Theirs Intellect, Yours The Real Mahdi, Nuwaupu.
Outellect. 228. The List Goes On And On.
222. They're Information, You're More Books And Pamphlets Than
Outformation. Any Other Teacher.
223. They Have An Insight, You 229. I Set The Record Straight On
Have An Outsight. This Is Your All Sects In The World. I Translated
Only True Key To Salvation, Save 1. El's Holy Torah 2. El's Holy
Yourself And Kind Before It's Too Zabuwr 3. El's Holy Revelation 4.
Late. El's Holy Qur'an From Their
Original Language For You.
230. I Told You N.O.I.'S Teaching
Question: What Of Our Future? Was Untrue. The 5% Teachings Was
Untrue. The Hebrew Israelite's
224. Just As There Are Forces Teaching Was Untrue.
That Can Foretell The Future, There 231. I Have Stood The Test Of
Are Also Forces That Can Retrace Time From The 60's On Up Past
The Past, And I, Amunnubi 2000.
Raakhptah Has Access To All 232. I Held My Ground.
Forces Necessary To Retrace And 233. Where Are They All Now?
Foretell, And This Fact Made These They Turned Their Back.
Scriptures Possible, Called The 234. Now Do You Know Who
Sacred Records Of Neter A'aferti The Read Savior Of Our Race And
Atum-Re, Or The Black Book. Kind Is. If You Do, Let Me Know
225. One Authorized And You Do.
Appointed By The Forces Of Nature 235. And All Of My Kind Who
Is Given Connection And Access To Are Able To Learn, Overstand, And
Powers Of The Sun, Moon, Stars, Accept Universal Knowledge And
And Powers Of Planet Earth That I Facts As Disclosed By Nine Ether
May Take My Place In The Sun As Will Also Be Given The Same

183
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Connections And Powers For Devil And Become His Slave, Living
Realization And Maintenance Of In His Image And After Likeness.
Liberty, Justice, Equality, Rightness, *Tama-Hus Make All People
And Survival Beyond 2000. Want To Be Like Them.
236. The War Of Showdown *They Make You Turn
Between Agreeable (Right) And Against Your Own Culture.
Disagreeable (Wrong) Is Over. They *They Turn All Other Races
Lost. It's Our Time. Of People Against Each Other.
*They Turn You From Your
Traditional God Or Gods.
Question: Why Was All The Old *They Turn You Against Your
Teachings Out Of Sync? Own Food.
*They Make All Other
237. Right Knowledge Organizes Worship Their Images Of Beauty.
And Unifies The Minds Of *They Move Into Other Lands,
Nuwaupians Individually And Countries And Slowly Take Over,
Collectively. Bringing With Them, Corruption,
238. If Knowledge Is Not To Be Hate, Racism, Seperation, Drugs,
Confusing And Thereby Ineffective Alcohol, Pornography, Their Music,
It Must Be In Sequence. Their Religious Beliefs, Their
239. Knowledge Received Must Be Revealing Attire, Their Vulgarity
In Organized Sequence In Order To And Their Disrespect And
Put The Mind In Order And Unity. Disregard For All Others.
240. That Is Why These Teachings
Are In This Form. Now That I Can 243. Six Is Rule By Sex, When A
Teach What I Came To Originally Male And Female Are Equal In
Give You. Desire.
241. You Are Now Old Enough 244. When You Become 7 Years
To Get It Straight. You Are Age 9. Old, They Give You Religion, And
242. First You Were With The They Declare God's Number Is 7,
Devil. You Were 1, Born In Which Is The Letter G, The Seventh
Ignorance In A World Of Sin, Just Letter Of The Anglo-Saxon Or
Waiting For You, 3, You Inherited English Language, And You Think
Imagination, Learn To Think This Is Your Holy Number. The G
Against Yourself And Kind, Images Is For Goat, That Is Gutt.
Of Other Than Self Was Put Into 245. At 8 Years Old, You Break
Your Heart And Soul, 5, You Away From His Monotheistic
Become Responsible, Then At 6 Beliefs, Christism, Mosesism, Or
Years Old, You Respond To The

184
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Muhammadism, You Become Endeavors In Which Other Races
Cultural In Many Forms. Offer Contest.
246. You Identify With Africa Or 253. The Liberation Forces For
Other Eastern Studies, Meditation, Black People, Moors Are Not, God,
Fasting, You Become Conscious Of Jesus, Lord, Christ, Allah, Rab,
Your Health, Your Body. Jehovah, Yahweh, Nor The Spirit
247. Now You Are Ready For Real Power-Names Of Any Other Race.
Birth, To Be Born In Nuwaupu, 9 254. The Liberation Forces Of
Years Old, A New Birth, They Call Nubians (Woolly-Haired People By
It Being Born Again, The Germans, Nature) In Nine Ether Whose
Germ-Man Say Nine Means No. Scientific Name Will Be Disclosed In
No To Them, Yes To You. Our Science Nuwaupu.
248. Nine Means You Are Ready 255. Nine Ether Is The Original
For Right Knowledge, Right Creative Forces That Made These
Wisdom And Right Overstanding, Booklets Possible. Ether Means In
Nuwaupu. Middle English "Upper Air" From
249. These Are Not Numbers In Latin Aether And Greek Aither.
Years Of Age, But In Degrees Of Ghost Is The Lowest And Ether Is
Attainment. The Highest Anu Or On. The
250. One Purpose Of These Forces Of 9-Ether, Called Black
Booklets Entitled The Sacred Forces Created Life In The Water
Records Of Neter A'aferti Atum- First. Hydrocarbons Were Presernt
Re, Also Called The Black Book, Is In These Waters. Hydrocarbon Is A
To Help Organize And Put The Simple Methane Or Bezene Gas,
Minds Of Black People In Unity Which Only Contains Hydrogen
And Order Enough To Qualify For And Carbon. The Word
Your Own Efficacious Spiritual Hydrocarbon Itself Means Hydro-
Science Called Nuwaupu As Hudor "We Or Water" And
Nuwaupian. Carbon-Carbo "Charcoal Black. So
251. Nuwaupu And The Forces Theses Black Gases Of 9-Ether Are
And Powers Thereof Are Liberty, The Celestial Origin Of All
Equality, Justice, Rightness, And Nuwaupians, Who Are Now
Proper Survival For Nubians Trapped Behind The Nine Ball Or 9
Everywhere. Planets Of This New Solar System.
252. Nuwaupu And The Powers
That Make It Effective And Binding
Are The Equalizers For Nubians In
All Fields Of Necessity And

185
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Is The Relation 263. As The Sons And Daughters
Between Nine Ether And Hair Of God, Ye Are Gods, But All Of
Texture? You Are The Children Of Elyuwn
El, The Most High.
256. It Takes Strength To Ball 264. To Gain Your Nine Ether
Your Fist. Strength Is Force, And A You Must Perfect Your Being,
Ball Fist Creates A Nine. Starting From The Physical Working
257. The Same Thing Happens In Your Way Inward To Turn Yourself
Your Genes. It Takes Strength To Inside Out.
Curl Your Hair. 265.You Become One With All.
258. Babies Now-A-Days Are Born Chemicals Damage The Ethers
With Thin Hair, Black Or White. Permanently.
259. As They Get Stronger
Genetically, As The Chemicals Of
Their Body Begin To Dense And Question: Why Were We Called
Muscles Are Formed, The Hair Also By So Many Names?
Tightens From The Follicle,
Forming Kinky Or Woolly Hair, 266. You're Right We Were Called
Curve Follicle, Referred To As Nine Many Names By Others.
Ether. 267. When I Use The Name
260. For The Mathematical Shape Ethiopian, Nubian, Sudanese,
And Birth Is Supposed To African, I Do Not Mean Only A
Symbolize Completion Of Growth Woolly-Haired Person Born In The
In The Womb At 9 Months, Thus Small Territory In Africa Called
Nine Ether Force Power, Nine Ethiopia Today; I Mean A Woolly-
Ether Beings, Protected Behind The Haired Person Born Anywhere In
Nine Ball, Or Sun People. The Universe, A Nuwaupian Or
261. You Recognize Nine Planets Nuwaupian.
In This Solar System. 268. The Original Muur Or
262. Thus You Are Behind The Moors. The Secret Meaning Of The
Nine Ball While In This Solar Word Ethiopian Is Ether Utopia,
System, And Genetically Weakened, And Ether Is The Creative Power
Some Seventeen Millions, Two That The Sun And Other True Stars
Hundred And Fifty Thousand Years, Produce And Emanate.
When Your Pure Nine Ether 269. The Root Of Nubians Is Nub
Became Weakened As You Move To ("Black"), The Root Of Sudanese Is
A Singular Solar System To A Tri- Sud ("Black"), And The Root Of
Solar System. Africa Is Afriq, ("Divided").

186
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
270. Nine Ether Is The Celestial 277. If A Person Has A Negro,
Origin Of All Ethiopians, For It Is Negative, Or Slave Mentality, These
The Power That Produced The Scrolls Will Help Him Or Her Get
African Pygmy (The Dwarf Rid Of It, Provided The Person Not
Ethiopian), Also Known As The Just Read These Scrolls But Also
Deneg, Deng, Muu, Nem Or Study Them And Accept The Facts,
Hua, The Ancestral Tree Of All Nuwaupu, Right Knowledge Therein
Woolly Haired People. And Herein.
271. At One Time All Africa And 278. Facts Can Be Rejected, But
The Nearby Surrounding Islands They Cannot Be Refuted.
And Territories Were Called Aksum 279. Those Of Us Nuwaupian
Or Kush (Ethiopia), And The Who Shall Survive The Year 2,000
Atlantic Ocean, Named After The Showdown Between Agreeable
Atlantis, Was Called The Ethiopian (Right) And Disagreeable (Wrong),
Sea. Will Accept These Facts And
272. There Is A 75 Foot Tekhenu Adhere To Them.
"Obelisk" 75 In Axum (Aksum) Over 280. Caucasians Did Not And Will
200 Tons Hewn From Solid Granite. Not Teach Others (Beside
The Second One Was Taken To Themselves) Any Real Knowledge
Italy. About Universal Powers And Forces
273. Aksum Is Ethiopia's Oldest Which Would Enable Others To
City. The Aksumites Lived There. Rule Themselves And Rule
274. It's Located Near The Border Caucasians.
Of Eritrea Skirmishing With 281. They Just Say Have Faith And
Ethiopia Today. Our Spook God Will Make All
275. Therefore, Nuwaupian Was A Things New.
Name That Gives Woolly Haired 282. Moreover, Other Races Are
People Their Celestial Origin, Not Going To Give Woolly Haired
Terrestrial Origin, And Ancestral People Real Universal Knowledge
Origin. Either, Because In Real Spiritual
276. Hence, Ethiopians, Nubians, And Universal Knowledge Is Where
Moors, Africans, Were The Best All Real Ruling Power Is Found And
Around Names Of Identification Exercised.
For Mentally Resurrected Woolly 283. For The Time Being, It May
Haired People, Until Nuwaupu By Be Permissable For Caucasians To
Power Of Nine Ether Gave Us Our Teach Occupational Knowledge,
New-Cycle Name For The Next Jobs, And Trades Plus Mathematics,
25,000 Years, Nuwaupian. Works And Subjects That No One
Can Be Deceived With By Others;

187
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
284. However, Not Subjects Like (Egypt) About Lamech And His Son
Truth About Our Story, Truth Jubal Under The Name Harrio-
About Their Religion, The Truth Jubal-Abi, Slain By Hagava,
About The Origins Of Black People, Hakina, And Heremda, A Fake
Etc., Story From A Real Egiptian Story.
291. But Will They Tell The Black
Freemason Or The Eastern Star
Question: Why Do You Say That She Or He Are The Real
That? Egiptians? No They Can't.
292. For In Their Own Masonic
285. Because Caucasians Will Not Quiz Book, You'll Find These
And Sometimes Can Not Give Questions And Answers.
Others The Facs About These Q. From What People Are Most Of
Subjects. Our Masonic Symbols Taken? A.
286. Caucasians Know And Teach From The Egyptians Who Formed
Certain Occupational Jobs And The World's Oldest Civilizations. Q.
Trades According To Present-Day What Country Of Ancient Time
Standards, And Mathematics Is A Was The Cradle Of All The
Universal Science Which Speaks For Mysteries? A. At One Time Egypt
Itself. Was In Possession Of All The
287. Even In The Masonic Lodges Learning And Religions That Was
Of Blacks Called Prince Hall, They To Be Found In The World. It
Never Gave Blacks The True Extended To Other Nations, The
Teachings Of Freemasonry, Influence Of Its Sacred Rites And
Rosecrucians, And Other So Called Esoteric Doctrines. Q. What Is
Mystical Orders, Elks, Odd Fellows, Alchemy? A. A So-Called Ivision
Etc. Of Chemistry, Treating Of The Art
288. All Of Which They Got Their Of Transmutation Or Baser Metals
Doctrine From Egipt. Into Gold. Q. By What Other Name
289. They Will Let Them Wear Was The Science Of Alchemy
The Apron, The Fez, The Symbols, Called? A. The Hermetic Philosophy,
Compass, Squares, Other Symbols, Because It Is Said To Have Been
Even Signs And Grips, And First T Aught By Hermes
Passwords, And Their Colors. Trismegistus In Egypt. Q. Who Was
290. They Let Them Act Out Bible Pythagorus? A. One Of The Most
Rituals Of Hiram Abiff, The Celebrated Of The Greek
Widow's Son And The Roughians, Philosopher. Q. How Many Years
Jubela, Jubelo, And Jubelum, Or Did Pythagorus Have To Wait For
Their Third Degree Called Mizraim Initiation Into The Hidden Mysteries

188
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Of Egypt? A. Twenty Years. Q. Called The Seven Liberal Arts And
What Is The Forty Seventh Problem Sciences.
Of Euclid? A. In Any Right Angle, 296. They Use The Terms
Triangle, The Square, Which Is Humility, Faith And Sincerity. The
Described Upon The Side Subtending Square Symbolizes Innocence.
The Right Angle, Is Equal To The
Squares Described Upon The Sides
Which Contain The Right Angle. Q. Question: What Does The
To Whom Were The Greeks In Debt Compass Symbolize?
For Their Inspiration In
Architecture? A. From The Great 297. The Compass Symbolize Self
Builders Of Egypt. Control, And The Apron Morality.
298. They Have What They Call
293. So They Admit That All Of The Three Great Lights And They
Their Greek Philosophers, All Of Identify That As: 1. The Compass, 2.
Theirs Schools Of Learning, Were The Square And 3. The Holy Bible.
Stolen, Borrowed Or Given By The 299. However, The Real Three
Egiptians. Lights Are In Fact 9. The First Light
294. And All Of Your Great Black = The Beginning Light, The Second
Leaders Were Freemasons, Marcus Light = The Greater Light, And The
Garvey (Marcus Mosiah Garvey), Third Light = The Lesser Light.
Haile Selassie (Lij Tafari 300. The Three Greater Lights Are
Makonnen), Noble Drew Ali 1. Atum-Re, 2. Atun-Re, And 3.
(Timothy Drew), Master Farrad Amun-Re. The Three Lesser Lights
Muhammad (Wallace Dodd Ford), Are Ether, Gas And Fire, And The
And The Honorable Elijah Three Permanent Lights Are Re,
Muhammad (Robert Poole). Septet, And Sahu.

Question: Are These The Same


Question: What Can Caucasians Lights As Spoken Of In The
Teach Anyone About Morals Bible And Qur'an?
And The Best Way Of Life.
No. The Bible And Qur'an In
295. Nothing, They Lack All These Themselves Are Books Of Lies,
Things. What They Stress In Crimes, Rapes, Bloodshed,
Freemasonry Is That They Study Disfiguring, Murder, Deception And
Seven Principles. 1. Grammar, 2. Every Other Form Of Evil Books
Rhetoric, 3. Logic, 4. Arithmetic, 5. Os A Vengeful, Jealous God, A
Geometry, 6. Music, 7. Astronomy,

189
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Destroyer, A Creator Of Evil And 306. Their Only Hope Is In An
Envy. Unverified, Unproven Belief In Life
301. There Is No Good In The After Death, Of Which No One Has
Bible Or Qur'an. Even The Returned On Record To Confirm
Statement "Salvation" Is A Trick, As For The Thousands Of Years That
Solvent, From The Latin Solvens They Believed And Had Blind Faith
"To Loosen", To Be Diluted Or In Such Ridiculousness.
Merged In Something, As Opposed
To The Latin Word Salvatio "To
Save". Question: So Why Do They
302. And That Would Be Soaked Teach Salvation?
And Drenched In The Blood Of
Christ Or The Martyrs Of Islam, 307. If They Can Convince The
Which Are Untrue Stories Blackman And Woman To Believe
(Hebrews 5:7), Which Freemasons That Their Salvation Comes After
Know Is Untrue And Is Based On Death, They Can Justify All Of The
God Sending His Son To Earth To Abuses That They Inflict Upon You
Do A Job That He Should Have While They Live Throughout Their
Come And Done Himself, And His Lives, Forcing Them To Turn The
Son Being Unwilling To Die For Other Cheek (Matthew 5:39). They
The Sins Of The World, But Is Teach You This In The New
Forced Into A Torcherous Situation Testament.
For The Salvation Of The Evil
World.
303. Why Would An All Powerful Question: Isn't That Changing
God Have To Save You? Isn't He In The Words Of God?
Control Of All Things? Apparently
Not. 308. If The Words Of God Were
304. Yet, The World And The Unchangeable Why Is It Necessary
Christians And Muslims Continue To Have An "Old" And Then A
To Suffer And Their Devil Seems "New" Testament, A New
To Be In Control Of Their Lives. Testimony. Wouldn't All Of His
305. They Are Not Saved, Their Testimonies Be The Same And
Churches And Mosques Are Burned. Unchangeable?
They Die From The Same Illnesses,
Sicknessess, Diseases, Accidents,
Wars, As Those Who Are Not Question: What Was The
Christians Or Muslims. Purpose For The Deception?

190
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
309. These Were Methods To Immoral, Destructive And Unhonest
Keep Black People Under The Spell The World Has Ever Known.
Of Ignorace, While They Dominate. 314. What Can They Teach When
Keep You Hoping For A Better Life They Are Those Who Destroyed
After Death, While They Have It Real Knowledge, Burnt The Great
Right Here, Right Now, While They Libraries Of Alexandria In Egipt,
Live. They Hide And Tried To Destroyed
Morals, And The Best And Most
Healthy Way Of Life Created By
Question: So The Freemasons The Alchemist Of Egipt By
Hold The Secrets? Suppressing And Murdering Darker
Peoples, Lying To Divide Thers And
310. No, The Freemasons Create Ignorance, Also Stealing
Contribute To The Misinformation Other Peoples' Lands, Culture, And
Through Their Signs And Symbols Natural Resources, That Is, Other
And Millions Of Negroids Have Peoples' Heritages.
Enlisted Themselves, Their Very
Souls, Into The Prince Hall Lodge,
When They Should Be In The King Question: Will They Ever Give
Hall, For Prince Is Subject To A The Truth?
King.
315. Caucasians Never Did And
Never Will Give Others True
Question: And This To Keep The Spiritual And Universal Knowledge,
Negroids Suppressed? Because Much Of It They Do Not
Know Themselves, And What They
311. Yes. They Intend To Keep Do Know They Keep It Among
The Negroid Freemasons Under Themselves In Secret Societies Any
Their Rule Forever. More, So That They May Continue
312. These Are All Symbolic Titles, To Rule The Ignorant And
Words And Emblems That Cover Impoverished. They Created The
Their True Mystery That They Are Curriculums Taught To Your
Indeed The Secreters Of The Secrets Children.
Of Ancient Egipt.
313. The Caucasian Freemason,
With Their White Brotherhood And Question: What Type Of
White Magic And Big White Lies, Knowledge Do We Need?
And White Washed Religions And
Culture, Their Society Is The Most
191
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
316. Occupational, Professional, Question: So What Are Negroids
And Technical Knowledge You Lacking Mentally?
Need And Should Have, But You
Nuwaupians Need More Than That 319. Negro Mentality Is Void Of
In Order To Be Free Again And Its Own True Spiritual Science, And
Have Ruling Power Over Self And The Powers Which Maintain A
Kind. Race's Spiritual Science Are Those
That Create A Race's Culture, Make
Its History, And Direct Its Way Of
Question: Are Those The Life.
Solution? 320. Therefore, If A Race Does
317. Occupational, Vocational, Not Have Its Own True Spiritual
Professional, And Technical Science, It S Void Of What Is
Knowledges Are Not Sufficient To Necessary To Make It Free And
Eliminate Negro, Negative, And Equal.
Slave Mentality. The Very Word
Negro Is Necro Or Nekro "Dead"
Which Is Greek For Corspe And Question: What About
Negra Omega Is "Bl ack Death" Nuwaupu?
This Seate Of Mental Death Has
Befallen The Minds Of Many 321. In The Case Of Nuwaupians,
Nuwaupians, Having Forgotten Nuwaupu Is His And Her Spiritual
Their Origin As A Race. And Universal Science And Nature
318. Negro Negative Mentality Is Our Protector If We Resepct It.
(Negative Mind) Is One Which Is 322. Universal Knowledge Informs
Void Of Real Universal Knowledge Us About The Governing Codes
Of Self And Kind, Knowledge And Cycles Of All Existences And
About Time And Origin Of Living Beings, And Kinds Of Spirit
Universes, Stars, Planets, Suns; Forces And The Ones That Are For
Origin Of Oceans, Mountains, Or Against Us.
Vegetation; The Past And The 323. Real Universal Knowledge
Origin Of All Other Races, Cultures, Must Answer The Knowledge
And What Each Race Is Supposed Questions: When, Where, What,
To Represent And Do While They Who, How, Why, And The Nature
Have Time, Because In Time All Of Things, That Is, Whom A Thing
Other Races Will Return To The Is For Or Against.
Supreme Race, Nubuns.

192
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Is There Any Qualified With The Universal Forces, And
Leader That Can Help Us? They Will Help And Protect You.

324. I Amunnubi Raakhptah,


The Writer Of Booklets Entitled Question: What About Belief
The Sacred Records Of Neter And Trust In God?
A'aferti Atum-Re, Your Only True
Savior, Am Qualified By The Forces 329. When The Caucasian Meets
Of Nature To Receive And Disclose Someone Who Does Not Believe In
Universal Knowledge, Unveil The Their God, That Is, Ghost, He Calls
Past, Emphasize The Present, And That Person An Atheist, "Against
Blueprint The Future. God", Because There Are Two
325. What I Write Is Meant To Kinds Of Spirit (Ghost And Ether),
Destroy The Barriers Between Therefore, If A Person Is Not Of
Woolly-Haired People And Their Ghost, That Is A Dead God, He Or
Spiritual Science And Heritage In She Must Be Of Ether, A Living
General. God, Hence, He Or She Is Called
326. Universal Forces Can Not Atheist By Caucasians. Ghost, G-
Beneficialy And Effectively Work Host, Or Co-Host Hast, Host.
For You And With You As Long As Angelic Beings, Eloheem, A Plural
So Many Minds Among You Are So For Gods From Single Eloah
Negative, Because Negative Mind "Source".
Attracts Negative Forces And Those 330. A Dead God That Helps
Negative Forces Destroy You And Caucasians Enslave Your People
Cause You To Destroy Yourselves Who Is The Very Spirit Behind
By Division. White Racism, Their White
327. All The So-Called Black Brotherhood With Their White
Groups One By One Are Falling To Magive. Turn Away From Their
The Wayside. We Alone Still Stand White Ghost God.
Strong And Lead The Struggle For 331. Atheist And Etherist Have
The Liberation Of Our People. The Same Original Or Etymological
Meaning, Not God Or Not Of God,
Because, If One Was Originally
Question: What Do We Need? Created By Ether Instead Of Ghost,
That Person By Nature Is Not God
328. You Need Positive Mentality And Not Of Their God, Not A
To Offset The Negative, Then You Believer.
Will Have The Brain Power 332. A Person Originally Created
Necessary To Identify Yourselves By Ether Can And Most Likely Will

193
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Become Of God And Created By 339. However Sick Hindu Indians,
Their Own Black God Mentally And The Original Ab-Originals, Asiatic,
Physically, The Black Mind During Black People.
The End Of The Cycle Of Their 340. That's Why They Have The
God (The Moon Cycle)Of 17, Same Hair And Nose And Lips.
250,000 Years. This Is A Complete 341. Moreover, Death Is An
Moon Cycle And An In Complete Enemy Of Life Just As The Whites
Sun And Moon Cycles Take Place Is An Enemy Of The Blacks.
Within It Each Of 6,000 Years.
333. They Say Herein Lies The
Truth. The Fact Is We Don't Need Question: What's The Difference
Them Or Their Weak Ghost God. Between African Blacks And
334. The Beginning Letter; Of Asiatic Blacks?
Ether Was A Instead Of E In
Ancient Times. 342. First And Far Most, Neither
Are Really Black As The State,
Supreme Balancement, Because
Question: How Do We Black Is Not A Color.
Distinguish What Is For 343. You Have The Indians Of
Nuwaupians, And What Is East India, Some Referred To As
Against Nuwaupians? Hindus, Others Bangladeshians,
Others Balians And Pakistinians, All
335. I, Amunnubi Raakhptah Of The Same Descent. They Are
Am Able To Distinguish Between The Only True Aryans. The Word Is
That Which Is For Nuwaupians And Sanskrit And Means Arya "Noble".
That Which Is Against Him And The White Race Claim To Be Aryans
Her. Because They Are The Albino
336. Ghost (God), The Spirit Of Indian, Called Indu-Europeans. The
Caucasians, Represents Death For Hindus Came From Nirvana. Their
Nuwaupians And Is Thereby Against God Was Indra, Also Called
Nuwaupians. Mahendra, Sakra, Satakratu,
337. Nine Ether, Of Nuwaupians, Pakasasana And Puramdara. Indra
Represents Life, And Of Course Life Was The King Of Their Gods.
And Death Are Opposites Just As
Blacks And Whites Are Opposites.
338. Even The Whites Are Merely Question: But What Makes
Sick Blacks. But Not Sick Negroids. Them Different?

194
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
344. As You Notice The Main Noses And Freckles. They Hate
Difference Between The Neolithic Eachother.
Negroid Is The Nine Ether Or
Woolly, Nappy Kinky, That Is
Kingly Hair Texture. Question: Which Are These
345. You Will Find That Your East Scrolls For?
Indian, Not Only Has The Same
Hair Texture, But Also Has The 349. The Purpose Of Anything
Same Bone Structure As His Albino And Everything Written In These
Counterpart The Caucasian. Therein Scrolls Is To Help Destroy Negro,
Is The Difference. Negative, And Slave Mentality, So
346. The African As They Are That Woolly Haired People
Called, Negroid Is Of Two Stock. Everywhere May Have And Exercise
The Original Muu Of Mu, Called Free Mind And Equal Mind And
Deneg, With Sharp Features, Short Thereby Enjoy Freedom And
Stature, Dark Olive Toned Skin. The Equality Because, If A Person Has
Hue Leaning Towards Red. Free Mind, They Will Do Free
347. And Your Deng, Tall, Woolly Things And, If A Person Has Equal
Haired, Also With Dark Olive Mind, They Will Do Equal Things.
Toned Skin. The Hue Leaning You Must Give Him Back All Of
Towards Green. His Belief And Turn To Self And
Kind.

Question: What About The


Caucasian, I Notice They Also Question: Give Back What
Have Different Features? Exactly?

348. You Are Absolutely Correct 350. His Stuff. Give Back Roman,
And The Two Features Are Those Greek Christism, Phonenician,
Of The Blonde Haired Blue Eyed, Canaanite, Mosesism, Indian,
From The Caucasus Mountains, Turkish, Muhammadism.
Bred And Grafted In The Aegean 351. Give Back His And Her
Seas, They Have Long Faces, Long Image Of Beauty.
Features As Opposed To The Red 352. Learn To Work For Self And
Haired, Green Eyed Gaels, Called Kind. Learn To Buy From Self And
Celts (Irish/Scottish), Who Were Kind. Learn To Do For Self And
Bred And Grafted In The Yucatan, Kind.
They Have Round Faces, Broad

195
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: And How Do We Go Question: What About The
About Doing That? Forces Of Good?

353. These Scrolls Are Designed 357. The Spiritual Forces Of Good
To Open The Way For Just That, Are On Our Side, Just Call Them.
And A Way To A Spiritual And 358. A Change In Mental Status By
Mental Revolution By Right Right Knowledge, Wisdom, And
Knowledge, Right Wisdom And The The Overstanding Brings Change In
Right Overstanding, Because There Spiritual Status, Because Right
Can Be No Change In Racial Status Knowledge Destroys Ignorance In
For Black People, Be They African The Mind, Then The Spirit Forces
Or Asiatic, As A Whole Without Of Ignorance That Maintain
First Having Change In Mental Ignorance Have Nothing To Subsist
Powers And Spiritual Forces. On And They Die, Dissipate, Or
354. The Hate Is Between The Become Sealed In The Earth, Hades,
White Man And The Black Man, Their Form Of Hell.
Not You, The God Man. 359. However, When The Mind
Receives Right Knowledge And
Accepts Its, The Mind Defends
Question: How Do You Change Itself By Fighting Against The
The Old System? Forces Of Ignorance (Its Enemy).

355. The Same Old Spirit Forces


And The Same Old Minds Will Question: What Happens When
Perpetuate The Same Old System. You Defeat Your Weaker Side?
356. Although Ways And Means
Of Maintaining The Old System May 360. When The Right Side Of The
Change, It Will Be The Same Old Mind Defeats The Weaker Side, The
System Still As Long As The Same Person Becomes Free And Equal
Old Minds And The Same Old And Male And Female, As Sufficient
Spirits Prevail With Their White Effort Is Made.
Magic, Pale Evil Nature, Because 361. He Becomes Free Of The
The Same Old System Is The Nature Devil's Rule, Regains His Manhood.
Of Them. Their Time Is Up. It's 362. His Godlihood Comes Next.
Black Magic's Time. It's God Time. He No Longer Has To Suppress The
Female Of His Own Race To Feel
He Rules.
363. The Results Of Cruel
Suppression Of The Mind And The
196
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Accumulation Of Gross Ignorance Percentages, And To Be One, It Has
Are The State Of Miserable To Have A Purpose That Is
Condition Where The Slave And Becoming Two.
Slavemaster Or Captive And Captor 369. So In Fact, You Can't Have A
Pray To The Same God Of White One Without A Percent And Two.
Magic, Which Lead Our People To
Drink And Take Drugs, And
Brought Them To A Low State And Question: How Many God Forces
Feeling About Self. Are There?
364. Since The Slavemaster Is An
Enemy Of The Slave, If The Slave 370. There Are Many God Forces
Prays To The Same God Of White But Only One Supreme Being
Magic, White Miracle As The Amunnubi Raakhptah Or Atum-
Master, He Is Praying To The God Re For This New Cycle In Physical
That Enable The Slavemaster To Form, A Human Being Who Is
Enslave The Captive, And That God Supreme In Knowing, Or Almighty,
Is The Enemy Of The Slave Or All Knowing Deity In Flesh, And
Captive Just As The Slavemaster. That Being Is Grown By Nature
Itself, Who Has Innumerable
Powers And Parts. The One
Question: Can You Explain That Supreme Being.
Further? 371. Then There Is The Source,
Nature, The All Moving, Creating,
365. Yes. The One God Doctrine And Working Within All.
That The Slave Master Indoctrinated 372. Every Person, Every Place,
The Slave With Is False And A Trick And Everything Is In The All, The
To Keep The Slave From Source, Finite And Infinite, Visible
Recognizing Any Other Spiritual And Invisible In The All.
Power But That Of The Slavemaster.
366. You Can't Have A One
Without Its Percentage 99 Percent Question: What Are The Powers
Of 1, The Whole. Of Nuwaupu?
367. However It Also Needs 1
Percent Of 2 In Order To Seal It, 373. The Powers And Forces Of
Amount Or Worth. Nuwaupu Are Liberation For
368. So You Can't Have A One Woolly Haired People Everywhere.
God Without A "Of" And A 374. Liberation For Nuwaupians Is
"Toward". As The Total Number Mental And Physical Separation
One Must Total Up To 1 From From Adverse Forces, And Their
197
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Form Of Salvation In Death, Yet 379. Right Knowledge, Wisdom,
They Say You Get Life Eternal. And Overstanding Are Nuwaupu,
And Nuwaupu Is The Spiritual
Science Of All Woolly Haired
Question: What About Spiritual People Throughout The Universes.
Life? 380. These Scrolls Are Not The
Science Nuwaupu Itself, But The
375. When You Die Think Life Diligent Reading And Diligent Study
Eternal After You Die, You're Dead, And Profound Overstanding Of
The End Of Life. These Scrolls Will Open The Mind,
376. Nuwaupian's Forces Of Tear Down Barriers, And Qualify
Nature Are Keeping Adverse Forces The Mind For The Universal Science
Away From Woolly Haired People Called Nuwaupu In The Ancient
After They Have Been Liberated. Egiptian Order.
377. Therefore, Breaking The Spell
Only Comes After Liberation And Is
The Maintenance And Perpetuation Scroll Eleven
Of Liberty, Justice, Equality, And
The Right Way Of Life, Nuwaupu. The Origin Of The Nubuns
(19 X 39= 741 )

Question: What Is The Purpose


Of This Scroll? Question: Where Did The
Nubuns Come From?
378. This Scroll Helps To Open
The Prison Gate That Has The The Nuwbuns (Nubuns) Come
Minds Of Nuwaupians Locked In, From Nuwba (Nuba), A Country
And As The Gate Of Mental In Southern Ta-Nehisi, Zeti
Confinement Opens, Ignorance Will "Sudan," A Word Which Means
Flee And Right Knowledge, "Two Blacks", Which Included
Wisdom, And Overstanding Will Itiopia, Ethiopia Originally Called
Become The Keeper Of The Aksum (Axum), Uganda, A Word
Nuwaupian Minds. Which Means "" And Puanit
"Kenya" , A Word Which Means "
Question: What Is Right 2. They Are The Original Nine
Knowledge, Right Wisdom, And Ether Woolly Haired Beings, Or
Right Overstanding? Dreadman Descendants Of The
Anunnaqi Of The Two Seeds, The

198
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Watusi "Giant" And Deneg "Little Question: What Was The
People" . Original Name Of Nubia?
3. In The Nuwbun's Language , 9. When You Look Up The
Nuba Is Said To Mea N "Gold" , Language Of Nuba , Or Nubia,
This Is In Reference To The Gold Which Was Called Ta-Seti, You
That Was Put Under Their Feet In Will See That It Takes You Back To
Africa . A Kind Of The Wawat "Cushite"
4. This Gold Can Be Traced Also Dialect, Called Aramic, Syriac,
In Their Bible Genesis 2:12 , Where Amharic, Gheez, Which Also
It Says In That "And The "Gold" In Includes The Hamites, The
That Land Was Good." Phutites, And The Mizraimites,
5. The Word Being Used Is Descendants Of Noah , (Who Is
Aramic, Hebrew Zahab (Zaw- Khufu In Egipt) And His Sons,
Hawb) Not Nub . According To Their Bible And
6. There Are Many Different Koran.
Words For Gold In The Dialects Of
Utnafishtim's "Noah's" Seed .
7. They Are Baw-Tsar , Ka- Question: Do These Scripts Come
Ruwtz , Ka-Tham , Sa-Guwr , From Egipt?
Fawz And Za-Hub . As You Can
See The Word Nub Is Not One Of 10. Yes. It's No Coincidence That
Them. The White Man Kill The Scripts Of These Ancient
Anything And Anybody For Gold. Phoenician Dialects Use The Same
8. The Word Nub Or Nuwb Is Script As The Ancient Egiptian
The Root Word Of Nabi, Nubians Heretic And Demotic, Being They
, Or Nuwaupians , It Means "Color Originated In Egipt And Moved
Inclining To Black", In Reference To Eastward, Pre-Dynastic Period.
The Nubuns The Kinky, Woolly 11. That Is Before The 46 Dynastic
Haired People, The Watusi "Deng," Rulers Who Were In Influenced
Giants In The Earth (Genesis 6:4), From The Sumerians, Who Were
Whose Head Dress Was Their Hair Taught By The Anunnaqi, Who
Style, And It Became The Egiptian Brought The Headdress, The
Khepresh, And The Tar "Deneg", Hedjet To Egipt, The Same As
Whose Head Dress Was The Worn By Baal, The Canaanite Lord,
Namuz Of The Akir, "Lion". Who Was Narmir.

199
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Where Did The Ithiops Or Ethiopia And Zeti
Nubuns Come From? Original Name Of Ta-Nehisi Today
Sudan , And Mitsrayim Took Over
12. The Original Nubuns Tama-Re Also Ta-Merry Called By
Migrated From The Persian Gulf The Hyksos Mezreer Or Mizraim ,
Up Into Sumer And Set Up Seven Which Was Named After Menes,
Kingdoms , 1) Tilmun , 2) Salaam , Adapa, Enoch Or Baal, And Even
3) Mu , 4) Lumeria 5) Qodesh 6) Adonia. Menes, Or Manes
Nippur 7) Ashkolan (Alkebu- (Demigods) Nebti.
Lan).
13. Some Stayed, While Others Question: Did He Have Any
Migrated West To Egipt And Set Other Names?
Up Seven More Kingdoms , 1)
Sippar , 2) Kish , 3) Kutha , 4) 16. His Throne Name Was Men
Shuruppak , 5) Uruk , 6) Isin And Called Mazar In Egiptian
7) Eridu . Hieroglyphs, But The Greeks Called
That Land Egypt Aegypticus, After
The Son Of Belus King Of
Question: Is Kish The Same As Phoenicia, Naming It After The
Kush Or Cush Of Bible Genesis Burnt Faces Of The Shepherd
10:6? Kings, Those Canaanites, From As
Far As Turkey Through Palestine,
14. Yes And You Also Find Cush Who Ruled Tama-Re For 430
In The Bible Long Before The Cush Years, And Tried To Destroy All
Of Noah's Time (Genesis 2:13). Traces Of The Original People Of
Ta-Seti, "Kish" Became Kush In That Best Part Of The Planet Earth
The Bible (Genesis 2:13, 10:26) . In Those Days.
17. The Heka Khasut "Hyksos'"
Skin Became Bruised By The Ultra
Question: So These Biblical Violet Rays Of The Tama-Rean Sun,
Stories Come From Egiptian? Thus The Term Aegyptos, "Burnt
Faces". And The Arabs Call It Mizr.
15. Yes. After Utnafishtim Of 18. This Term Never Applied To
Your Gilgamesh Epics, Who Is The Original Inhibitors Of That
Noah (Khufu) Of Your Bible's Land, Nor Did Kemet, A Derivative
Time Phut Took Over The Land From The Ancient Egiptian
Originally Called Tehnu Now Kammau Kam, Kami, In Hebrew
Called Libya, Called Ta-Seti, Cush It Became Kham, Borrowed In The
Took Over Aksum, Now Called
200
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Bible To End Up As Ham, "Burnt Or Question: Why Did The Nubuns,
Black And Hot". From Nuba Travel To America?
19. They Also Migrated Over Here
To America And Settled In What 24. These Nubuns , Or Nubas
Was Then Known As The "Land Walked Or Traveled Westward
Of The Frogs," Named After The From Their Own Land In Search Of
Original Khemenu "Ogdoads", Who Other Land And Resources.
Moved Between The Two Pillars Of 25. After Intentional Seed Mixing
Herakles "Hercules" Son Of Zeus And Gene Tampering By Integration
And Hera, And Set Up The Ancient Intentionally Done By The Albino
City Atlantis On This New Found Race And Their Sub-Races Of 6
Land, And They Became Known As And 7 Ether Beings We Find The
The Olmecs . Ancient Nubuns Today All Over
The World As Nubians.
26. Many Have Lost Their Pure
Question: Who Are The Olmecs Kingly Crown And Their Hair
And Where Did They Come Texture Ranges From 7, 8, And 9
From? Ether In An Imperfect, Unpure
Form Today.
20. The Olmecs Are The
Original Woolly Haired, Dark-Olive
Toned People, Who Originally Came Question: Will There Be A
From Nuwba Of South And Change In Genes?
Central Africa.
21. They Walked Over To 27. Yes. There Will Be A Change
America Before The Continental And Reverse In The Genes, Past
Drift. The Year 2000 When The God Seed
22. The Name Olmec Was Given Shall Raise Again.
To Them By Their Childre N, The 28. The Nubuns Came Over To
Aztecs, Many Years After They A Place That Was Once Called The
Migrated To America. Land Of Frogs, And They Called
23. The Word Olmec Me Ans The Place In Their Cushite Languag
"People Of The Rubber Land." E Utla , Which Means "To Go
However, Their Original Name Was Somewhere For Vacation."
Nubuns , From The Word Nuwb 29. Utla Became Atlaan ,
(Nub) . Making It Dual, And It Signified
North America And Beneath That
Was South America, And Plato The

201
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Greek Historian Added The "Tis " Ancient Egipt, Was The Master Of
And You Get Atlantis . The City Of Eight (Khemenu).
According To Their Traditional
History, Ancestors Of The Dogon
Question: Where Did They Come Migrated To The Area, Which They
From? Now Inhabit Around The 10th
Century. The Dogon, Like Ancient
30. They Were The Dogon Of Egiptians, Practiced Identifying With
Mali, Africa. They Traveled A Long Ancestral Spirits. They Have
Distance. The Word Dogon Is From Similarities Such As: The Significant
Du-Gau, Which Means "High Of The Serpent. The Jackal Neter
Mountain". Du-Gau-N Means The Of The Dogon Pantheon Is The
People Of The High Mountains. The Guardian Of The Pond Where The
Dogon Live And Are Buried In The Dead Are Supposed To Be Cleansed.
High Mountains Of Present-Day Anubu Was Assigned For The 12th
Mali. The Dogon Culture Is And 13th Nomes Of Upper Egipt,
Dominated By The Number Eight. Which Are On Both Sides Of The
They Originated From The Region Nile At Asyut. Signs Of The Zodiac
Of Khemenu "Hermopolis", Which In Dogon Cosmogony Are Based
Means "Eight" (The Ogdoad). The On The Star Septet "Sirius", As Was
Dogon's Open-Sided Buildings With The Case In The Egiptian Calendar,
Eight Wooden Posts Supporting A Which Was Based On The Heliacal
Rood Of Dried Millet Stalks, Are Rising Of That Star.
Reminiscent Of Ancient Egiptian
Buildings. The Pillars Are Frequently
Carved Into Figures Representing Question: How Did The Country
The Eight Dogon Ancestors (Four Became Known As Mali, When It
Male And Four Female, Was Originally Ancient
Representing The Primordial State Egiptian?
Of The Universe). This Same Exact
Symbolism Is Found In Ancient The Term Mali Means "Where The
Egipt, Where Four Couples Are Ruler Lives", Was Applied To The
Engendered By The Original Nature New Mandingo State Created By
Of The Universe, Prior To Breaking Sundiata's Keita Clan.
Up. These Pairs In Ancient Egipt
Were Called The Khemenu
"Ogdoad". The Number Eight Is Also Question: Were They
The Basis Of The Dogon's Descendants Of The Nubuns?
Numerical System. Tehuti, In

202
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
31. Yes. The Cushites, Hamites, 35. They Came Over Here Under
Mizraimites, Shemites, Phutites Are Hsu Shen , Of The Shang
Descendants Of The Nubuns. Dynasty, Who Were Mixed , To The
32. Many Of These Tribes Shores Of America During An
Migrated As Recently As Just After Exploration .
The So Called Flood Of Noah, Or 36. In 459 A.D., These
Famine Of Khufu, Called By Some Mongoloid Chinese Came Into
The Great Earthquake. California And Bumped Into The
Negroid Olmecs , And They Lived
And Mixed Amongst Each Other,
Question: What Did They And Produced What Became
Nubuns Do When They Came To Known As Native Americans.
America? 37. The Olmecians Gave Them
The Lower Land, South America To
33. They Set Up Their Own Great The Yucatan, Which Became
Empires When They Came To Known As Amexem , Which Came
Amexem America, And Some From The Word Hexian, Which Is
Stayed In The East. The Phutites Just Another Name For Hsu Shen
Settled In Libya, The Mizraimites (Ho Shen) ,
Settled In Egypt, The Cushites
Settled In Ethiopia And The
Hamites, Sudan . Question: Where Did The Name
Mexico Come From?

Question: So Where Did The 38. The Name Mexico Comes


Oriental Featured, Native From The Word Amexem, And
Americans Come From? The Word Texas Comes From The
Word Mexico .
34. Now In The 4th Century 39. The Northern Region Of The
Came Some Chinese, Descendants Olmecs Became Atlan .
Of The Teros, A Tribe Of Beings 40. All Of Their Children Were
From The Caverns In The Earth, Allowed To Mix In With The
Who Were Looking For More Land. Olmecs.
41. The First Offspring Was The
Hopis , Who Were Giving A Rule
Question: Did They Have A Not To Mix Their Seed.
Leader Amongst Them?

203
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: So This Is Where The Offensive. Of Or Rel ating To
Abraham Story Comes From? Down Syndrome. --
Mon·Go·Li·An N. 1. A Native
42. It's Much Like The One Or Inhabitant Of Mongolia. 2. A
Abraham, Whose Wife And Sister Member Of The Mongol People.
By The Same Father Was Sarah,
Had In Genesis 28:1, 28:6,
Where He Was Commanded Not To Question: Did Any Breed Come
Mix His Seed With The Canaanites, Out Of These East Indians?
Because The Olmecs Knew That
The Hopi's Genes Were Regressive. 45. Yes. The East Indians Bred
With These Eskimos And Bred
Tribes Like The Seminole Of Today
Question: What About The Called American Indians .
Hindu Looking People? 46. The Nez Perce "Nose Piercing"
Tribe Heard Of The Secrets From
43. The Hindus, East Indians, The The Ancient Ashuric Octrine,
Asiatic Black People, Heard About Which Came To Atlantis From
These People, And They Came Ganawa "Egipt" And They Started
Across The Bering Strait And Mixed Wearing The Nose Ring, And Were
In Wit H Native Americans That Labeled Nez Perce , Meaning "Nose
Moved North, Called The Eskimos Piercing".
Who Are Mongolians Or
Mongoloid.
Question: Where Did The Other
Tribes Come From?
Question: What Is The Meaning
Of The Word Mongoloid? 47. Various Tribes Broke Away
And Started Producing On Their
44. The Word Mongoloid Is A Own, Creating The Mayans And
Compound Of The Greek Word The Aztecs.
Mongoland , Meaning "Shape Or
Form." According To The
American Heritage Dictionary The Question: You Mentioned The
Word Mongolian Means : Name Apep Previously, Can You
Mon·Go·Li·An Adj. 1. Of Or Tell Us Who He Or She Is?
Relating To Mongolia, The 48. Apep, Poppi Or Apophis
Mongols, Or Their Language Or Which Means "Giant Serpent" Was
Culture. 2. Also Mongolian. The Adversary Of Re.
204
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
49. Apap As Naar "Fire" Was Also Ramesses X
A Ra Or From Nuwr "Light", Or As Ramesses Xi
The Torah, "Bible" And Qur'an
"Koran" Puts It, He Was An Angel
Of Light Who Became The Question: When The The Rule Of
Guardian Of Fire, Lucipher. Apohis Be Over?

51. Now, That Time Has Come,


Question: Can This Apophis Be The 6,000 Year Rule Of Apophis Is
Overthrown? Over, The One Who Spat Out Of
Our Gene With A Curse, The
50. Yes, Urial, The Great Waab Destroyed One, The Snake
"Priest" Will Again Be Prepared By Ouroboros With Its Tail In Its
Atum-Re As Tehuti As In Old Mouth.
Warit "Karnak" To Read From The
Book Of Overthrowing Apophis To Question: Is This The Same
Break His Spell And Reveal His Serpent Of The Bible And
Hidden Names To Put Out His Qur'an?
Amber Fire, A Text Of The Time
Of The Rameses (Ra-Moses) 52. Yes, He Is Nakhas, The
Dynasty, 19th Of The 46 Dynasty, Serpent Of Your Bible (Genesis
Starting With: 3:1) Shaytan Of Your Qur'an
(Qur'an 2:36) Who Were Already
Ramesses I There Before The Creator Of Your
Seti I Adam And Eve, Well He Let Go Of
Rameses Ii His Tail And His Time Is Up.
Merneptah 53. The Great Sun Re Is Shining
Amenmesses Bright Out Of The Darkness Of
Seti Ii Our Past. Bring Us The Key To
Siptah Break The Evil Spell.
Queen Twosret 54. You Will Open Up To New
Setnakhte Words That Will Open Your Closed
Ramesses Iii Centers, Which Are Reconstructed
Ramesses Iv Tones That Will Impart A Different
Ramesses V Meaning And Interpretation For
Ramesses Vi You, As Opposed To The Opposer,
Ramesses Vii Apophis.
Ramesses Viii 55. Only One Race On This Planet
Ramesses Ix Is Destructive To All Others By
205
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Nature, Having Mixed Their Cursed Question By Modern Historians
Seed With Every Other Race Some Say Hyk Pronounced Hike
Infecting Them With The Demon Means "King" And Others Say Hyk
Seed. Pronounced Hick Means "Captive".
56. Only One, The Cursed Seed Of All Agree On Sos Meaning
Canaanites, (Bible, Genesis 10:16- "Shepherds", As The Hebrew Could
18) That Is The Sidonites, Not Be Kings In Egipt. There Is No
Hittites, Jebusites , Amorites, Egiptian Word For King. There Is
Girgashites, Hivites, Arkites, Ura "Ruler", Not Hyk And Being
Sinites, Arvadite, Zemarites, They Were In Bondage Or
Hamathite , The Brotherhood Of Servitude. The True Meaning Is
Light, Fire And Chaos, The Captive Shepherds.
Illuminated Ones, Illuminati, 59. So The Canaanites Of Greek
Coming Out Of The Moutains Of Mixture Could Not Enter Egipt.
Boghazkoy Along The Aegean Sea, 60. History Calls These Evil
Out Of The Caves And Invaders The Hyksos.
Underground Caverns Of Turkey As
Hittites, A Tribe Of Canaanites.
Their Oldest City Above Ground Question: Do They Have Other
Was At Catal Huyuk. Names?

61. Yes. They Are Also Called


Question: So This Is Where All Behaymaw, Beast Of The Field,
Of The Wars On Earth Land Of Canaan Pa Heka Khasut
Originated? "The Hyksos, Or Hikau-Khoswet".

57. Yes. They Spread Their Evils,


War, Hate, Corruption, Drug, Lust Question: Just Who Were The
All Over The World. It All Started Hyksos?
From A Little White Lie About
Light Verses Darkness. 62. The Hyksos Ruled Hut-Waret
58. After The Hyksos (Hyk = "Avaris" For 430 Years, And This
"Captives, Of Kings", Sos = "Shepherd") Devil Seed Was Cast Out Of Old
Invaded Egipt By Sneaking In Like Egipt, By Ruler Kamose, Elder Son
A Snake Over A Series Of Decades, Of Seqenenre Of The 17th
And Around 2,000 B.C. They Ruled Dynasty, Whose Younger Brother
The Egiptians Close To The Was Ahmose I And Then By The
Mediterranean Sea For 430 Years. Successor Ah-Mose Son Of Ebana
The True Meaning Of Hyksos Is In

206
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Of The 18th Dynasty Of The 46 And I'm Taking Into Consideration
Dynasties. That All Of Them May Not Have A
63. Note The Hebrew Names Of Full Life Of Over 80 Years, May
The Hyksos Rulers From The 15th Have Been Murdered Or Replaced,
And 16th Dynasty: Starts With So The Seven Names Listed, As It
Sheshi (Mayebre) Yakub-Her, Appears Apepi I And Apepi Ii Was
Ya'akob-Her, Or Jacob-Her, Succession And The Last Ruler
Anather (Meruserre), Apepi I Apepi "Apophis" Lived To Die Of
(Auserre) Apepi Ii (Aqenenre) Old Age. This Is How We Calculate
And Yakobaam, That Is Jacob- The 430.
Aam, As Jacob (Genesis 25:21-26).
64. Jacob Son Of Isaac And
Rebecca (Ra-Ba-Ka) Is The Hebrew Question: Don't The Historians
Or Israelite Seed. Differ On Their Stay In Egipt?
65. So The Hyksos Are The
Israelites, Isis-Ra-El, Seed Of 68. Yes, In Fact Turin Canon Says
Abraham, Ab-Ra-Kemet. (Gabriel 108 Years, Eusebius Says 250 Years,
Geb-Ra-El). Africanus Says 284 Years, Josephus
Says 511 Years.
69. As You Can See The 430,
Question: Why Do You Say The Which Is The Fact Is Trapped
Hyksos Were There For 430 Within Their Assumptions.
Years, When The Caucasian
Historians Say Only 100 Years?
Question: So Who Would Joseph
66. Because They Are Masters Of Be Amongst The Hyksos?
Tricknology And Deception, But
Actual Facts Beat Out Faith And 70. Joseph Would Be Apepi I
Belief. (Apophis). As A Hyksos Demon, He
67. This Is What They Would Like Was Proudly Named Apepi I
You To Believe, Trust And Have "Apophis", (Joseph Ben Jacob,
Faith In, But Just Looking At The Yosef "To Add On") Defeated In
Line Of The Hyksos Rulers, You See 1585 B.C, Worshipper Of Sutukh
Seven To Eight Names, Each Living "Set", Baal.
To A Right Old Age, Which Would 71. This Apophis Or Poppi Which
Give You More Than One Means "Giant Serpent", Some Call
Generation Of 100 Years, At Least White Syrians.
Four Generations Is Necessary For 72. These Evil Human Beasts
That Many Individuals To Reign Called Hyksos Started A Feud With
207
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
The Indigenous People Of The And Tying Into The Genes Of The
Land. Ancient Egiptians, Thus Taking
73. Poppi Wanted Them To Kill Over Egipt.
And Destroy All The Holy 80. An Invasion Was Not
Hippopatamus, Which Was A Necessary.
Symbol Of The Deity Taweret Or 81. Their Intention Was To Come
Taueret, Which The Greeks Call Into Egipt And Wreak Havoc.
Thueris. 82. The Hyksos Were Also Called
74. The Word Hippopotamus The Nomad Group.
Means "Sea Horse", The Shape Of All 83. They Remained Throughout
Of Africa, The Horse Head. Egiptian History As "Asiatics", And
Their Kings Were Called "Foreign
Rulers" Or "Princes Of Retenu".
Question: What Were The 84. The Hyksos Is Noted For
Hyksos Known As? Having A Syrian Chief, Who
Helped Them Overrun Egipt.
75. The Hyksos Were Known As 85. They Took Control Of Avaris,
The Asiatics, Phoneicians, Which Is Called Tell El-Daba
Canaanites, Syrians. Today.
76. They Were Also Called Arabs, 86. The Pharaoh Kamose Helped
Because Of Arabia Which Is In "The Inaugurate Egipt, However, He
East". Speaks Of The Asiatics As Having
77. In Pharaonic Times Asia Destroyed Egipt, Due To The
Would Have Been Known As The Complaint Of Apepi I To
"Northern Countries", Namely Seqenenre Tao, The A'aferti
Palestine And Syria. "Pharoah" Of Nu-Amun "Thebes"
78. This Is Why It Is Said The That He Was Unable To Sleep In
Hyksos Appeared To Have Suddenly Avaris Because Of The Roaring Of
Appeared Out Of The North, As A The Hippopatamus 400 Miles Away
Conquering Army. At Nu-Amun "Thebes".
87. This Created A War And The
Theban Dynasty Rose Up Against
Question: Where Did The Hyksos The Hyksos In A Series Of Battles
Come From? Which Eventually Drove Out The
Hyksos Out Of Egipt.
79. The Hyksos Came In Through
Turkey, And Eased Their Way Into
The Military, Working Their Way
Into Power, Killing The Pharaohs,
208
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Were The Hyksos 93. They Said Their King Poppi,
Greeks? Who Slepped 400 Miles Away Could
Not Sleep.
Yes. Genesis 10:2 Explains How 94. This Is To Be Found On The
Noah's Son Japheth Had A Son Karnak Stelae. Seqenenre Tao Ii
Javan Who Was Called Ionian And Wadj-Kheper-Re Kamose,
Which Means Greece, So The These Nubians Started Reclaiming
Hebrew Was Also The Greek And The Land From The Hyksos, So
Both Were Heka Khasut "Hyksos". They Took This Claim As An Insult
Being His Bed Was 400 Miles Away.
95. Now They Had An Excuse To
Question: Why Did The Greeks War On Avaris, The Greek For Hut-
Hate Taweret? Waret, The Capital Nome From The
Greek Nomos, Egiptian Called
88. Because She Was The Center Sepat. Nomos Means "Law" In
Of The Iunet Or Tantere, Called Greek.
By The Greeks Denderah Calendar 96. From This Site They Created
And She Represented Mitochondria Their Bible Story And Made Them
Dna, And These Greeks Hated The Law, Stealing The Characters
Women. They Kept Their Women From Egipt, Changing Names,
Suppressed. Dates, Gender And Race.
89. The Hyksos Wanted To 97. But This Was Brought To An
Change The Dendera Calendar And End And Poppi Or Apophis, The
Remove Taweret From Its Center, Big-Snake Defeated.
The Great Female Deity, The 98. Seqenenre Tao Ii, Son Of
Goddess Symbol That Women Was Tao I And Tetisheri, The Brave
Indeed First Before Man. Was Killed In Battle In An Ambush,
90. The Greeks Was Not Very Gay Leaving Behind His Wife Ah-Hotep
On This Fact Being Female Haters And Kamose, His Eldest Son, And
And Homosexuals By Genetic His Youngest Son Ahmose I.
Makeup. 99. Kamose Was Succeeded By
91. Taweret Held The Sa Symbol Ahmose Son Of Ebana His
Of Protection Just As Bes. General And Best Friend, Who
92. So They Claimed That The Took Up The Battle.
Snoring Of The Hippos Was 100. The Hyksos Gave Up, The
Unseemly Noisy In The Sacred War Was Over, They Were Chased
Temple Pool At Thebes. Across The Burning Sands.
101. They Are Producing More
Problems Than They Are Solving

209
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Up Until 2000 B.C., The End Of Ques: So How Does The
Their 6000 Year Rule From 4004 Hyksos Tie In With The
B.C.E. Down To 1 A.D. On To Israelites?
2000 B.C. That Is 6000 Years In All.
102. The End Of The Devil's Rule, 108. The Hyksos Were In Actuality
By Which Ever He Hides. The Israelites Of Your Bible, Who
103. He Changes The Calendar Came Into Egipt Through Goshen,
And Alters Dates To Confuse The The Eastern Delta Area.
End Time. 109. The Hyksos Were Known As
An Asiatic Population Of The
Question: Weren't The Israelites Eastern Delta Grew To Exceed In
In The Land Of Goshen? Number.
104. The Land Given To Israel In 110. This Eastern Delta Area Is
Egipt In Genesis 47:6, 27 And The The Same Area Of Goshen
Nile Delta Genesis 47:6-11 Clearly Mentioned In The Bible Exodus
Indicates Goshen As Being The 8:22, As Being The Eastern Delta
Land Of Ramesses, Named After Area. 111. The Name Israel Or Any
The Residents Pi-Ramesse, The Of The Tribes Of Israel Is Not
Biblical Ra.Amses In The North Mentioned In Egiptian History Or
East Delta. Records.
105. The East Delta Would Be 112. The Israelites Who Were The
Suitable Being Near The Court Of Hebrews Meaning "Cross Over",
Joseph (Genesis 45:10), Being A Because The Phonecians And
Servant Of The Hyksos Pharoah, Syrians Witnessed Them Cross Over
And Later The Hyksos Ruler The Tigris And Euphrates Region,
Himself, At Het-Ka-Ptah "Memphis" Were Nomadic Tribes With Their
(Near Cairo, Egipt) Or Avaris, Herds, Were Known As Nomads
North East Delta. From Edom.
106. Also Genesis 46:28-29 Links
Moses To A Pharoah At Pi- Ques: Where Is Goshen?
Ramesse (Exodus 7:12).
107. The Point Being That The 113. Goshen Meaning "Drawing
Land Of Goshen "Drawing Near" Near" Is A Region In Northern
Was The Same Land That The Egipt, East Of The Lower Nile, A
Hyksos Inhabited, Making It A Fact Town In The Mountains Of Judah
That The Israelites Were Indeed In The District Of Goshen.
None Other Than The Hyksos. 114. In The Septuagint
(Roman/Latin Version Of The
Bible), The Land Of Goshen,

210
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Genesis 45:10 Is Referred To As Evidence For A Large Asiatic
"The Land Of Geshen The Population In The Eastern Delta.
Arabian". 122. Goshen Is The Biblical Name
115. Goshen Is The Egyptian For A Region Of The Eastern
Eastern Delta City Of Pa-Kes. Delta.
116. The Septuagint (Roman/Latin 123. The Ancient Egyptian Name
Version Of The Bible) Calls The Is Kesan.
Region Where The Israelites Settled 124. There Is No Record In Egipt
'Kessan. Here We Have The Link Other Than The Hyksos, Of Any
We Need. Boy Coming In Going To Prison,
117. The Goshen Of The Coming Out Because Of Dreams
Masoretic (Hebrew) Scriptures Is And Visions, Becoming A Ruler.
The Septuagint's Kessan Which Is 125. There Is No Egiptian Record
Related In Some Way To The That Matches Your Religious
Ancient Egyptian City Of Pa-Kes Doctrine On Egiptian, Be It,
(Fakus) Was A Stones's Throw The Tanakh "Torah", Synoptic "Four
Ancient Site Avaris. Gospels", Apocrypha "Revelations" Or
118. Avaris Appears Therefore To Qur'an "Koran, Coran".
Have Been Located Within The
Region Of Kessan/Goshen Which
Is That To The City Of Arabia. Question: What Calendar Did
119. The Word Goshen In The Ancient Egiptians Use?
Egiptian Is Kessan Which Is A City
Built By A Pharoah Named 126. The Calendar Of Tehuti,
Palmanothes. Which Was Improved By His Own
120. Kessan Appears To Be The Student I-M-Hotep.
Egyptian "Kes" Which Reveals 127. Tehuti Created This Calendar
Itself In The Septuagint As Based On The Rising Of A Star
"Kessan" And In The Masoteretic Called Septet, Also Known As
Text As Goshen Which Is The Sopdu, Sothis, Sopdet Or Sibtu.
Earliest Surviving Hebrew Version 128. Today It Is Called Sirius, The
Of The Old Testament Narratives - Dog Star, Which Marked A New
The Area Of The Eastern Delta In Year.
Which The Israelites Were Settled 129. Tehuti Created The Original
By Pharoah. Calendar In Sets Of 10, Which
121. Goshen/Kessan Is The Only Would Be Based On The Number 1,
Period In Egyptian History With Which Would Be The First Moment,
Incontrovertible Archaelogical Not The Second, As In A Second
Or The Second.

211
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
130. One Being The Root Of Ten, Minutes, Each Minute Consisted Of
In Concordance With The 100 Seconds, Each Second
Circumference Of The Earth, In Consisted Of 1000 Moments.
Relation To 1, 10 And 100, 1,000. 137. This Gave 100,000 Seconds
131. The Earth Being 25 Thousand From Midday To Midday.
Miles In Circumference, With 138. The First Month Tehuti, The
Changes Varying In Climate By First Day Of The New Year Hat
Expansion And Contraction You Har.
Have Your Four Sets Of Seasons,
Each Equivalent To 25, 4 X 25
Being 100 Percent. Question: What About The
132. All Of This Was Thrown Off Equinox And Precession?
When The Planet Tilted To A 23
Degree Axis, Because Of A Massive 139. The Calculation Of Time
Meteorite, Which Resulted In Became The Precession, Which Is
Massive Flooding Of Ancient Egipt 26, 000 Years For 1 Revolution, As
And A Change To Three Climates. Opposed To The Equinox Of
133. The Flood Season First, Called 25,000 Years, Which Would Be
Akhet, Which Consists Of 1. Land, 1 Mile Per Year, Being The
September, 2. October, 3. Earth's Circumference Is 25,000
November, And 4. December, Miles.
Which Is Followed By Growth 140. Next They Had 24,000, Which
Called Peret, Which Consists Of 1. Linked To 24 Hours In A Day,
January, 2. February, 3. March, 4. Which Is The Number 6, The Birth
April, And Then Followed By Of His Time.
Harvest Called Shemu, Which 141. This Figure 26 Is How They
Consists Of 1. May, 2. June, 3. July, Came Up With The Number Being
4. August. Bad Luck.
134. Each Month Consisted Of 30 142. Half Of 26 Is 13, Half Of 13
Days. 120 Days In The Season Of Is 6 And One Half, So They Created
Akhet, 120 Days In The Season Of Their Time Around The Number 6,
Peret, And 120 Days In The Season 60, 600, And 6,000.
Of Shemu, All Equaling 360 Days, 143. When The Axis Of The
Which Made 1 Year. Planet Shifted To 23 Degrees Time
135. You Had 3 Weeks In Each Also Changed, And The Great
Month, Which Consisted Of 10 Masters Devised A Plan Of How To
Days. Graft The Disagreeable Nature Out
136. Each Day Consisted Of 10 Of The Original Nubuns So They
Hours, Each Hour Consisted Of 100 Predicted The Birth Of A Demon

212
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Or Devil, Who Would Be Allowed And Control, Sex = Six, 1. Lust, 2.
To Rule For No More Than 6,000 Desire, 3. Crave, 4. Pleasure, 5.
Years. Passion, 6. Porno. Evil Equals Love
144. These 24 Masters Are Backwards Evol Is How It Sounds
Responsible For The Making Of The Not Eveel, Also In The German
Albino Race, As Recorded On The Root Hex, For "Witch" Or The
Walls Of Abydo, The Temple Of Harlot That Rides The Leviathan
Seti I In Abtu "Abydos". Beast, And By Adding Nothing
145. Note: That Seti I, Whose Which Is The Cipher, They Created
Birth Name Was Seti Meryenptah Sixty 60, As In 60 Seconds In A
"He Of Set, Beloved Of Ptah", And Minute And 60 Minutes In An Hour,
Sacred Name Was Menmaatre And 24 Hours In A Day, Which Is
"Eternal Is The Justice Of Re", Of Egipt From The Word Dai On To Doeg,
Who Was In Fact David Son Of And Agh Meaning "Time", Which In
Jesse (Ramesses I Son Of Obed Itself Is Equivalent To 6, The
(Seti), Father Of Solomon Number Of The Beast,
(Ramesses Ii) Father Of Menelik Imperfection.
(Merenptah) Of Your Bible And 148. When There Was Changed
Qur'an Is Where They Get S.E.T.I., Imhotep, Corrected The Calendar
"Search For Extra Terrestrial By Adding 5 Days Called
Intelligence, An Organization That Epagomenal Days, Used To
Started In 1960 A.D. Searching The Commemorate The Birth Of The
Skies For Radio Signals From Neteraat "Deities" Which Was
Extraterrestrial Life. Added By Imhotep Teacher Of
146. These 24 Masters Were Of Zoser (Netjerikhet) Of The 3rd
Agreeable And Disagreeable Nature, Dynasty, Whose Wife Was His Sister
The Plan Was To Eliminate All By The Same Father Named Hetep
Disagreeableness To Attain Hernebty And Six Every Fourth
Perfection As The Original Deities Year.
Of Creation And Growth Return To 149. First Day Asaru, Second Day
That Perfect State, But The Haru, Third Day Sutukh, Fourth
Disagreeableness Had To Be Bred Day Aset, And Fifth Day Nebthet,
Out, And This Would Take 6,000 Which Gave You 365 1/4 Day, And
Years. Every 4th Year He Added 1 Day For
147. Time Was Changed From Sets Anubu And That Kept The
Of 10 And It Was Based On The Calendar Balanced.
Number Six, Which Comes From 150. However The Beast Man
Middle English Sex As In Leviathan Changed This Calendar And
Sex Spirit Force, The Power Of Lust Shortened It To 365 Days, Which Is

213
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Why You Have The Extra Day, Why In Your Scriptures (Psalms
Which They Call Leap Year, And 40:2, 2 Peters 3:8) They Say A Day
The Greeks, Romans, Arabs, With The Lord Is Like Unto
Babylonians, And Hebrews All Thousand Years, And (Quran
Grafted Their Calendars From The 103:47).
Original Egiptian Calendar But 156. I Am Here To Give You A
Replaced The Names With Names New Concept Of Time, Because
Of Their Deities In Their Language, You Can't Judge Time By The
Or Their Religious Names, Altered Current Time System In Order To
The Seasons The Sole Purpose Is Make It Out Of Here.
To Keep You From Calculating The 157. Their Time Has Missing
End Of Their Rule And The Hours, Minutes, And Seco Nds.
Coming In Of Yours, Which Is 158. The Gregorian Calendar
Now. Moderates Their Time By 24 Hour
Days, And It's Not 24 Hours In
What They Call A Day. It's 23
Question: Why Did They Deviate Hours 56 Minutes And 6 Seconds.
From The Original Calendar? Time Is Expan Ding. It Keeps
Going Out.
151. They All Deviated From That 159. There Is No Such Thing As
Calendar Because They Realize That Clockwise As In Di Rection.
It Was The Cloak Of Destiny. 160. They Are Having You Base
152. You Can't Accept Any Of The Yourself On Their Time, And You
Tama-Hu (From The Word Tama Can't Keep Correct Track Of Tim E.
"Filth" And Hu "Living"), The 161. Time Is Expanding Outwards,
Deceiver. And Yesterday Is Still Out There.
153. Don't Trust Any Of Their 162. That's Why Tomorrow Never
Dates, And Most Places. Comes, Because Today Is A Flow
154. They Only Seek To Deceive From Yest Erday. Time Is .
You About Your Past. 163. If You Break The Time
Barrier And Travel Faster Than The
Speed Of Light, Which Is 186, 272
Question: Why Does Time Shift? Miles Per Second, You Can Meet Up
With Yourself At The Same Point
155. Time Shifts Because The That You Started From, Because
Earth's Axis Is Off. 1000 Years Of You Will Be Breaking The Time Ba
Your Time Is Equivalent 1 Day To Rrier.
The Neteraat, Every Precession Is 164. This Is How They Are Able
A New Day Or New Era This Is To Travel In Ti Me.

214
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
This Year", (From The Ablative
Hypothetical Hor Yoro, "In This
Question: What Does The Word Year").
Calendar Mean? 169. The American Heritage
Dictionary Third Edition, Defines
165. The English Wor D Leap Year As: " N. 1. A Year In
Calendar Comes Fro M Latin The Gregorian Calendar Having 366
Calendarium , "An Account Book" Days, With The Extra Day, February
Fr. Calendae, From Calendae, 29, Intercalated To Compensate For The
Kalendae , The First Day Of The Quarter-Day Difference Between An
Month. Ordinary Year And The Astronomical
166. Thus, We Need To Have Year. 2. An Intercalary Year In A
Our Own Tagwum "Calendar" Calendar."
Together, With No Added Or 170. The Year 1996 A.D. , In The
Missing Time, And Leap Years. Gregorian Calendar Is Called A Leap
Year Because The Extra Day Causes
Any Day After February To Leap
Question: What Is A Leap Year? Or Jump Over One Extra Day In
The Week And To Occur Two Days
167. According To The English Later In The Week Than It Did In
Language The Word Leap Comes The Previous Year, Rather Than Just
From Middle Lepen , From Old One Day As In A Normal Year.
English Hleapan , Meaning "To 171. The English Wor D
Jump, Dance; To Run ." Gregorian Comes From Th E Late
168. And According To The Latin Gregorianus, From French
English Language The Word Year Gregorius, Gregory.
Comes From Th E Middle English 172. And The Word Gregory
Yere From The Old English Gera, Comes From Late Latin Gregorius ,
Relating To Old Slavic, Old High From Greek T Rngoriow From
German, Jar, Old Norse Ar, Danish Grhgorow Gregoros Meaning
Arr, Swedish Ar, Old Frisian, Ger, "Watchful".
Dutch Jaar, German, Jah r, Goth Jer, 173. Thus Th E Gregorian
"Year" And Cognate With Avestic Yar, Calendar Was Named After A Man
"Year, From The Greek, Wros, Year, Named Pope Gregory Xiii In 1582
Wra, "Any Limited Time, The Time Of A.D. As A Supposedly Corrected
Day Hour, Season Spring, Year (Whence Version Of The Julian Calendar
The Latin Hora, "Hour"), Old Slavic 174. The Solar Calendar
Jaru, "Spring" Latin Hornus Introduced By Julius Caesar In
(Hypothetical For Ho-Yor-Inos)"Of Rome In 46 B.C. , Having A Year

215
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Of 12 Months And 365 Days And A Question: What Does The Word
Leap Year Of 366 Days Every Nilotic Mean?
Fourth Year.
175. In The Gregorian Calendar, 184. According To The English
Every Fourth Year Is A Leap Year. Language The Word Nilotic Is
176. If You Go Back To 1996 Defined As Adj. 1. Of Or Relating To
A.D. , Which Was A Leap Year, The Nile Or The Nile Valley. 2. Of Or
And Then Go Back 4 Years Relating To The Peoples Who Speak
Previous To That To The Yea R Nilotic Languages.
1992 A.D. 185. The Word Nilotic Comes
177. You Would See It Also Was A From The Latin Word Niloticus ,
Leap Yea R. The Next Leap Year From Nilotis , From The Greek
Would Be The Year 2000 A.D. Neilotis , From Neilos , Meanin G
178. It Works In Sets Of Four. "Nile" .
And This Concept Comes From 186. So As You Can See The
The Calendar That Was Improved Egiptian Calendar Was Based On
By I-M-Hotep , The Melchizedek Their Life Which Revolved Around
Of That Time. Th E Nile, This Is Still Natural Tim
179. And His Most High God Is E.
None Other Than Tehuti, (Genesis 187. The Earth's Revolution
14:18), Who Gave An Extra Day Around The Sun, That Gives Us
Every Four Years For The Birthday Our Year, Speeds Up Or Slows
Of Anubis . Down Because There Is Irregular
180. Every Fourth Even Year Is A Movement Due To Motions Of The
Leap Year. Earth's Liquid Core .
181. It Is Based On The 188. The Earth Is Also On An
Revolution Of The Movement Of Elliptical Orbit, Meaning It Is Not A
The Planet Earth Around The Sun Perfect Circle Or Even Rou Nd.
Clockwise . 189. The Orbit Of Th E Planet
182. This Term Clockwise Came Earth Is Oblong, Not Circular Like
From The Old Egiptian Sun Dial. Most People Think.
183. The Egiptian Calendar Was 190. So At The Points Where The
Based On The Cycles Of The Nile Earth Is Closer To The Sun, The
River In Egipt. Nile River Of The Faster It Revolves, While The
Water. Water Being Ruled Egipt Farther Away The Earth Is From
First. The Egiptian Year Was Calle The Sun The Slower It Mov Es.
D Nilotic Year . 191. The Planet Earth Also
Expands When It's Closer And
Contracts When It's Further Away.

216
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
192. There Are Tidal Friction, 200. A Misconception Is Found In
Causing The Rotation Of The Earth This Definition In So Far As The
To Slow Down Sligh Tly. Impression Is Given That Time
193. Th E Earth Wobbles As It Moves In A Set Direction, When It
Revolves Around The Su N. Doesn 'T. There Is No Motion To
194. It Is Also Rotating On A Time.
Shifted Earth Axis Of 23 1/2
Degrees, Which Allows Different
Parts Of The Planet Earth To Be Question: What Is A Zone?
Exposed To Its Rays At Different
Time S. 201. According To The English
195. From This Rotation, Your Language, The Word Zone Comes
Individual Time Zones Were Derive From Latin Zona Meaning
D. "Girdle", From Greek Zone
196. In Each Place On The Planet Whence Meaning 'To Gird', 'Girt' ,
Earth It Has An Hour Difference In Fro M Indo-European Base *Yos- ,
Their Time Zone. 'To Gird; Girdle' , Old Slavic Po-Jasu,
'Girdle', From Albanian N-Ges,
Meaning 'I Gird'.
Question: What Is A Time Zone? 202. Thus A Zone Is A Belt, An
Area Or One Of The Five Regions
197. First Befor E I Define A In Which The Surface Of The Earth
Time Zone , I Must Define The Is Divided Into .
Word Time ? 203. So There Is A Different
Time For Each One Of The Zones,
Or Belt Making Up Your Time
Question: What Is Time? Zone.
204. According To Th E
198. According To The English American Heritage Dictionary , A
Language The Word Time Comes Time Zone Is : "N. Any Of The 24
From Middle English, Fro M Old Longitudinal Divisions Of Earth's Surface
English Tima , Mea Ning "Time, In Which A Standard Time Is Kept, The
Date, Period Of Time, Lifetime" . Primary Division Being That Bisected By
199. Thus According To This The Greenwich Meridian. Each Zone Is
Definition, Time Is A Continuous 15° Of Longitude In Width, With Local
Flow Having No Space In Which Events Variations, And Observes A Clock Time
Occur In Apparently Irreversible One Hour Earlier Than The Zone
Succession From The Past Through The Immediately To The East."
Present To The Future .

217
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: What Is A Longitude? 210. The International Date Line
205. According To The English Is Curved Eastward Aroun D
Language, The Word Longitude Siberia, Westward Arou Nd Aleutian
Comes From Middle English, Islands And Eastward Around The
"Length" , A Measured Length, From Fiji Islands And New Zealand.
Old French, From Latin Longitudo, 211. This Is Done To Avoid
Longitudin-, From Longus , Crossing The Land.
Meaning Long. 212. The International Dateline Is
206. Longitude Is An Angular The End Of The Time Zone .
Distance On The Earth's Surface 213. With A Time Zone , I Can
Measured East Or West, Starting At Be At A Different Place, At The
The North And South Line Called Same Time, Every Time, By That I
The Prime Meridian . Mean, If I Was To Go To Tokyo
207. The Angles Of Longitude At 12:00 P.M., I Can Get On An
Hour Flight Going Eastward To
Range From 0o To 180o, Each
Hong Kong, I'll Get There At 12:00
Measuring 15o And The 180o The P.M., The Same Time, Only In A
Degree Or The Last Line Being The Different Time Zon E.
International Date Line. Longitude 214. If I Keep Going Eastward,
Is Also Measured In Hours, Minutes From Hong Kong To Bangkok ,
Or Seconds. On An Hour Flight, I'll Get There
At 12:00 P.M., The Same Time,
Only In A Different Time Zone .
Question: So What Is A 215. Time Is Constant . It Is
Latitude? Always On A Continuous Flow.
You Can't Keep Track Of Time .
208. According To The English 216. If I Were To Ask You To
Language , The Word Latitude Count A Second, The Moment You
Comes From Latin Word Latus Say "One", That Second Is Gone,
Meaning "Wide" . And There Is Another Second Right
209. Latitude Is Measured By The Behind I T.
Lines Going Around A Globe That 217. That's Why They Create D
Measures The Angles North And Nanometer Which Is One-Billionth
South Of The Equat Or. (10-9) Of A Meter.
218. Nanoseconds Often Times
Called Nanno, Meaning "Extremely
Question: What Is The Small" : From Nannoplankton. 2. One-
International Dateline?
Billionth (10–9): Nanosecond. [Greek
Nanos, Nannos, Little Old Man,
218
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Dwarf, From Nannas, Uncle, From Age, And The Twin Thrown At The
Nanna, Aunt.] Velocity Of Our Regular Time Rate,
219. If I Throw A Ball A Distance Would Come Back As An Old Man .
Of 20 Miles From A Car Traveling
At The Rate Of 20 Miles Per Hour,
How Long Will It Take To Get Question: How Do You Know His
There ? Time Is Not Working?
220. It Will Take One Hou R.
Now Depending On How Fast The 227. The Reason You Know His
Ball Is Thrown Or The Thrust, Time Is Not Working Because He
Velocity, At A Rate Of 10 Miles Per Has The Earth Broken Up Into 24
Hour, It Will Reach Its Destination Meridians, With 24 Hours, And You
In Half The Time, Thus Altering Or Have To Turn Back Your Clock
Bending Time . Each Year And Turn Your Clock
221. This Is Not The Same With Forward Each Year, So That Means
Light, Which Will Reach Is That There Is One Meridian That
Destination Regardless Of The They Are Basing Their Setting The
Speed, Because Light Travels At A Clock Forward And Backwards
Constant Rate Regardl Ess. From, With Thousands Of People
222. It Doesn't Have A Solid Mass Who Are Left Out Of Time And
Or Weight And Is Unaffected By Then Brought Back Into Time .
Gravity. 228. So The Planet Consist Of 24
223. The Speed Of Light Travels Time Zon Es.
At 186,282 Miles Per Second 229. Everybody Is Really Moving
Which Is Approximately 300,000 On The Same Time, You Are Just
Kilometers Per Second In A Vac Under The Illusion That You Are
Uum . Not.
224. Light Doesn't Push Things
Out Of The Way As Matt Er.
225. Light Absorbs As It Goes Question: How Does He Explain
Along, So It Will Always Reach Its That?
Destination At The Same Time.
226. If I Were To Throw A Set Of 230. He Doesn't Bother To
Twins Into Space, One At The Explain That . That's Why He Puts
Speed Of Light And The Other At The Meridian On The Other Side Of
Our Regular Time Rate, The The World Where He Is At, I N
Velocity Of The Thrust, Thrown At Europe.
The Speed Of Light Would Make
That Twin Come Back At The Same

219
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
231. I Already Explained That You Lose A Second, And 60 Is Really A
Can Be At 12:00 Everywhere If You .06 Reference Of Time .
Go Back An Hour. 241. The First In This Time Frame
232. There Is Really No Time Zo Is Nanometer , And This Is What
Ne. So This Means That There Is Seconds Are Composed O F.
An Absence Of Time . 242. There Are 4, 60 Seconds On
233. In Music They Tell You 4, 60 Minutes As We Are Coming
There Is A Beat And A Res T . What Out Of 24 Hour S.
Is That Rest In Bet Ween? There 243. There Are 24 Hours, And
Can't Be A Rest In Betwe En. There Are Four Points In A Day,
234. It Has To Be Another Beat, Which Are Daybreak (Sunrise), High
Or Are You Saying That The Noon, Evening (Sunset) And
Absence Of A Beat Is Non-Exist Midnight .
Ence. 244. These Also Represent Your
235. Then You Would Have To Four Directions On The Planet
Say That There Is Something As Earth, North, South, East, And
Nothingness Which Doesn't Exist, West .
You Follow . So He Lost An Hour 245. The Equinox Also Consists
In His Time Zone. Of Four Cycle S . Each Cycle Is
236. You Have A Circumference 6,000 Years, Which Is Two Moon
Of The Planet Earth Equaling Cycles And Two Sun Cycles. This
24,896 Miles, Which Must Tie Into All Occurs Inside Of The Massive
The Equinox Which Is 24,000 Years, Moon Cycle Of 17 Million 250
And The 24 Hours Of The Thousand Years And You Have A
Gregorian Calend Ar. Massive Sun Cycle Of 17 Million 250
237. There Are Really 4 Major Thousand; Or Massive Sun Cycles
Phases Of The Moon, Which Must And Massive Moon Cycles Gives
Be Linked Between The Equinox, You 69 Million Years. It All Works
The Circumference, And The 24 In Fours. Your End Results Are
Hours. Your Numeral 6 For 6-Ether And
238. And They Must Make Sure The Finality Of 9 For 9-Ether.
That Their Time Adds Up To All Of 246. Being That The
This. Circumference Of The Planet Earth
239. Every 4 Years, They Have A Is Not Exactly 24,000 Miles, It Is
Leap Into Time, Thus You Have A 24,896 Miles, Which Is
Leap Year. Approximately 25,000 Miles, So
240. Every 24 Hours They Have A There Time Is Thrown Off,
Missing Point In Time, Thus They Especially Since There Are Not 24
Hours In What They Call A Day,

220
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
But There Are 23 Hours, 56 Would See Four Points Making A
Minutes, And 6 Seconds, As Stated Squ Are.
Before Which Is Approximately 24 256. The Reservoir Of Our
Hours In Their Gregorian Time. Thoughts Are Within This
247. What The Evil One Did, Was Tetrahedron, "As Above So Below",
Dice It Up, And Then Gave It To So To Envision A Pyramid In
You. Reality, Is To Envision The Three
248. So If There Is A Day, A Craft Points Into The Four Points.
Is Going To Come, Those People 257. Your World Is A Three
Are Not Going To Make It On Dimensional Wor Ld. You Have To
Going By His Time Codes Or Zone. Move Into The 4th Plane.
249. They Bite Pieces Of Time 258. All Of Human's Thoughts
From Their Gregorian Calendar To Are Coming Out Of A Mental Bank
Keep It Consis Tent. Called A Mental Reservoir, Which Is
250. You Have To Learn Real Your Tetrahedro N.
Time Again And You Can't As Long 259. Even If You Try Hard
As You Are Trapped Within The Enough, You Cannot Think Outside
Noun Which Is A Part Of Th E Spell Of The Three Principles . 1.
By 1. Person, 2. Places And 3. Person, 2. Place, 3. Thing. 1.
Things. Solid, 2. Liquid, 3. Gas.
251. These Three Points Along 260. So To Blind You, They Gave
With The Fourth Point, Forms A You Father, Son, Holy Ghost. God,
Tetrahedron, Which I Will Expl Devil, Mortal.
Ain. 261. You Are Caught On 1, 2, 3.
252. This Tetrahedron Has Three There Was A Time When You
Points, Which Are : 1. Person, 2. Were Able To Think Outside Of
Places, 3. Things. Person, Place, Or Things.
253. These Three Points Is What 262. Your Concept Of Thinking Is
The Spell Is Working From, And Responding.
You Can't Even Begin To Conceive 263. You Must First Respond. I
What Is On The Fourth Point, Thin K 1. Myself First, The N 2.
Because You Are Trapped In The People I Like, The N 3. Everybody
Three Points Of Person, Places, And Els E. Now What About The
Thing S. Fourth Referenc E?
254. The Tetrahedron Works Off 264. That Would Come Into
The Principle Of "As Above, So Godlyhood .
Below" . 265. The Reference To Your Total
255. The Tetrahedron When Intellect In That Point Is A
Rotating Makes A Vort Ex. You Tetrahedron . 266. A Pyramid Is

221
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Not Your Reference. A Pyramid 275. Time I S. The Spell Is
Implies That There Is A Base To Enforced By Believing That Time
Your Reference. Has A Reference . This Is A Point
267. The Implication Of A In Time .
Tetrahedron Is That It Is Moving To 276. As I Move From Point One
The Next Realm . To Point Two, When I Get To
268. The Tetrahedron Is A Perfect Point 19, This Will Appear To
Reference. You See Its Totality. Move, But It's No T.
You See The Myste Ry. 277. It Gives The Impression That
269. As Long As He Is Able To Time Is Logg Able.
Come In And Pretend He Is 278. If You Look At The Clock,
Intelligent. Look At The Second, Time Is Not
270. Yet, Once A Year, Pops An Going From One Incident To The
Hour Out And Eliminates Thousand Next, The Incident Is Now
Of People. Happening .
271. So, When He Says Turn Your 279. You Were There In Time,
Clock Back An Hour, I F I Was You Didn't Congeal, By Tha T I
Moving From My Car To The Store Mean, You Were The Gene, The
And The Breaking Wall Of That Thought, The Concept, And The
Hour Is Right Here, When I Get To Making Of What Was Happ Ening.
The Store, I Will Be In Another 280. When Your Great
Time Zone. Basically, He Erases Grandmother Was Here, And Your
That Time Zone And Goes To The Grandmother Was There, You Were
Next . Already Here In Existence, Just Not
272. However, Nobody Placed Yet .
Addresses That, Because He Took 281. You Have Labeled Your
The First Of That Time Zone, And Body With Interest In This Time.
It Doesn't Make Sen Se.
273. He Doesn't Care To Make It
Make Sens E, Because He Puts The Question: What Is Natural Time
Tick In The Clo Ck. Or Infinite Time?
274. It Has To Stay Within The
Realm Within 24 Hours, Within A 282. Infinite Time Is Natural Tim
24,000 Time Period For Your E.
Equinox. 283. One Way You Can Lock In
On Natural Or Infinite Time, Is By
Putting A Hole Of The Same Exact
Question: So What Is Time? Size Into The Bottom Of Three

222
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Cups, In Ancient Times Gourds His Time Is Altered, And Is Always
Were Used . Diffe Rent.
284. Place The Cups The Same 293. Thus It Is Important To Find
Exact Space Between Each Other The Correct Time.
Vertically . 294. They Take Seconds Out Of
285. At The Bottom, Of The Tree Time, And Alter Their Calendars
Cups Place An Opened Jar. And Clocks In Order For You Not
286. Fill The First Cup With To Know The Time When The
Water, And The Water Will Drip Shams Are Coming For You .
Through Each Cup To The Jar . 295. They Don't Want You To
287. As One Minute Passes, Put Know, For Th E Luciferians, The
A Line On The Jar, And Do This Aldebarans, Pleiadians, Have
Until You Get To 30 Minut Es. Another Plan To Get Out Of H Ere.
288. When All The Water Has 296. You Must Give Him Back
Dripped From The Top Cup Into His Time, And Learn Time Again
The Last Cup, Then You Start All Correct.
Over Agai N. 297. Time Must Now Be Placed
289. That Is Natural Or Infinite Back On Track Or You Will Not
Time. Know The Exact Time Of The
290. This Will Give You The Planetary Alignment, Nor Will You
Accurate Time, Which Is Necessary Know The Exact Time Of The
For The Coming Of The End Of Opening Of The Doorway Or
The World . Vortex In Order To Pass On To
291. His Time Is Based On A The Next Dimension In Time .
Lunisolar Time, With Leap Years, 298. If You Are Going On The
Seconds Taken Away Or Added To, Gregorian Time And Calendar, Then
And This Is An Alteration In Time You Would Be Going According To
Which Will Not Give You The The Wrong Tim E.
Exact Hour As Said In Mark 299. Because If You Say The
13:32 Where "But Of That Day And Vortex Is Going To Open On 5/
That Hour Knoweth No Man, No, Not 5/ 2000 A.D., That Doesn't
The Angels Which Are In Heaven, Necessarily Mean That It Will Open
Neither The Son, But The Father", But On 5/5/2000.
A God Does . 300. That Could Be The 4th, 5th,
292. When I Said The End Of The 6th, 7th, 8th, Or It Could Be The
World Is Going To Be In The Year Next Month . You Never Know .
2000 A.D. , I Don't Necessarily 301. Since The Gregorian Time
Mean 2000 A.D. Exact Ly, I Mean Was Set According To The Earth
In That Period Of Time, Because Line, With The Meridian, Instead

223
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Of The Sky, How The Egiptians Right Time, Which Is Going
Used To Do It, Then You Would Be According To Nature.
Waiting For The Vortex To Come, 308. Back Then, The Egiptians
And It Would Have Already Cam E. Would Use The Natural Ore
302. Then You Would Have To Elements Of The Planet Earth To
Wait Another 10 Years For The Know The Correct Time .
Vortex To Re-Open. 309. Each Metal Ore Gives Off A
303. You Are Not Supposed To Different Smell, So When The Sun
Be Going According To Th E Hits It, And Heats Up The Metal,
Gregorian Calendar, You Are From The Smell, You Would Know
Supposed To Be Going According Which Time Of The Day It Was.
To The Egyptian Calendar, And 310. The First Ore Was Platinum,
They Had Their Calendar Accurate With The Breaking Of The Dawn,
According To The Motion Of The Then Steel, Then Iron, Then Nickel,
Star S. Then Copper, A Rust Color, Like
304. That's Why I Introduced The When The Sun Appears To Go
Sahu "Orion" Stars To You'l L. Down.
305. They Had It Where The 311. Then It Went Into The Black
Sahu "Orion" Star Would Come Of The Night, And When The Sun
Every 70 Days, And They Would Comes Back Around Again, You
Chart It According To Their Had The Same Cycle Agai N.
Calendar. 312. This Was All Charted And
Planned Ou T.
313. That's How The Egiptians
Question: How Will We Know Did Their Timin G, A Ccording To
What Is The Correct Time The Planet Earth, Nature .
Again? 314. Everything In The Universe
Works On Time. So We Must Have
306. If You Have 361 Days In Our Own Time Based On Life
Your Year, Then When The Sahu Around Us.
"Orion" Star Comes In The Sky, You
Start Charting It From There, And
Then, You Keep Tract Of Your Question: Why Is It Important
Time . To Make Your Own Calendar?
307. 70 From 361 Would Be 291,
So You Know That Every 291 Days, 315. It Is Very Important To Make
You Will See The Sahu "Orion" Our Own Calendar For The Simple
Star Come Back Up Again, And You Fact That We Are Basing Our Time
Will Be Going According To The Reference On "His" Time, And "His

224
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Time" Is Not Accurate With So
Many Missing Time, Seconds,
Minutes, Leap Years, Added Days, Question: How Do We Know
Minutes And Seconds To His Clock That Their Time Is Up?
And Calendar.
319. Listen To The Cries Of Their
Youth And The World's Response
Question: What Was His First To Their Leaders.
Trick In Time? *Their Youth Listens To Demonic
Music Like Heavy Metal And Hard
316. To Give You The Second Rock, Suicide Music.
Without The Moment Which *All Of The Suicide Cults Are Led
Proceeds It. They Deceived You. By White Anglo Saxon Christians,
317. The Muslims Created The Though Many That Lose Their Lives
Lunar Calendar Consisting Of 354 Are Ethnics.
Days, And Their God Allah Created *They Are In The Arm's Race For
The Astrology, Zodiac According To The Destruction Of The Whole World
Them, When In Actuality The And They Want World Dominancy.
Egiptians Created The Original *One Of Their Own Albert
Zodiac On The Ceiling Of The Einstein Is Responsible For The
Temple Of Hathor At Denderah, Creation Of The Atomic Bomb.
(Qur'an 15:16, "It Is He Who Have Set *The Caucasians Have Lost The
Out The Zodiacal Signs In The Heavens Trust Of The Rest Of The World
And Made Them Fairseeming To All Because Their Instabilities.
Eholders"), And They Had 355 Days *Their Judicial System Is Corrupted.
In Their Leap Year, Which Is Not No Fair Trials, No Fair Juries, No
Accurate, And You Have The Fair Sentences.
Gregorian Solar Calendar Which *People Don't Trust The Cia, The
Consists Of 365 Days And That Is Fbi, The Irs, The Sheriff's
Not Accurate, And You Also Have Department, The Police Department,
The Hebraic Calendar Which Nor The Military.
Consists Of 354 Days And That's
*People No Longer Want To Send
Not Accurate.
Their Children To Public Schools, For
318. All Of These Calendars And
They Are Unsafe.
Many More Are Created For The
Sole Purpose Of Confusing You, To *Colleges And Universities Can't
Throw Off The Destined, Because Guarantee Jobs After Graduation.
They Knew Their Time Would Run *Viruses And Diseases Are
Out On 9/9/99. Attacking Them.

225
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
*Their Youth Are Killing Each *Their Amusement Parks Have
Other. Become Sights Of Multiple Accidents,
*They Are Becoming Their Own Their Theme Park Rides Are
Terrorists, Blowing Up Their Own Becoming More Dangerous.
Buildings. *They Are Pushing Danger And
*They Have Americans, Who Are Destruction Over The Edge, Dare
Anti America, With Militia Groups, Devils.
Para Military Groups Waiting To *Ultra Violet Rays Of The Sun
Overthrow The Government. Attacks Them, Giving Them Cancer.
*They're Having A Gender *Drugs Have Seized Their
Deficiency, People Are Getting Sex Community, From Addiction To
Changes, Homosexuality And Tobacco, Caffeine, To Synthetic
Lesbianism Are On The Rise. Drugs.
*Widespread Ludeness, Nudity, *Their Over Indulgence In Alcohol
Lust, Pornography And Perversions Beverages From The Abundant Use
Rule The Media. And Their Over-Consumption Of
*Their Churches Are Being Beer To Hard Alcohol, Barbiturate,
Attacked By Nature Itself, As Well And Drug Abuse In Their
As Their Cities. Community Is On The Rise.
*They Have Vigilante Groups Of *Nazi Type Anti-American, Anti-
Bikers. Peace Has Spread From A Mere Ku
* They Have Gangsters And Klux Klan To Thousands Of Splinter
Mobsters. Groups That Are Self Destructive
*Fire Is Their Enemy, Landslides, Towards The American Dream.
Tornadoes, Earthquakes, Floods. *Babies Born Deformed, Genetic
*They Are Testing The Very God Manipulation, Artificial Limbs,
They Claim Created Them By Playing The Very God They Claim
Unnecessary Challenge Called To Respect.
Courage. *Synthetic Foods.
*Their Sports Have Become Arenas *Organ Transplants With Pigs
Like Savage Beastly Blood Baths. And Other Foul Animals.
*They Use The Beast, The *Their Religious Doctrine,
Computer To Sabotage Themselves As Christianity, Islam, And Judaism Is
Hackers. On The Decline As The Computers
*Their Christian Leadership, Reveal Their Inconsistencies,
Pastors, Reverends, Ministers, Fathers Contradictions And Obvious Human
Are Being Revealed As Charlatans, Input.
Embezzlers, Con Artists And
Pedophiles.
226
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
*Their Lack Of Ability To Produce Question: Can We Overcome
Facts To Verify Their Historical Those Negative Forces?
Claims Or Religious Beliefs.
*And You Ask How Do We 323. Yes, However We Must First
Know Their Time Ended In 9/9/99. Break The Spell That Makes Us Lust
320. They Are Getting Back What After All He Took From Us, And
They Did To Other People All Over Give Them Back Their Four Ghost
The World. They Rob, Steal, Pillage Spells, "Gospel", The 4 Synoptic
Other Races Of People's Resources. Gospels, 1. The Old Testament, 2.
321. They Leave Them In Poverty The Psalms, 3. The New Testament,
To Die. Now Nature Is Doing That 4. The Qur'an (Koran),
To Them In The Form Of 324. And The Beliefs That Came
Tornadoes, Twisters, Hurricanes, With Them, Which Is A Symbol Of
Hitting The Western Hemisphere Our Mental And Physical Death.
And Predominately All Caucasian 325. We Lost Sight And Vision Of
Environments. Self And Kind. Sight, Physical, And
322. Now Look At The Coming In Vision, Spiritual.
Suns And Daughters Of The 326. These 4 Synoptic Gospels
Ancient Ones. Was Symbolic Of The Four Sons Of
*How Our Children Are Waking Haru (Heru, Horus), 1. Imsety, 2.
Up. Qebehsenuf, 3. Hapi, 4.
*How We Are Taking Over In Duamutef.
Sports And In Scholastics. 327. The Four Canopic Jars Used
*How We Are Breaking Away At The Death Rite In Egipt.
From Their Religious Beliefs And 328. They Place Their Evil Forces
Faiths, And Finding Our Way Back Into Your Body Organs Through
Home To Our True Identity As Breathing Your Breath Of Life, ("I
Ancient Egiptians. Breathed Into Man The Breath Of Life",
*How We Are Breaking Away That's Physical Life, The Beginning
From Their Drugs And Their Lude Of Your Hell, His Heaven), Then
Lifestyles And Their Evils Into Your Blood And Your Four
Worldwide. Major Organs. 1. Liver, 2.
*You Can See Nubian People Intestines, 3. Lungs, 4. Stomach,
Beginning To Realize The Devil Is In And Kills Our Original Creative
Human Form, Forces.
329. Physical Birth Is Our Spiritual
Death.
330. Each Of These Organs Were
Protected And Preserved In Small

227
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Canopic Jars At Death In Ancient
Egipt, And Symbolized The Four
Sons Of Haru "Horus". Question: How Many Kinds Of
331. Imsety With A Person's Head Spirit Is There?
Guarded The Liver, Qebehsenuf
With A Falcon Head Guarded 336. There Are Many Kinds Of
Intestines, Hapi With A Baboon Spirit. 1. Ether, 2. Ghost, And These
Head, Guarded The Lungs, And Forces Represent The Opposites Of
Duamutef With A Jackal Head, The Same Thing, Spirit Force.
Guarded The Stomach. 337. One, The Living, And The
332. Only The Heart, Which The Other, The Dead.
Mummy Would Need When It Was 338. The Truth, The Liar, The
Judged In The Next World Was Black, The White, Sun, For The Sun
Left. Sits In Darkness, And Moon, Yet
The Moon Is Bathed In Light, And
Has None Of Its Own.
Question: What Is The Spirit 339. As They Have No Soul, Inner
And How Does An Incarnation Light Of Their Own.
Take Place? 340. They're Like Vampires, Drain
You Of Your Soul, And So On.
333. They Make You, Through
Subliminal Messages, Lose A Sense
Of Self Worth. 1. Self Love, 2. Self Question: Why Is It Said That
Indentity, 3. Self Awareness, 4. Self Tammahu's Have No Soul?
Respect. They Lie To Us About Us.
They Are The Liar, L.I.A.R. 341. Many People Wonder Why
334. The Spirit Force Of Evil Is The Expression, Caucasians Have
The Liar, (Bible, Proverbs 17:4, John No Soul Exist, And Associate It
8:44, Their God. "You Are Of Your With Their Lack Of Emotional
Father, The Devil, He Was A Liar And Expression Through Music And
Killer..."), And Gets Into Your Being Dance.
According To The Ancients, And 342. But In Fact, It Goes Deeper
Makes You A Liar. A Spirit (Good Than That. The Word For Soul Is
Or Evil) Is Conscious Gases That Also Sol For Sun, So When They
Can Reproduce Spirit Gases From Call Black People, (Solar Plex
Blood And Water In Order To People), Soul People (People With
Emanate. Rhythm, And Emotional
335. They Call It Getting The Holy Expression), They Are In Fact
Ghost, Which Is Being Possessed. Calling You Sun People Or Re's
228
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
People. Egiptians. The Sun Agrees "Spirit") In Them Any More, Because Of
With Black People, But Disagrees The Children Of Israel").
With Pale Or Caucasians. It's 344. So, Within Their Own
Burning And Even Killing These Records, They Speak Of The
Soul-Less Or Sunless People By The Possibility Of The Soul Leaving.
Skin Disease Cancer, As In The The 345. Then If We Turn To The
Zodiac Sign. When The Whole 23rd Psalms, Verse 3, It Reads: "He
Galaxy Crosses The Zodiac In Two Restoreth My Soul".
Opposite Points, Cancer, The Sun, 346. In This Quote Nephesh Is
Or High Point And Capricorn. Used, The Word For Spirt And Self.
These Are Your Tropical Points. 347. They Will Cry For Eachother,
The Sun's Glorious Course Called But They Have No Concern For No
The Gate Way To The Sun Cycle, Other Race.
The Royal Arch Through Which We 348. Just Like A Dog Will Cry For
All Past. The Gate To Heaven. He Another Dog, But You Will Never
Who Is Born Of The Sun In The See A Dog Crying For A Rabbit.
Last Days Is The True Savior. The 349. The Same Way The Tammahu
Sun Of Righteousness Comes With Will Not Cry For A Dead Nubian,
Healing On His Wings. This Is That Oriental, Hispanic, Etc., Even If
Very Day And A Healing Is The Sun They Killed Them.
For Black People And A Curse For 350. They Have No Care For No
Pale People. No Sun, No Soul. One But Their Race, Or Their
343. They Even Record It In Their Specie.
Own Bible As Their Souls Leaving 351. It's An Animal Instinct, Not
Them, As Their Spirit, When In Fact An Emotion.
The Hebrew Word In The Quote Is 352. They Instinctively Respond
Rooakh For "Wind" As In Soul, To Eachother The Way Wolves
Breath, Life, Not Nephesh, As In Remain In Packs, Or Tigers And
Spirit And Self. (Joshua 5:1, And I Lions, All Stay In Groups Or Packs.
Quote: And It Came To Pass, When 353. Most Of Your Blood Eating
All The Kings Of The Amorites, Which Carnivorous Animals By Nature
Were On The Side Of Jordan Westward, Hunt And Run In Packs.
And All The Kings Of The Canaanites, 354. This Is Why Tammahus
Which Were By The Sea, Heard That Form Clubs, Army, Even Country
The Yhwh "Lord" Had Dried Up The Clubs, Or Police Academy, Etc.
Waters Of Jordan From Before The 355. They Function Better In
Children Of Israel, Until We Were Passed Packs Like Baboons.
Over, That Their Heart Melted, Neither 356. To Have A Spirit Or
Was There Rooakh "Soul (Nephesh Nephesh, And To Be Living

229
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Hayya, Is Not The Same As Having 369. They Think To Be In The
A Soul. Struggle Was An Imprisonment.
357. Soul Is The Existence Of 370. When They Rejoin The World
Deity In The Being. Of Evil They Are Happy Because
358. The Law Of Concern, Of They Are No Longer Fighting
Responsibility To Other Living Against Evil Forces.
Teachers. 371. They Have Become One Of
359. Nuwaupians By Nature Have Them, To Aid Them, To Work For
That Soul And Care For All Others. And With Them.
360. Canaanites On The Other 372. So They Really Think They
Hand Put Their Pets Above Other Are Free, And Their Body Is, But
Humans. Their Soul Is Not.
361. In Particularly The Dog, 373. Regardless Of Whether It Is
Which When Written In Dilexia Or Ether Or Ghost.
Backwards, Comes Out To Be God. 374. Of Course, A Spirit Is Good
362. The Dog, God Is Anubu Or To Those It Helps And Evil To
Anubis, The Jackal Dog. Those It Harms.
375. Like White Magic, Spirit Force
Of Evil, And Black Magic, Spirit
Question: How Do You Know Force Of Good.
Good Spirit From Evil Spirit? 376. Once A Black Person Returns
To Their World And Way Of
363. Whether A Spirit Is Good Or Thinking White Magic Has
Evil Depends On Whom It Is For Triumphed Over Them And All
Or Against. Their Family And Seed, All Alive
364. A Spirit Can Be Good At One And Dead.
Time And Evil At Another Time.
365. As People Change From
Good Force To Evil Force. Question: How Are They
366. Black Or White. Like Night Produced?
And Day. A Person Can Be With
And For You One Moment, Then 377. Ether Can Produce Ghost,
Be Turned Against You In An But Ghost Cannot Produce Ether,
Instant. Just As Black People Can Produce
367. It Is Considered A Good White People, Or Albino, But
Spirit To Those It's For And An Evil Albino Cannot Produce Black
Spirit To Those It Is Against. People.
368. When They Return To The
Evil Force They Feel Free.

230
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
378. They Need You To Want To Other Races, Being The First Of All
Be Them In That Way They Get Other Races Found On This Planet,
Your Soul Seed. Says Archaeologists.
379. You Become Dead, Cut Off 387. The Last Race By Skin Color,
From The Black Mind. That Is Melanin Recessive, Is The
Transparent Ghost Race, Falsely
Called The White Race, Who Is The
Question: What Is Ghost Used Albino, Leper The Grafted Man,
For? Made Man, Man's Kind, The
Caucasoid Race.
380. Fear, Fright, Terror, Horror. 388. They Are The Ghost Race.
Scare Tactics Is Their Game. They Are Zombies, Walking Dead
381. To Scare You Into Submission Without Souls.
To His Spook God, Which Is A 389. Ghost Is Spirit, The God Of
Spirit Ghost, Or The After Life, A The Lepers And They Through Fear
Dead Being. And Control Spell Bind All Other
382. If You Don't Do What It Says Races With Their White Magic And
In One Of Its Gospels, Old Turn All Other Against The Black
Testament, Psalms, New Testament, Race Of Deity, Their Own Mothers
And Qur'an, You Will Suffer Your And Fathers.
Soul In All For Eternal Damnation, 390. Therefore Ghost Is Spirit
Purgatory, Hell Or Hellenism. (The God) Of Albino Caucasians,
383. They Have You Believing In And Thereby Spell Binds Others For
The Unseen, Gods And Demons, Caucasians, Used It All In The
Angels And Spooks. Words You Spell.
384. Having Faith In The 391. And Ether Is The Soul (The
Unsubstantiated Power That Has Deity) Of Black People, Soul People.
Not Been Proved To Exist, 392. According To The Ancient
Spookism, Nor Harmed You. They Egiptians Ether Looks Like Fire Re,
Harm You Each Day Of Your Life. Ra, The Sun Or Black Smoke.
393. The Black Corona That
Surrounds The Sun, People Of The
Question: What Do They Use? Sun. And Ghost Looks Like Fog.
394. Ghost Is Water, Soul Is
385. The Negroid Or Black Race Unquenchable Fire, Solar Plex,
Can Produce All Other Races, But Central Sun.
No Race Can Produce Black People. 395. An Albino Goes Through A
386. Black People Are The Parents, Ghost Process During His Or Her
The Mother And Father Of All Gestation Period In The Mother's

231
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Womb, And Their Skin Is Results In Outlandish Sexual
Transparent, And That Process Activity.
Greatly Lessens Color Pigmentation 404. Liver Spots, Elephantitis, And
Or Melanin In The Skin. Skin Cancer.
396. When The Child Is An 405. So Many Of Them Breathe
Offspring Of Black Parents, He Or Out Of Their Mouth. As You
She Has Pigment Or Are Melaninite Breathe In They Are Breathing Out.
Children Of The Sun. 406. Sucking Up Your Life Force.
397. The Moon God Is The Ghost So Your Own Blood Can Become
Spirit. The Sun God Is The Soul. One Of Them Like A Vampire.
407. Your Best Friend, Mate,
Boyfriend, Girlfriend, Husband,
Question: Can You Explain How Your Parents, Brother, Sister And
They Enter The Body? All Others That Can Get Near To
You, They Can Change On You In
398. Yes Of Course. Since Spirits An Instance.
Are Gas Forces, They Can Enter A 408. They Are With You, And For
Person's Body At Will Called Walk You One Moment And Against You
Ins And Leave At Will, Just Walk The Next. Just That Quick, Become
Out. Possessed.
399. You Breathe Them In
Through Your Mouth With A Kiss
Or Through Your Nostrils, Nose, Question: Is That Why There
Breath. Are Black People On White
400. They Have A Form Of People's Side Against Self And
Leprosy Called Hansen's Or Ham's Kind?
Son's, Disease, Mucous Blockage Of
Their Nose. 409. Yes They Can Be With You
401. The Mucous Membranes Of Then Up And Leave And Have A
The Nose, Mouth And Throat Are Full Change Of Heart To Become
Invaded By Large Numbers Of One Of The Devils, Black Devils,
Organisms. Of, For And By Them Against Their
402. Because Of Damage To The Own.
Nerves Muscles Become Paralyzed,
Which Results In The Loss Of
Sensations. Question: Do They Always Know
403. This Explains Their Spastic It?
Movements In Their Dance And
Their Lack Of Sensation Which

232
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
410. No Not Always. Sometimes Question: What About The
The Evil Spirit Force Step In And Hearing Of Voices In The Head?
Out Of Them Before They Realize
What Happened And They Turn On 418. Many Are Contacted By
Those That Loved And Care For Hearing Voices In Their Heads Or
Them, And Other Times They Feel Seeing Visions (Mental Contact).
They Are Doing The Right Thing. 419. During The Mental Contacts
411. It's The Six Forces Of The Sex There May Be An Offer Made For
Force That Rules Them. The Person To Accept Or Reject, A
412. It's Always Their Needs And New Job, Money, Things, Love.
Wants Which Turn Them Into Black 420. The Person Usually Accepts
Devils. The Offer Because He Or She Is
Usually In No Position To Reject It
Already Being Unhappy And
Question: What About The Depressed And Having So Many
Incarnations? Needs And Desires Of Their Own.
421. They Feel You Are Holding
413. An In Incarnation Takes Place Them Back So They Begin To Hate
In This Same Way. The Truth And Struggle. They Just
414. A Person Can Be Engendered Give In.
Only By Fleshly Father And Fleshly
Mother, Their Parents Are Or Were
Evil So It's In Their Genes, Because Question: What Happens Next?
They Are Conceived In Lust And
Pleasure, Unlike The Original 422. When The Offer Is Accepted
Purpose. The Spirit Forces Themselves Make
415. So They Become Products Of Physical Contact And They Become
Greed, Lust And Pleasure. Incarnate.
416. What Their Parents Were 423. They Just Brush By Or Shake
Thinking And Engaging At Your Hand Or Touch You Flesh To
Conception, Self Sexual Flesh, It's Called The Laying On Of
Gratification. Hands, And Seep Into You.
417. And The Person Is 424. In Church, Greeting In Islam,
Predestined To Become A Devil Or An Excuse To Touch, Lean Or
A God "Deity". Make Physical Contact.
425. They Just Have To Touch
You Or Your Children.
426. Then There Is The Kiss Of
Death. Seeping Through The Flesh
233
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
To The Lungs And From There Within The Oppressed, Dispatched
They Dilate Themselves Throughout There By Leviathan.
Your Being. 436. Levi "Joined To" The Same
427. The Flesh And Blood Of The Meaning As Religion, Re Ligion
Person. Then The Person And The From Latin Religio "To Bind, Tie, To
Spirit Forces (The God Of White Join To". But He Can Be Stopped
Magic) Are The Same Image And (Isaiah 27:1).
Likeness. 437. Note That Leviathan Is Only
428. The Evil God Or Ghost Spirit In Their Holy Book 4 Times.
Force Becomes The Image Of The 438. Their 4 Gospels, 1. Job 41:1,
Person And They Work For Evil 2. Psalms 74:14, 3. Psalms 104:26,
Against Self And Kind. 4. Isaiah 27:1.
429. They Make You Think To 439. And He Will Be Slayed In The
Kiss Is A Sign Of Affection, But In End Of Days.
Reality It Is A Link To Infection 440. You Stand At The 3rd Gate
And Disease. Trying To Get To The 9th Gate.
430. The Mouth Has More Disease 441. You Level With Him Through
Than Any Other Part Of The The 6th Gate.
Human Body. Kiss In Dislexia Or 442. And This Means Although
Backwards Is Ssik, Or Sick - Ness. Those Negative Spirit Forces Are
Within The Captives, From 3 To 9,
They Are Enemies Of The Captive,
Question: Can We Beat These That Is You, And Thereby Working
Negative Spirit Forces? Against Yourselves, By Compelling
You To Do The Very Thing That
431. Yes. Look At Nega-Tive, And Are Against You And In Turn
See Nigger-Tive. Being A Negro - Enforces The Spell Of Self
Nigger Must Be Overcome. Ignorance.
432. Nigger Or Negra Means Black 443. It Is A Very Depressive
In Latin Or The Roman Language. Position For A Race Of People To
433. You Have To Accept What Be In Having Forces Within Self
He Says About You And Kind, Then Constantly Working Against Self
You Are Dead. The Living Dead, A And Kind, But That Is The Position
Zombie. Of The Oppressed.
434. Stop Running From Nigger, 444. And The Only Way To
Which Means Black, Just Stop Being Destroy The Negative Forces That
Negroidly. Maintain That Position Is Destroy
435. Part Of The Evil Spell Is The The Negativism (Ignorance) That
Power Of The Negative Self Image

234
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Those Negative Forces Live And 451. The Muslim Who Lives At A
Strive On. Sun Spot Called Mecca Garb The
445. The Acceptance Of Right Ka'aba A Cube Shaped Building,
Knowledge, Right Wisdom And Which They Worship, That Houses
Right Overstanding Of Self And A Black Stone Which They Kiss,
Kind Is The Solution, For That With What They Call The Kiswa, A
Leads To Right Thinking And Black Drape And As The Sun Is The
Right Thinking Leads To Right Center Of The Solar System, This
Feeling, Emotions And Actions. Ka'aba Is The Center Or Sun Of
446. You Are Sun People, As Such Islamic Solar System.
You Are Related To The Sun. One 452. And They All Worship It,
Of The Caucasian's Tricks Is Color. While It Generates Or Receives
Energy From The Sun, As Black
Does.
Question: What Does Color Have 453. So They Will Tell You That
To Do With It? Black Is Hot, And Shouldn't Be
Worn, Because They Know That It
447. Firstly There Is Not But Stores Energy From The Sun And
Three Colors, Called The Primary Rejuvenates The Sun Children.
Colors. They Are Red, Yellow And 454. Our Traditional Garbs In
Blue. The Others Are Mixtures. Ancient Egipt Was Black. We Only
448. White Is The Absence Of Wore White In Death Rituals And
Color, Symbolizes Paleness, Funerals.
Frailness, Thin Or Weak. It's Not A
Color.
449. Black Is The Presence Of All Question: Can You Reform This
Colors, And Symblizes Dense, Devil?
Matter, Intense, And Strength.
450. Caucasians Will Try To 455. No. He Was The Devil, Is
Decieve You Into Avoiding The Sun The Devil And Always Will Be The
By Making You Wear All Sorts Of Devil, Whether He Is Smiling In
Colors, But Their Wisest Elders Your Face Or Frowning Behind
Called The Knights Of Templar Your Back. He Is Evil By Nature.
Garb Themselves In Black And
Have Passed This Secret On To The Question: Isn't This Racism?
Ministers, Pastors And Reverends,
But Maintain The Little White Lie, 456. No, It's History, Better Yet
As The Collar. Our-Story. It's Logged.

235
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Who Are The Hyksos 463. His Second Was Anamim,
Today? The Anamims Tribes Of Today,
And His Third Lehabim, His Fourth
457. The Curse Seed Of Canaan. Naphtuhim, His Fifth Pathrusim,
The Hyksos Came From The Seed The Ptahites, His Sixth Casluhim,
Of Mizraim, Son Of Ham, Son Of Produced The Philistines, Who
Noah. Became The Hyksos Of Gerar, And
His Seventh Caphtorim.
464. From Mizraim's Migration,
Question: Can You Explained From Sumer Into Tama-Re Mis-
That Further? Called Kemet, From Kem Or
Kham, Then Mis-Called Ta-Nehisi
458. Mizraim Is The Biblical (Zeti) "Sudan" In The Passage Of
Choice Of Names For Egipt. Like Gerar, He Encounters Canaanites
Many Semetic Words Kham Came 465. He Mixes His Seed And
From Egiptian Kem Meaning Produces An Offspring Called
"Black" And Cush, Meaning "Black" Casluhim, (Genesis 10:14), Who
From Egiptian Kis, So Also The Birthed The Philistines Or
Name Mizraim Is From Mizr From Palestinians (Genesis 10:14), And
The Egiptian A'aferti "Pharaoh" This Seed Produced The Lighter
Named Menes. Skinned Straight Haired 7 Ether
459. The Meaning Of Mizraim Is Beings Later Known As The Heka
"Double Straits", Or "Land Of The Two Khasut "Hyksos".
Rivers". 466. The Philistine Or Palestinian
460. That's The Habiru "Hebrew" Invaders Of That Land Are Also
Definition For The Word. Called Heka Khasut "Hyksos , The
461. How Can This Apply To The Shepherd Kings."
Person? If The Hebrews Name 467. The Word Hyksos Means
People For Incidents Such As 'Chieftain Of A Foreign Land' .
Abraham, "Father Of Many Nations", 468. The Word Palestine Comes
Jacob "He Who Supplants Another", From Philistine A Migrant Of
Isaac "Laughter", How Does One Be Philistine A Descendant Of
A Hebrew And Be Named Land Of Mizraim Who Mingled With A
Two Rivers And Not Even Phoenician Caucasian Canaanites Or
Originally Be From That Land. Clean Lepers Of Gerar To Become
462. Yet This Person Called Hyksos, The Pale Skinned, Straight
Mizraim Fathered Ludim, Who Haired, 6 Ether Beings .
Mixed In With Shem, His Uncle's
Fourth Son Lud.
236
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
469. The Story Of Genesis 475. This Is Noah's Grandson
26:1-11 Is The Same Exact Story As Canaan Son Of Ham And
Genesis 20:2-18 . Halima .
470. Abimelek Of Gerar Was A 476. The Beast Uses Many People
Descendant Of Canaan As Seen In Of Your Race As Tools, Or Tokens.
Genesis 10:19 . 477. His Greatest Tool Is His
471. Gerar Is A City That Is An Mistranslation Of The Bible From
Ancient Inland Town Southeast Of Hebrew, Called Old Testament
Gaza On The Hill Country, Which And The New Testament Into
Was Occupied By The Mulatto Greek, Then Into Bad English;
Group Of The Egiptians Called And The Koran From Syriac,
Hyksos Of Phoenicia . Arabic Into Persian Script, Then
472. But The Very Name Egipt French And Then Into Bad
From Greek Egyptos Meant "Burnt English.
Face, Over Tanned", That Was
Speaking About The Hyksos Which
Means "Chieftain Of A Foreign Land." Question: Who Was The God Of
473. That Is Both Olive Green The Phoenicians?
And Dark Olive Brown People In
Time Immemorial Before The 478. Melchizedek Was An
Philistinian Phoenicians Intrusion Incarnation Of The Most High God
Into On Nehisi "Nubia", Ta-Zeti Elyown, Also Called Elyon And El,
"Sudan", Which They And Their Even Elyown Elyown El.
Greek Spartic Brothers Call Therefore, Melchizedek Or Malak,
Egyptos, "Place Of Burnt Faces" Angel Zeded Or Zodok, "Justice"
Today Egipt, Or Misr, Also Called Was An Incarnated Spirit Being Into
Tama-Re, Ta-Merry, And Alkebu- Flesh To Dwell Among The
Lan, From The Land Gerar, As The Phoenician.
Hyksos Mixed Seed. 479. The Original Phoenicians
Were Aryans, A Sanskrit Word. Now
Used By The Canaanite.
Question: Who Were The 480. You Have Hindu Or Indian
Phoenicians? And Albino Indians Called The
European Original, White Man As
474. The History Of The Albino The Original Asiatic Black Man Is
Phoenicians Began After The Flood, The Indian Hindu, Black With 6
As Recorded In The Gilgamesh Ether Straight Hair. Christ Is Their
Epics And Utnafishtim, Known As God And He Was Called Krisna
Noah Or Nuh.

237
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
And Melchizedek And Was The Lunar, From The Indian To The
Same Being Of The Same Order. Caucasian Constituted Christianity.
481. And To The Hindu People
Abraham, Isaac And Jacob Are Question: Why The Symbol Of
Another Way Of Saying Brahma, The Cross?
Vishnu, And Siva.
482. Because The Jewish Doctrine 488. Because This Meant That The
Is A Extraction Of The Hindu Power Of The Cross, (A Trial,
Religion, Judaism Is Another Way Affliction, Frustration, To Cross
Of Saying Ham, Shem And Japheth. Someone, To Deceive, To Trick
483. So Abraham Was A Chaldean, Someone, Which Created The
Phoenician And The Phoenician Double Cross, To Cross People A
And Hindu Received Their Second Time),
Knowledge Of From The Egiptian 489. It Also Had Been Passed
Christos, Krisna Is From Egiptian From The Indians, And Gradually
Karast, The Anointed. Decreased, And The Power Of The
484. The Egiptian Word For Caucasians Increased.
Christ, By Way Of The Heka 490. So You See The Cross On
Khasut, The "Hyksos", The Churches, Graves, And The Hospital
Canaanite And Canaan's 11th Son As The Caduceus (Wing Staff With
Was Hammath, (Genesis 10:18) A Two Serpents Around It Carried By
Blackman. So You Also Had Black Hermes "Tehuti") Or Seducer,
Canaanites And Black Phoenician, Medusa Which They Got From
Who All Mixed Their Seeds With The Hindu Indian As The Symbol
The Cursed Seed Of 6 Ether Albinos Of The Kundalini, "Coiled Serpent",
Becoming Melanin Recessive. The Symbol Used By The Medical
Field.
491. Medical Simply Means Proper
Question: What Was The Measurement Or Mixture Of Herbs
Original Symbol Of The Hindus? For Cures, And This Is Done In
Establishment Referred To As A
485. The Word Hindu Is From Hospital, Which Comes From
Hind, Often Meaning "Indian". Hospes "Guest" And Talis, From
486. The Indians Both East And The Semetic Talasm, Which
Those Who Came To The West Had Becomes Talisman "Consecration".
The Cross The Swastika. 492. Hospitals Are Not Places Of
487. Even The Ankh And Tau In Cure But Of Care, To Be
Time Immemorial, But The Passing Hospitable.
Of The Cross By The Moon God

238
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Who Is The Curse Nofret) While Still In The Ark With
Seed Of Canaan Today? Shem (Khafre) And His Wife
Faatin , And Japheth (Menkaure)
493. They Are The Descendants And His Wife Ifat. The Bible Story
Of Canaan, The Caucasians, Who On Noah And His Sons Were
Have Mixed Their Seed Throughout Altered From The Original Story Of
The Middle East, Coming Down Khufu And His Sons, And Even
From The Caucus Mountain, The Flood Of Your Bible Was The
Between The Caspian And Black Drought Of Khufu's Time. The
Sea, A Beast Of A Man. Muslim, Islamic Scholars And Their
494. Canaan Comes From The Qur'an Claims Canaan Was Noah's
Aramic (Hebrew) Word Kena'an, Son Who Died In The Flood When
Which Means "Low Lander" (Genesis The Waves Overtook Him, Giving
13:12). Noah Four Sons, Just As In
495. The Greek Word Is Egyptology Gives Khufu.
Chanaanaios And Means , "The 500. The Eloheem's Main
Name Of Ancient Inhabitants Of Concern Is Libana's (Canaan's)
Palestine Before Its Conquest By The Birth . Ham (Rededef) And
Israelites In Christ's Time Phoenician" Haliyma Could Not Have Had
(Matthew 15:22). Finally The Three Sons Within The One Year
Ashuric/Syriac (Arabic) Word For That They Were In The Ark.
Canaan Is Kan'aan. 501. Cush , Mizraim , And Phut
496. The Canaanite Race That Were Grown Men Who Helped To
Exists Today Is The Offspring Of Contribute In Building The Ark .
Canaan. 502. The Descendants O F
Libana (Canaan) Lost
Consciousness Of Themselves And
Question: Who Was Canaan? Began To Live A Beastly Way Of Lif
E. They Became Savages.
497. Canaan Was The Son Of 503. They Took Over The Land
Haliyma And Ham . Ham, Of Kadmon (Genesis 15:18-21)
Which Means "Burnt Black," Was And It Became, Known As The
The Son Of Naamah And Noah , Land Of Canaan It Was Not
Who Was Khufu. Originally The Land Of Canaan, But
498. Haliyma Is The Daughter Of The Land Of Kadmon, For Canaan
Shakar (An Enosite), Also Known Was The 4th Son And Mizraim, The
As Yubin, And Anis (A Cuthite). Second.
499. She Gave Birth To Canaan 504. Out Of Mizraim Came The
(Rahotep, With His Canaanite Wife Philistim "Philistines, Immigrants",

239
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Who Migrated From Caphtor 507. Hell Is What They Taught In
"Crete" In Greece And Took The Their Scriptures, Bible, Qur'an.
Land, And The Kadmonites Or The
Descendants Of Kadmon, The
Original Name Of Adam, Who Were Question: Where Is Hell?
The Original Inhibitors Of The
Land Of Canaan. 508. Greece Is Called Hellas In
505. And The Name Kadmon Greek, Hell-As, So You Are Taught
Means "Easterners", A People Who To Greet Eachother By Saying Hell-
Occupied The Land Of Kadmon O, Or Hells-Omen.
When God Promised It To The 509. You Get Many Detours Such
Aramian Chaldean Abram's Seed, As In The Greek Hades "Grave",
Who Was Later Called Abraham And It Sounds Like Hey-There, Or
(Zoser) (Bible, Amos 9:7 And I Gehenna "Place Of Fire", And In
Quote: "Are Ye Not As Children Of Hebrew It's Sheol "Underworld."
The Cushites "Ethiopians" Unto Me, O 510. Note: Sheol And School, And
Children Of Israel? Saith Yhwh, The Don't Pronounce It Skool. It's The
Lord. Have Not I Brought Up Israel Out Seat Of Hell, Greece, Where Their
Of The Land Of Mitsrayim "Egipt"? Sheol Is.
And The Philistim "Philistines" From 511. Hell Is Greece, According To
Caphtor "Crete", And The Aram Their Own Words.
"Syrians" From Kir, "A Place In 512. And They Were The First
Mesopotamia"?). Devils To Invade Ancient Egipt,
506. These Canaanites Also Lived And Stole Our Teachings And
In Pelion , Also Known As Pilan , Created The 5 P's. 1. Psychology, 2.
A Mountain Region In Thessaly , Polytheism, 3. Penal System, 4.
Greece, Also In The Cities Of Politics, 5. Philosophy, The Five
Sparta, Athens, And In The Isles Pillars Of Their Faith, Four Points
Of Patmos , In The Grotto On The Base And One Raised In
Meaning "Caves" , In The The Center, Your Pyramid, Called
Aegean Sea, And This Is Where The Pythagorean Theory "Thehos",
They Began Their Homosexual Acts Greek God, The Devil's Rules And
And Barbaric Sport Arenas. Regulations On Mind Control,
Copied From The Code Of
Hammurabi Which Is Hammath-
Question: Where Did The Devil Rabi.
Come From?

240
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: How Did Canaan 518. That Is Why To This Day
Accept This Curse? They Will Order Their Flesh In
Restaurants Rare, Which Is Simply
513. He Hated It And He Hated Raw Meat.
His Black Brothers, And Married His 519. Some Even Walking On All
Sister Salha By Order Of His Father, Fours And Mingling Freely With
And He Hates Us To This Day. The Animals, Violated All The
514. Canaan Did Not Overstand Natural Laws And Defied Nature,
Why He Was Being Rejected By His And Tested God At Every Chance
Own Family, Because Of His Illness. They Get.
H Owever The Ancient Law Was, 520. They Vowed To Replace The
Any Curse Was Followed By God That Cursed Him.
Banishment. Even Nowadays If A 521. That's Why The Create Fake
Relative Or Dare Friend Contacts Blood, Tissues, Plastic Surgery,
The Aids Virus, His Own People Limbs, Hearts, Organ Replacements,
Out Of Fear Of His Contagiousness Alter Genes, Colored Contacts,
Will Shun Him Or Her. Perms, Fake Nails, And Are The
515. He Was Angry And Confused Dare Devils By Nature.
About Being Cursed As An Albino 522. When Libana (Canaan)
With Leprosy, Having Pale Diseased, Went Into The Mountains He And
Transparent Skin And Thin Yellow, She As A Tribe, A New Race Of
"Blonde" Hair (Bible, Leviticus People, Had Sex With The Animals,
Chapters 13 And 14) Giving Birth To Bestiality, Because
516. And He Was Shunned And Everyone Else Shunned Him, Thus
Persecut Ed, Because Of His Canaan/Canine, Which Is Linked To
Leprous Infectious Skin Disease The Linked To The Disease
(Bible, Leviticus 13:44), Which Hirsutism, And The Extended
Made Him Angry And He Lost His Canine Teeth, That Many Of Them
Soul As His Body Deteriorated And Have. Canaan Was Cursed With
The Disease Set In Leprosy, Leprosy.
Destroying The Nerves And Physical 523. Beast Is What They Are
Senses Became Off Time And Out Called In Their Own History Book,
Of Rhythm, So Hate Rules Them. The Bible, Jonah 3:7-9 .
517. They Are Emotionally 524. The Human Beast, The Living
Defected. And The Sun Hates Beast. The Only Animal Who Kills
Them For No Reason. The For Sport And Fun, Not Just
Descendants Of Canaan Survival. He Kills For Recreation,
Descended To The Level Of Simply To Wreck Or Destroy
Animals, Eating Raw Carcasses. Creation.

241
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
531. Take Real Stories Of Real
People Who Were Logged And Tie
Question: Why Do They Always Yourself Into It.
Use The Bible To Trace History? 532. Their Substantiateexistence
Gives You Existence.
525. Because They Made It Up To 533. So You'll Find Throughout
Fit Their Lies, To Give Themselves Religious Scriptures Of Mosesism,
A Place In The World Records Of Christism And Muhammadism,
The Past. Constant Reference To Egipt,
526. Without Their Self Created Sumerian As Babylon, Because
Bible And Qur'an, They Would These Cultures Recorded On Stone
Have No History. Tablets Or Walls Their Story.
527. Relying On Their Own Self 534. They Left Mummies,
Made Religious Scriptures That Monuments, Records Of The
Have Not Been Confirmed As Fact Goings On In Their Lives And The
As Their Interpretation Of The Male Deities In Which They Worshipped,
God Principle Responsible For All Their Relationship To The Stars,
Creation Is Not A Fact. And Genetic Cloning Or Breeding.
528. Male Being First, Women
Being Created From One Of The
Rib Bone Is A Scientific Question: Are You Saying That
Impossibility; The Scriptural Stories Are
529. To Think That An All Untrue?
Powerful Deity, Creator, Who
Moves From A Spiritual Plane, Has 535. Absolutely Unproven. They
To Reach Down Into The Physical Have Found No Evidence Of Any
Realm To Snap Out A Rib Of A Of The Stories That Your Bible And
Male To Create A Female In Itself Qur'an Propagates Daily.
In Time With Science As Advanced 536. But, The Methodology Of
As It Is Today And Technology And Tying Themselves Into Egipt And
Findings On Genetics, It Was A Sumeria Gives Them The
Matter Of When, All Of This Appearance Of Authenticity, When
Scriptural Meaning, Torah, Gospel, In Fact They Are Myths And
Qur'an Jargon Would Be Proven Fictions Added On To Your
Wrong. Original Stories Of Ancient Egipt
530. The Tactic Used By Those And Sumer, Who Were On Culture.
Who Wanted To Enforce This Spell
Of Ignorance And Belief Was
Simple.

242
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Is There Any Other Akheperkare) Supposedly Received
Source To Trace Their Past? From His God Yhwh (Huhi, Or
Tehuti) On Mount Sinai
537. Yes Many, But The Trick "Thorny/Pointed" (Sin), Horeb
Being Used Is To Tell You That ("Desert");
These Confirmed Cultures Were 542. And Later Gave Birth To
Mythological. Books Of The Prophets, The Law,
538. Yet, There Are Records, The The Kings, Known As The Old
Sumerians Had A Series Of Books Testament, Which Later Became
Recorded In Cuneiform On Tablets, The Apocrypha "Revelation",
Such As The Atra Hasis, The 543. And Four Synoptic Gospels
Gilgamesh Epics, The Enuma And Letters Of Supposedly
Elish, The Descent Of Ishtar, Apostles, Which Became Known As
Ishtar And Tammuz, Nergal And The New Testament, Which In
Arishkegal; Turn Gave Birth To The Qur'an
539. And The Ancient Egiptian "Koran" Revealed To A Descendant
Kept Records On The Walls Of The Of Abram, The Chaldean, Called
Great Obelisk, Temples, Pyramids, The Haribu "Hebrew" Abraham,
And Tombs, But Not Merely That, 544. His Arab Descendant's
They Had A Series Of Books, Named Was Ahmad, Later Changed
Scrolls, Manuscripts, Recorded On To Muhammad, And Again
Papyrus, They Are: Change To Mustafa Muhammad Al
540. Amduat, Book Of Caverns, Amin 570-632 A.D.,
Book Of The Celestial Cow, Book 545. The Original Manuscripts On
Of The Day, Book Of The Dead, Bones And Skins, Of Which Were
Book Of The Earth, Book Of Destroyed, None Of The
Fates, Book Of The Hidden, Book Informants In Any Of These Texts
Of Overthrowing Apep, Book Of Can Be Verified As Facts, Except
The Night, Books Of The References To Egipt, Sumeria And
Heavens, Books Of The Other Cultures, Interpretations,
Netherworld, Coffin Texts, Litany Miracles, Laws And Practices Are All
Of Re, Pyramid Texts. Found In The Ancient Egiptian
541. All Of Which Predate The Texts, So In Fact To Find Our True
Tanakh , Which Became The Story We Must Open Up The
Torah, Five Books Of Law That Ancient Egiptian Writings.
The So-Called Hebrew Mosheh,
Later Called Eloheem Moses And
Musa (Exodus 1:7) (Thothmose I,
Whose Throne Name Was

243
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Are The Characters In 554. The Being That Looks Down
The Bible Found In Egipt? On All Others In The Sunlight Or
The Shade. He Is There And Sees
546. Yes With Slight Alterations. All That Is Going On.
Many Of The Characters And Their 555. So Yhwh Was Huhi Who
Family Lines Repeat Themselves. Was Re, Who Created Angelic
547. Sometimes It Even Shifts Beings Called Souls Or Spirit Beings.
From Male To Female, But You See Huhi Takes Many Forms, As Re
A Similarity In The Amount Of Takes Many Forms, Khepre, Ra,
Children, Wives And Even In The And Aten Or Atun.
Way The Names Are Spelled, 556. Different Forms And
Especially This Is Found With The Expressions Of Huhi Or Re.
Line Of Cain In Genesis 4:16-22. 557. Just As The Name Joel In
548. Sometimes The Male Their Bible, Which Would Be Short
Becomes A Female, The Father For Ja And El, Or Jehovah,
Becomes A Son, And One Character Yahweh, Eloheem, Does Not Imply
In Egipt Maybe Two In The Bible. That Joel Was In Fact Yahweh And
549. Many Times There Is A Eloheem, But A Yahweh Eloheem.
Misuse Of Names By Alternated 558. Now Look At Shu Means "To
Spellings As In Set And Seth Raise", As The Wind Blow The
(Horus). Breath Of Life.
559. This Shu In Egipt Is The
Rooakh "Spirit" Or Even Soul And
Question: Can You Give Us An His Counter Part Tefnut From Tef
Example? Meaning "Moist" As Plasmatic Or
Spiritual Being.
550. Yes. If You Look Close Into 560. So Shu Is Soul And Tefnut Is
These Bible And Quranic Stories Spirit, And Your Bible And Qur'an
You Will See The Relation And Angelos, Angelic Being Or
Where They Came From. Malaaikat, Spirit Being, Who Can
551. Their Divine Father Or God Incarnate Or Personify Into Human
Yhwh Is Ihuh Or Backwards Huhi, Flesh.
The Egiptian Deity Hu, The Force 561. Now This Shu And Tefnut
Of Creative Will. Birthed, Or Grew Geb, Which
552. So You See Where Jehovah Means "Earth" Or Grown The Same
And Ja Comes From. As Adam Means "Ground, Or Earth",
553. "I" Is The "Y", The Same And Geb's Mate Was Nut And Her
Letter. And In Egipt There Was Re Name Means Liquid From Nu, Also
Or Ra, Roi, The "Seeing". Called Kha-Bewes, Which Means

244
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
"One With A Thousand Souls, Just Eve Question: Who Had This Curse
Means "Mother Of All Living" (Bible, Of Genesis 9:24-27?
Genesis 3:20).
562. They Are The Same Also The 571. Canaan The Son Of Ham,
Bible Called Eve Neqaybaw. Not Ham (Bible, Exodus 34:7).
563. You Can See Kha-Bewes
And Neqaybaw Is The Same.
564. So Adam Came From Geb Question: Why Was His Son
And Eve Came From Nut. Cursed?
565. That Would Mean Cain
"Possession" Was Set Or Sutukh And 572. Ham Thought To Have
Abel "Breath" Was Osiris Or Asaru. Sexual Intercourse With His Own
566. Then Who Would Be The Father Noah And Looked Upon His
New Son Set, Which Means Nakedness (Bible, Leviticus 18:7)
Compensation, To Pay One For This Was A Violation Of Physical
Something Done (Bible, Genesis And Spiritual Laws.
4:25), Where It States This Was The
God's Son, Not Adam's.
567. This Would Be Horus Or Question: Just What Was This
Haru Had To Pay Set Back For Curse Of Canaan "Low,
Killing His Father, A Compensation. Depressed, Lowland"?
568. The Devil Satan Or Nakhash
Was Apep, "Apophis", The Serpent.
569. Moses Was Thothmoses I, 573. This Curse Was Of Two
His Brother Aaron Was Ineni, His Parts. Servitude And Skin Disease.
Wife Zipporah His Midianite Wife 574. The Curse That Was Placed
(Exodus 2:21) Was Ahmose, Raasi On Ham's Fourth Son Libana
His Cushite Wife (Numbers 12:1) (Canaan) Was Servitude And The
Was Mutnodjmet. Curse Of Leprosy, Something That
570. His Sons Gershon And Will Be Mentioned Later On In This
Eleazer Was Wadjmose And Scroll.
Amonmose Eleazer (Exodus 575. It Is A Known Fact That
18:3). Hatshepsut Was Equivalent Ham Was Nubian (Psalms 106:21-
To His Sister Merris, Miriam, 22) And All Of The Descendants
(Number 12:1) Not His Daughter. Before Him Were Nubian Also, Just
By Virtue Of The Fact That The
Meaning Of The Name Kham
[Ham] Is "Burnt Black" In The
Aramic (Hebrew) Language (Psalms
78:51, 105:23-27) .
245
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
576. It Lets You Know What 584. He Gathered The Grapes
Color He Was. From His Vineyard, Made Wine And
577. During The Period Of The Drank It.
"Enlightenment ", When The 585. He Did Not Know The
Caucasian Was Emerging From His Effects The Wine Would Have On
Dark Ages Into A Period Of Him, So He Became Drunk And
Scientific Thought, The Efforts To Laid Down In His Tent Unclothed .
Study Man, Mankind And His 586. Ham Allowed His
Different Races Scientifically Came Countenance To Drop And Was In
Into Conflict With The Scriptur Es. A Weak State After The Argument
578. The Biggest Debates Were He Just Had With His Wife
Those Concerning Th E Nubian Haliyma , Daughter Of Anis And
Man's Place In Nature. Shakar .
579. The Black-Hamite Concept 587. It Was Easy For The Devil
Was Steadily Losing Ground. To Possess Him In His Weak State
580. In Genesis 9:25, Noah Of Mind. 588. Thus, Iblis "The
Had Only Cursed Libana Rebellious One" Sent One Of His
(Canaan). Disagreeable Beings In The Form
581. Scientific Racial Of Anak , The Queen Of Nod
Classifications Established A Separat (Nudity), To Ham And Possessed
E Hamitic Branch Of The Him.
Caucasian Race And Named 589. Ham While In His Father's
Canaanites Black . Tent, Mocked His Father's
582. The Caucasian Knows Nakedness.
Exactly Who He Is And Where He 590. Then He Looked Upon The
Came From, But He Has Skillfully Nakedness Of His Father With The
Danced In And Out Of The Truth, Thought Of Sexuality And
Adding And Subtracting Anything Fornicatio N . Yet, He Did Not
That He Doesn't Like And Making Lay With His Father .
Himself Whatever He Wants! 591. Although Ham Was Not
Acting On His Own Will, He Still
Violated The Laws Of The Most
Question: How Did Libana High (Leviticus 18:7).
(Canaan) Come About And Why
Was He Cursed? Question: Why Was Ham
583. Noah, Being One Of The Looking Upon His Father's
First Farmers, Planted A Vineyard . Nakedness, Considered Such A
"Great Sin" If He Did Not
Actually Lay With His Father?

246
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
599. Yes, The Other Curse Was A
592. The Reason Is That It Was Spiritual Curse .
By Ham That The 200 Fallen 600. It Was The Spiritual Curse
Disagreeable Eloheem Were Able Which Haylal Immediately
To Get Back Into Qi (The Planet Received When He Rebelled Against
Earth). Kadmon (Adam).
593. After Ham Had Opened 601. The Physical Curse Meant
Himself Up By Having An That A Race Of Beings Would
Argument With His Wife, Haliyma, Manifest In The Physical With The
He Allowed Anak, The Queen Of Spirit Of The Demons .
The Disagreeable Eloheem To 602. This Race Of Beings
Possess Him . (Lepers) Didn't Manifest Until The
594. After Noah Awoke From Birth Of Libana.
His Sleep, He Knew Immediately 603. He Was Named Such
What His Son Had Done To Him . Because He Was Pale And White
595. Therefore, He Placed A Like Snow; Later He Was Called
Curse On Ham's Fourth Son, Canaan, The Grandson Of Noah.
Who Was Called Canaan, W Hose 604. When The Bible Was Copied
Real Name Was Libana . From The Original The Name
596. Remember, The Curse Was Libana Was Forgotten, As Were
Not Put On Ham, As Many Are Most Of The Names Of The People
Lead To Believe, But On His Fourth In The Bib Le.
Son Canaan . 605. What You Are Being Taught
597. Noah Told Ham , "The In Your Bible As The Names Of
Curse Will Be Upon Your Son People Are Really Just Titles.
Canaan " Who Was Originally 606. The Formation Of Some Of
Named Libana By His Parents The Caucasians Are A Result Of
Ham And Haliyma At His Eighth The Physical Curse (Leprosy) That
Day Birth Ceremony In Which A Was Placed On Libana.
Child Receives Their Nam E. 607. However, Not All Of The
598. His Name Was Later Caucasians Came From Leprosy .
Changed T O Canaan By You Have Three Types Of
Flugelrods When He Moved Up Caucasians, And They Ar E: 1.)
From The Lowland To The Caves. Blonde Hair, Blue Eyes; 2.) Red
Hair, Green Eyes; And 3.) Dark
Hair, Dark Eyes.
Question: Was There Another 608. This Curse That Was Placed
Kind Of Curse? On Libana Was Also A Genetic

247
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
One, Which Means That It Took 618. They Are The Science Of The
Place In The Genes Of Man . Chromosomes In Reverse And
609. This Was The Removal Of They Appear In Pairs, Multiples Of
His Melanin, Which Cut Off His Whole Numbers Or Fractions,
Family Ties With The Anunnaqi Called Strands.
Eloheem . This Is A Genetic 619. The Anunnaqi Have 50 Pairs
Disorder Called Albinism . Of Chromosomes, 25 And 25, The
610. For A Person To Be Born Shaggies Missing Link Has 49 Pairs
With Albinism, Both Parents Must Of Chromosomes, 24 1/2 And 24
Be Albinos. 1/2, The Chimpanzee Has 48 Pairs
611. It Affects One Out Of Every Of Chromosomes 24 And 24,
Several Thousand Humans And 620. Those With Down's
Other Animals. Syndrome, Abnormal Humans Have
612. This Is Because Both Parents 47 Pairs Of Chromosomes, 23 1/2
Do Not Possess Any Of The And 23 1/2.
Dominant Genes. 621. Normal Human Beings, Who
613. The Science Of Heredity In Is Not So Normal, Being Incomplete
Human Genetics Explores The Has 46 Pairs Of Chromosomes 23
Transmission Of Physical Traits And And 23, And On The 6th Of The
Other Characteristics Of Parents To 23.
Their Offspring . 622. They Should Live To Not
614. The Basic Units In The Less Than 120 Years And The Key
Complex Process Are Called Genes, Unlocking This Defect To Perfect Is
And These Make Up The To Overcome The Disease Called
Chromosome . Age.
615. The Basic Chemical Of The 623. This Can And Will Be Done
Gene , Dna (Deoxyribonucleic Through This Formula.
Acid), Enables The Gene To Carry 624. The 6th Of The 23 Pairs Of
All The Information Of Heredity. The Normal Human Chromosomes
The Chromosomes Occur In Pairs. Is The Key To Mapping Out The
616. Normally, Each Of Us Have Genes And Cures For This Disease,
23 Pairs Of Chrom Osomes. Death As You Know It.
617. The "Sex Chromosomes"
Carry Genes That The Determine Question: If Both Parents Had
Other Characteristics; Because These To Carry A Defected Albino Gene
Others Are On The Sex Trait Within Their Genes, How
Chromosomes, The Characteristics Did Canaan Become An Albino?
They Determine What Are Called
Sex-Linked Characteristics.

248
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
625. Libana (Canaan) Became An Question: How Can Fear And
Albino Because Both Of His Parents Stress Mess Up Your Genes?
Had Recessive Gene S.
626. Ham And Haliyma, His 632. Stress And Fear Can Cause
Parents, Were Descendants Of Many Complications In The Way A
Cuthites. Person's Body May Respo Nd.
627. Let's Take A Look At The 633. In Humans, If Danger Is
Genealogy Of Libana . Libana's Perceived, The Pituitary Gland
Parents, As Stated Earlier Were Releases A Hormone Called
Ham And Haliyma . Adrenocorticotropic Hormone
628. Ham Already Had The (Stimulating Or Acting On The
Disagreeable Gene In Him From Adrenal Cortex ).
His Mother , And Haliyma Had 634. This Hormone In Turn
Disagreeable Genes From Her Triggers The Adrenal Glands To
Mothe R. Releas E Epinephrine , Known To
629. Remember In Genesis 24- Most As Adrenaline, Which Is A
25 , Afte R Ham Had Committed Hormone Secreted By The Adrenal
The Sin Of Looking At His Father Medulla That Is Released Into The
Noah-- The Friend Of God Who Is Bloodstream In Response To
Perfect In His Generations And Physical Or Mental Stress, As From
Who Walked With God In Genesis Fear Or Injury.
6:9 -- Noah Told Him That A 635. Stress Or Fear Shifts Blood
Curse Would Be Placed On His Flow And Energy To The Brain,
Fourth Son Libana (Canaan). And These Effects Are All Results
630. If You Read On Later, In Of What Doctors Call The "Fight
The Next Verse Genesis 26 You Or Flight" Response Of The Body
Will See Where Noah Includes In When It Is Confronted With A
His Condemnation Yahweh Threatening Situation .
Eloheem, And He Told Ham That 636. Thus, A Person In A
Libana (Canaan) "Shall Be A Physically Or Mentally Dangerous
Servant Unto His Brethren." Situation Is Said To Be Under Stress
631. At This Point Ham Became As In The Case Of Ham When He
Terrified, And This Affected His Was Approached By The Eloheem.
Nervous System, Which Sent 637. If A Person Goes Into A
Messages To His Brain And State Of Shock Or Fear, Which Is
Affected His Pineal Gland, Which Something That Would Lead Them
Produces The Melanin. To Be Stressed, There Are Two
Things That May Happen.

249
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
638. One Is The Oversecretion Of 646. The Bible Describes Leprosy
Melanocyte- Stimulating As Having White Skin I N Leviticus
Hormone (Hsh) By The Pituitary 13:4, Where It Say S "If The
Gland, Which Results In Brown Bright Spot [Be] White In The
Skin. Skin Of His Flesh, And In Sight
639. Or Two, The Lack Of [Be] Not Deeper Than The Skin, And
Secretion Of The Melanocyte - The Hair Thereof Be Not Turned White:
Stimulating Hormone (Hsh) Then The Priest Shall Shut Up [Him
Which Would Result In White Or That Hath] The Plague Seven Days."
Pale Skin Colorati On. 647. And For Those Who Will Try
640. The Nervous System Has A To Say That Is Doesn't Say White In
Major Effect On Your Skin . The Original Language You Are
Leprosy Produces Granular Legiones Wrong Because The Word Being
In Affected Areas Of The Skin; Used In Aramic (Hebrew) In This
That's Why They Called It Lepros Y. Quote For White Is Lawban,
641. You Will Find That When Meani Ng "White."
You See A Person With A Rash Or 648. Leprosy Affects The Skin,
Some Kind Of Skin Disorder, That The Eyes, And The Mucous
It Comes From Them Being Membranes Of The Nose And
Stressed Out, Not Sleeping And\Or Throat. It Mainly Affects The
Eating Properly, Or Being Tensed Nerves.
The Majority Of The Time . 649. There Is A Saying That Goes,
642. Any Doctor Will Tell You "I Was Scared Pale."
That Most Skin Problems Stem 650. Ham Was Stressed At This
From Str Ess. Moment In His Lif E. He Was What
643. That Is Why When People You Would Call A Manic De
Suffer From Skin Disorders Such As Pressive.
Seborrhea, Eczema, Psoriasis, 651. And It Is A Known Fact That
Herpes, Etc., They Usually Don't Stress Can Cause Skin Defects,
Break Out Until They Become Because What Affects Your Nerves
Stressed Ou T. Can Affect Your Ski N.
644. So You Can't Tell Me That 652. If A Regular Person Could
You Can't Catch A Malignant Skin Scare Yo U "Pale," Just Imagine
Disease Which Is Spoken Of In What Could Happen If The
Leviticus 13:2 From Stre Ss. Unknown Was Made Known To Y
645. The Torah Gives Various Ou.
Accounts Of The Signs And 653. And That Is Exactly What
Symptoms Of What Leprosy Happened When The Eloheem
Actually Looks Likes. Stepped In . It Scared Ham Pale .

250
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
654. However, This Didn't 660. In The Nucleus Of Every
Happen To Him Physically, It Cell In Your Body, There Are At
Affected His Genes And It Came Least A Million Stran Ds Of Dna .
Out In His Fourth Son Libana 661. Altogether, They Do Much
(Canaan). To Decide What You Look And
Think Like.
Question: You Mean To Tell Me 662. It Is In The Fourth
That Just Because Ham Was Generation Of Animals And Plants
Scared By The Eloheem, This That The Recessive Traits Show Up.
Caused Canaan To Be Born With 663. That Is Why The Results Of
The Curse Of Albinism And Ham's Stress Showed Up In His
Leprosy? Fourth Son, Because As It Says I N
Exodus 20:5 "...Visiting The Iniquities
655. Yes. Because Ham Was Of The Fathers Upon The Children Unto
Scared To The Point Where It The Third And Fourth Generation Of
Affected His Genes And Caused His Them That Hate Me."
Child To Be Born Melanin Recessiv 664. Libana (Canaan) Was Born
E. Pale, And An Albino; In Other
656. As You Read Previously, The Words With The Curse Of Leprosy.
Curse That Was Placed On Libana
(Canaan) Was A Genetic Curse,
Which Means It Took Place In The Question: How Do You Know Its
Genes Of Man . A Curse
657. In The Case O F Ham, The
Curse That Was Placed On Him 665. The Sun Is The Deity Re
Would Only Show Up On His "Ra" And He Will Attack Them.
Fourth Offspring Which Was You Know It's A Curse When The
Canaan. Sun, Something That They Claimed
658. Genes Are Parts Of Their Very Own God Created,
Chromosomes Which Are Made Of Burns Them Into Cancer.
Dna. Dna Controls The Inherited 666. They Are Told Do Not Go
Traits In Man, Animals And Plants, Outside In The Direct Sun, Don't
Which Are Responsible For Almost Go To The Beach Without Sun Tan,
All The Features That Make You Or Else They Get Skin Disease Or
Look Different From Anyone Els E. Skin Cancer And It Can Kill Them.
659. The Composition Of All 667. They Cannot Live Under The
Your Body Organs Are Governed Sun, Nature Is Mad At Them, Not
By Your Inte Lligence. Man, Nature Is Controlled By The
Sun.

251
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
668. Growth, Warmth, Light, Is All Year Rule At 9-9-99 A.D. On Into
Based On The Sun. If The Sun Our Time.
Cease To Shine, All Living Things 674. The New Millennium Needs
On Earth Would Die. A New Calendar For This Time.
669. So If The Sun Is Made At 675. Nothing Is Still. Everything Is
One Of Its Creatures, How Does It In Motion. Everything Vibrates. A
Retaliate, And Why Would It Be Change Is The Only Solution.
Mad At One Of Its Creatures, 676. You Must Learn To Do For
Except For An Act That Goes Self, You Must Break Away From
Against Nature, Nature Itself. His Tones And Teach Our Children
670. So If A Being Or People Can't Our Own Language.
Live Under The Sun, Without Fear 677. Open Their Minds Up To
Of Being Burnt To A Point Where Ancient Egipt And How It Relates
They Have A Skin Disease, A To Them, And Give The Devil Back
Malignant Skin Disease, Which Their Devilishment In All Its Forms.
Become Cancer, Because Of Being 678. Create Your Own Standard
Melanin Recessive And It Has Been Of Beauty. Stop Trying To Be Like
Proven That The First Humans On Them And Look Like Them. Be
This Earth Were Negroid Or Natural And Nature Will Work With
Melaninites To Become Melanin And For You.
Recessive Is In Fact A Curse, Which 679. Call On Your Ancestors And
Allows The Sun To Exterminate They Will Respond. Reverse The
You. Tricknology That Dark Is Bad And
671. This Must Be The Wishes Of Light Is Good.
Nature, That You Be Exterminated 680. All Of Creation Is Light In
For Some Unnatural Act Against Darkness, Yet The Creator Must Be
Nature. Dark, The Key To The Universe,
672. Their Very Nature Is That Of The Whole Of Existence
A Devil In Their Own Holey Not Throughout The Planetary System,
Holy Scriptures, Where The Devil The Stars, Light As Suns, The
Is Described And His Actions And Depths Of Interstellar Space,
Undertakings Are Clear In The Bible Darkness Are All Made Of Visible
And The Qur'an And Now Their And Invisible Rays Of Light In
Time To Decline Has Finally Come. Darkness, To The Seen, Light And
673. A Change Of Direction Is The Unseen, Darkness To All
Necessary To Guarantee A Safe Energy, Substance, Liquids, Gases
Transition Into The Future, This And All Physical Life Needs Water
Millennium 2000 Ended His 6000 To Exist.

252
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
681. Light Is The Fire. Dark Is The 689. Lig Ht Is Vibrating Energy
Water. The Light Of The Fire That We See As Light. We See
Birthed Smoke And The Dark Of Different Speeds Of Vibration As
The Deep Water Birthed Vapor. Different Colors.
Cold, Heat, Frozen, Burnt. 690. If It Vibrates To Slow Or
682. Both Are The Same Just To Fast You Can't See It At Both
Differing In Degrees Of Vibration Points. It's Unseen And In
Of The Same Principle. Darkness.
683. There Is No Such Thing As 691. Ve Ry Slow Ones Makes
Absolute Heat Or Absolute Cold Radio Waves And Microwaves, And
Heat, And Cold Indicates Varying Very Fast Ones Are X-Rays.
Degrees Of The Same State, Just
Variety. 1. Radio
684. Just As Good And Bad, But 2. Red
The Same With Light And Darkness, 3. Violet
For Light Is Particles, Things, Where 4. X-Ray
As Darkness Just Is. The Amber
Light Is Of Fire. 692. Whe N Different Colors Of
685. T He Green Light Is A Com Light Are Mixed In We See It As
Bination Of Blue Gas Light And White Light.
Yellow Light Fire. Blue = 180 693. When In Fact, If You Mix
Degrees Of Will, And Yellow =180 All Colors Of Paint You Get Black.
Degrees Of Will, Agreeable And 694. Blue Light Moves The
Disagreeable. Fastest, It Vibrates Faster Than Any
686. Yo U Created The Sun, It Other Colors. Bla Ck Is Not A
Has A Birth And Death Like You, Color It Is A State.
You Are Of It. It Is Of You. 695. The Release Of The Micro
687. You Get Up In The Morning Atoms Of Life From 08 (Oxygen) Is
With It And Received Its Warmth The Source Of All Physical Life.
And Cook With Its Heat. 696. The Three Evils, 1. Germs, 2.
688. "O The All And All The Virus, 3. Micros, The Demons Of
Nebaat Who Are In The All, The Disease Or Dis-Ease. Sickness,
Creator Of The Light "Sun" The Split To Illness, Death.
Create Guidance, Planets, Stars, Birth Of 697. The Electro Magnetic Wave
Chaos. Now You Have Been Enlightened Form Or Light, Forms The Building
With The Light "Sun" And The Light Blocks Of The Things That Exist In
"Sun" Is In The Light Solar Plexus Of The Cosmos, In Which We Have
Your Light. Oh Light, Soul. " Our Physical Beings, As Micro
Atoms Of Light;

253
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
698. Yet In The True State We Are 3. Nunet
Energy Darkness In Great Unity, 4. Heh
Which Are Equal To Atoms From 5. Hehet
H1 (Hydrogen), The Root Seed That 6. Kek
Out Of Itself By Doubling Creates 7. Keket
He (Helium), The Powers Of The 8. Amun
Sun; 9. Amunet
699. Which Is H1 Atum-Re, 10. Hika
"Complete", The Undifferentiated 11. Atum
One, Who Created Himself Out Of 12. Shu
The Energies Of The Morning Sun, 13. Tefnut
14. Geb
As Hi Hydrogen Appeared Out Of 15. Nut
Ether, Creating Itself To Complete 16. Aset
The Spiritual World, Beginning Of 17. Asaru
The Physical World, On To Es 99, 18. Nebthet
The Hidden Powers Of The Atom, 19. Sutukh
Linked To Amun-Re The 99th 20. Haru
Name, The Hidden Powers Of The 21. Astennu
Setting Sun. 22. Hapi
700. Between Atum Which Is Hi 23. Anquet
Amun, Which Is Es 99 All Physical 24. Sobek
Exists. That Which Is Matter, That 25. Mut
Which Matters. Things That Have 26. Nefertum
Sum, Weight, Height, Thickness, 27. Montu
Something Or Sum-Things, The 28. Bebti
Sum Of Things. Sum, Which Is 29. Hu
Amount. 30. Hat-Har
701. Nothing Is Before Hydrogen, 31. Mehurt
The Ether And Something Is After 32. Khefri
Hydrogen The Physical. 33. Tanen
34. Raet
35. Khentimentiu
Question: What Are The 99 36. Heka
Manifested Names: 37. Sakhmet
38. Anubu
702. They Are: 39. Khnum
1. Atum-Re, 40. Khonsu
2. Nun 41. Neith

254
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
42. Bes 81. Nekhebet
43. Ptah 82. Sekhat
44. Sia 83. Anukis
45. Heket 84. Djet
46. Amsu 85. Nebertcher
47. Ma'at 86. Ua
48. Serapis 87. Uas
49. Renentet 88. Anku
50. Atun-Re 89. Afnuit
51. Shai 90. Satis
52. Tehuti 91. Sekhti
53. Seshat 92. Mta-A'
54. Tawaret 93. Anun-Re
55. Bast 94. Imiut
56. Selket 95. Imsety
57. Hah 96. Qemamu
58. Nehebka 97. Rehshef
59. Sokar 98. Mery
60. Bait 99. Amun-Re.
61. Aker
62. Ini Herit
63. I-M-Hotep Question: Are There Hidden
64. Wapwawet Names?
65. Sekhit Hetep
66. Meresger 703. Yes, Each Of The Deities Has
67. Sia His/Her Hidden Or Sacred Name In
68. Gerhet Tones That Reveals Their Powers
69. Behutit For The Use By Their Offspring
70. Kh-Nemtit Through The Bloodline, You.
71. Menqit
72. Hem
73. Meskhenet Question: What Are The 99
74. Mehduty Manifested Energies?
75. Qebeh-Senuf
76. Duamu-Tef 704. They Are:
77. Merit 1. H
78. Mafdet 2. He
79. Mert Sekert 3. Li
80. Edju 4. Be
255
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
5. B 44. Ru
6. C 45. Rh
7. N 46. Pd
8. O 47. Ag
9. F 48. Cd
10. Ne 49. In
11. Na 50. Sn
12. Mg 51. Sb
13. Al 52. Te
14. Si 53. I
15. P 54. Xe
16. S 55. Cs
17. Cl 56. Ba
18. Ar 57. La
19. K 58. Ce
20. Ca 59. Pr
21. Sc 60. Nd
22. Ti 61. Pm
23. V 62. Sm
24. Cr 63. Eu
25. Mn 64. Gd
26. Fe 65. Tb
27. Co 66. Dy
28. Ni 67. Ho
29. Cu 68. Er
30. Zn 69. Tm
31. Ga 70. Yb
32. Ge 71. Lu
33. As 72. Hf
34. Se 73. Ta
35. Br 74. W
36. Kr 75. Re
37. Rb 76. Os
38. Sr 77. Ir
39. Y 78. Pt
40. Zr 79. Au
41. Nb 80. Hg
42. Mo 81. Ti
43. Tc 92. Pb

256
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
83. Bi Thoughts Are All Made Up Of
84. Po Different Speeds Of The
85. At Wavelengths Of Life, Or Micro
86. Rn Atoms.
87. Fr 708. Electricity Is Micro Atoms Of
88. Ra Life, While Sound And Color Occur
89. Ac When The Micro Atom Have
90. Th Different Speeds, But When Micro
91. Pa Atoms Are Stopped Or Hindered,
92. U They Create Heat.
93. Np 709. Light Is An Intelligent Force
94. Pu Of Energy Which Can Be Thought
95. Am Into Existence Of Substance.
96. Cm 710. Darkness Is A Outelligent
97. Bk Force.
98. Cf 711. All That Exist On The
99. Es . Physical Realm Between The
Material Plane And The Plane Of
Force, And A Part Of The Spiritual
Question: Are There Any Hidden Plane Is Of Light, But Light,
Energies? Existence, Intelligence Are Things,
And Things Clash, Causing Chaos,
705. Yes, Each Of The Elements As Positive And Negative Energies
Has Hidden Qualities Or Sacred Clash To Split The Atom And To
Energies Vibrating Also In Tones Create Atomic Power Or A Force
That Reveals Latent Powers And By Of Light And Destruction.
The Alchemist Proper Use, These 712. Light Is The Source That
Elements Can Be Unleashed Or Confuses All, From And By Light Is
Molecules Altered To Create Intellect Born.
Wonderful Feats By Those Linked 713. But Outellect In Which
By Blood. Intellect Was Created Is The
706. All Exists Within Light, Now Greater.
That Scientists Have Accepted The 714. Black, Darkness, Bliss, And
Existence Of Quarks And Zeles, Tranquillity, Are The Outellect,
Which They Consider Unseen By Outelligent, The Pure State, In
The Eye, But They Are The Root Of Which Things Exist, Not Merely
All Creation Existence, Before Things Became
707. Mind Forces, Spiritual Something Or The Sum Of Things.
Strength, Soul Attainment And

257
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
715. The Pattern Of Micro Atoms Harmony, Which Is Often Thought
Of Light Changes With Changing Of As A Good Force When In Fact
Thoughts, Where Man Achieves The It Is A Dividing And Separating
Formula Of The Harmonic Force, Co-Existing.
Vibrations Of Light. 726. Whereas Energy Of The All
716. The Key To All Physical Life Vibrates At The Same Rate And
In The Universe Lies In Harmonic Produces Unison.
Interaction Of Light. The Children 727. Existing As All In All, Not
Of Light. The Illuminati. The Co-Existing As In 1, 3, 5.
Children Of Lucipher. 728. All This Happens In Or
717. They Speak Of Light As Inside The Universe, Note "Inside"
Good, Darkness As Evil Or Bad. Of The Universe.
They Mean The Fire Is Good. It's 729. So It Is Not The Universe,
The Original Light. But Rather Resides In The Universe,
718. They Seek To Fool You With As All Religious Believer Claim
The Spark Of Thought As Their Holy Books Inspired By Their
Knowledge. Deity, Be He Yhwh, Thehos, Allah,
719. That Too Is A Trick. Light As Exist In Paradise.
Lightning Destroys. Light As 730. As They Claim Their Deity Is
Electricity Kills. In The Heavens.
720. The Light Of The Atomic 731. So, Their Deity Is Not The
Bomb. The Light Of The Muzzle Of Heavens, Not The Universe, Not
The Gun That Kills. Paradise, Not Peace, Not
721. Light Is Evil, Darkness Is The Tranquillity, Not Bliss, But As An
Abode Of Good, God. Existing Being Inside Of The
722. Even The Great Sun In The Ultimate State, Pa Kuluwm.
Sky Has A Birth And It Will Die. 732. They Claim Their Deity Is
723. So It Is Not God Itself And The Light Of The Heaven And
Its 1000 Rays Of Light Will One Earth (Qur'an 24:35), And A Torch
Day Go Out. Of Light.
724. So We Egiptian Don't 733. And The Light Shineth In The
Worship The Actual Sun Itself, But Darkness, And As Long As They
We Give Great Respect To It For See Themselves And Their Deity As
What It Provides Us With. And We Shining In The Darkness, They
Also Know That If You Stare Into Would Never Comprehend The
It, It Will Blind You. Truth Of Darkness, From Which All
725. Different Vibrations Of Light Things Came.
As In Different Tones Scales Of 734. Darkness Was And Is Before
Music Played Simultaneously Create And After Light. Light Merely

258
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Shines In The Darkness. Not And Scroll Twelve
Never The Other Way Around.
735. Thus, Your God Or Deity Is At The Beginning
In Darkness, And Said As You Say (19x12=228)
"Let There Be Light" (Bible
Genesis 1:3).
736. That Is In Actuality The Question: So What Is The
Creation Of Re "Ra", The Sun Beginning?
Called Shamush In The Torah And
Shamsun In The Qur'an, And Helios
The Word As Used In English
In The New Testament.
Beginning , Again Is Be-Ginning ,
737. All Of These Were Copied
Or Be-Gin, Bi-Gin-Ing, Fro M
From The Babylonian Deity
Middle English Biginnen , From
Shamash (Bible, Ezekiel 8:16).
Old English Beginnan.
738. The Mathematical Formula
2. Beginning Is Simply Two
For All Transportation Is Found In
Words "Bi" And "Ginnan", From
The Vibratory Frequencies Of Light
The Root Word Begin, Taken From
Harmonics.
The German Mythology
739. Its Anti Gravity Waves And
Ginnungagap , A Very Large Deep
Tide Waves Which Are Simply The
Opening In The Earth's Surface; In
Frequency Rate Between Each Pulse
Which The Universe Was Created
Of The Spiral Of Light And
During A Spontaneous Union Of
Controlling This Frequency Rate,
Heat And Cold .
The Flow Of Logged Time Can Be
3. First Note That In Your Torah
Varied.
"Bible" Which Gave Birth To The
740. Where One Simply Moves
Qur'an "Koran", It Does Not Say At
Within One's Environment Within
The Beginning, It Says In The
The Protection Of The Ship.
Beginning, Inside Of, Within. Not
741. Be It Physical Or Hologramic
At The Very Beginning.
Of Ethereal, Instantaneously From
4. That's Why The Tricker Gave
One Planet To Another, Or One
You The Second And Never
Solar System To Another, From One
Mentioned The First In Time, 60
Dimension To Another, From A
Seconds, But It Consists Of 60
State Of Non Existence Into An
Moments So You Have The First
Apparent State To The Observer,
Moment Ethereal, Darkness And
Where Time, The Geometric Is
The Second, Physical Light.
Controlled All In A Moment, Called
5. So As The 6 Ether Beings Time
Beginning.
Is Numbered As 666. That Is 60
Moments, 60 Seconds, 60 Minutes,
259
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Or 60 + 60 + 60 =180, As In The The Definition Of The Word, It Is
180 Degrees Of Will (Evil) And 180 Simply Two Words Put Togethe R,
Degrees Of Will (Good), Called "Bi" And "Gin" .
Choice Or Twice. 12. The Word Bi As Used In
6. Zig, One Direction, Zag, Back The English Language Comes From
And Zig Another Direction. Zig The Latin Word Bis , Bi Meanin
Zag Zig, 3 Haribu "Hebrew" Letters G "Twice" , And Bini , Meaning
Of The 6th Letter, Zayn, Zayn, "Two By Two" .
Zayn.
7. 180 Degrees Evil, 180 Degrees
Good = 360 Degrees Of Will. 3 X 6 Question: What Is Gin?
= 18, Which Is 9, Or 360, Which Is
3 + 6 + 0 = 9. You Made The 13. The Word Gin As Used In
Choice. Agreeable, Or Disagreeable. The English Language, Spelt With A
8. Six Equals 2 Threes, Equality, "J" (Jin ), Being The Root Of The
Which Is E = Energy, From The Word Jinn Or Jinni Or Genie ,
Latin Energia From The Greek Which Is Defined As: 1. A
Energos, Meaning "Active", Being In Supernatural Creature Who Does
Physical Motion, Actidus "To Drive One's Bidding When Summone D.
Out" And Quality, From Qualitas A Jinni , From French Génie ,
From Qualis Meaning "What Kind". "Spirit" From Latin Genius ,
9. So Equality Being The Human "Guardian Spirit;" See Genius ].
Beasts' Sacred Number Describes
What Kind Of Actions They Create,
Which Is Chaotic. Question: Just When Was And
Where Was This Beginning?

Question: What Is The Meaning 14. At The Beginning Of This


Of The Word Begin? World As You Know It, There Was
A Waste Of Water Called Nu Which
10. The Word Begin As Used In Means "Deep Abyss".
The English Language Comes From 15. Nu Was The Abode Of The
Middle English Beginnen , From Great Father And Many Beings Such
Old English Beginnan , From As The Khemenu "Ogdoads". A Pair
Gothic De-Ginnan, "To Begin", Of 8 In All; Nun, Nunet, Heh,
From Teut, Bi-Ginnan, Meaning Hehet, Kek, Keket, Amun, And
"To Touch, Begin". Amunet, Who Dwelled In The
11. So This Is Simply Saying That House Of Khabs In The Great
Again, They Do Not Really Know Waters.
260
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
16. One Group In Particular Was Question: What Was The First
The Troglodytes From The Planet Act Of Creation?
Maldek.
17. Nu, Housed All Beings, For 24. The First Act Of Creation,
The Ma "Water" Covered The Which Means "To Grow" Was The
Whole Planet Ta "Earth". Sending Forth From Nu Of The
18. Nu Was Considered The Deep Ball Of The Sun, The Creation Of
And All Pa Ta ( ) "The Light.
Earth" Was Covered With Ma ( ) 25. Temu, Atum, Symbol Of The
"Water", And He Gave Being Unto Eel, Bull, Lion, Lizard And
Pa Re ( ) "The Sun" Deity Who Mongoose, Because It Would Kill
Hath Said: Serpents And Eats Crocodile Eggs,
19. "Lo! I Am Khe-Pera At Dawn Evolved The Thought In Nu, And
Atum-Re, Atun-Re At High Noon, When The Thought Was Expressed
And Amun-Re At Sunset". In A Word, Or Words, The Sun
20. From Nu You Get Tum Or Appeared As The Result.
Atum-Re, The First Morning, The 26. The Great Atum Symbol Of
Birth Of The Sun Of Righteousness. Akir The Lion Became Irie From
21. And From Atum-Re You Get The Ancient Aramic 'Ariy, Or
Shu ( ), And Tefnut ( ), Aryeh The Sacred Call Word Of
And From Those Two You Get The Lion Head, Descendants Of
Geb ( ) And Nut ( ), Who Ancient Aksum "Ethiopia" In
Gave Birth To Asaru ( ), Aset Tama-Re "Egipt", Symbol Of The
( ), Nebthet ( ), And Namuz, Crown And The Lion's
Sutukh ( ). Sphinx, Today Called Dreadman.
22. From Asaru (Usir, Osiris) And 27. This Is Where Your Genesis
Aset (Auset, Isis) Came Haru (Heru, Chapter One Story Comes From.
Horus), And From Asaru And 28. Let's Continue. Every
Nebthet (Nephthys) Came Anubu Succeeding Act Of Creation
(Anubis), Which Created The First Represented A Thought Of Temu
Hate. And Its Expression In Words,
23. By That I Mean Sutukh (Set) Which Probably Took The Form Of
Was The Mate To Nebthet Commands.
(Nephthys), Yet Asaru (Osiris) 29. The Material Sun Or The Body
Impregnated Her, And Sutukh Of The Sun, Was Worshipped As
Wanted Revenge. The Source Of All Heat, And Light,
And Life By Many Egiptians,
Especially Under The Political
Influence Of Pa Waabaat "The

261
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Priests" Of Re "Ra" At Annu Expressed In Egiptian Words Which
"Heliopolis, City Of The Sun". Mean Literally "Laying The
30. The Story Of Creation Is Foundation Of The Heart.
Entitled "The Book Of Knowing 36. Khepera Also Possessed A Ba
How Re "Ra" Came Into Being," Or Heart-Soul, Which Assisted Him
And Is Told By The Deity In Depicting In His Mind The Image
Nebertcher, The Everlasting Deity Of The World Which Was To Be.
Of The Universe. 37. Khepera Was Also Assisted In
31. The Desire To Create The This Work By Ma'at, Law, Order,
Heavens And The Earth Arose In Truth, Etc., Who Acted The Part Of
His Heart, Or Mind, And He Wisdom As Described In The Book
Assumed The Form Of The Deity Of Proverbs Chapter 8 Verse 22.
Khepera, Who From First To Last 38. Nu Was Called The Father Of
Was Regarded As A Form Of Nu, The Neteraat And The Producer Of
Or The Creator. The Great Company Of The Deities.
32. At This Time Nothing Existed 39. The Watery Mass Of Nu Was
Except The Vast Mass Of Celestial The Prototype Of The Great World-
Waters Which The Egiptians Called Ocean Which Later Ancient Nations
Nu, And In This Existed The Believed To Surround The Whole
Germs Of All Living Things That World.
Subsequently Took Form In Heaven 40. Out From Nu Came The River
And On Earth, But They Existed In Which Flowed Through The Tuat,
A State Of Inertness And Or Other World, And Divided Its
Helplessness. Valley Into Two Parts, Making It To
33. When Khepera Rose Out Of Resemble Egipt.
This Watery Mass, He Found 41. From Nu Also Came The
Himself In An Empty Space, And Waters Which Appeared In The
He Had Nothing To Stand Upon. Two Famous Caverns In The First
34. Khepera Came Into Being By Cataract, And Which, Flowing From
Pronouncing His Own Name, And Their Mouths, Formed The River
When He Wanted A Place Whereon Nile.
To Stand, He First Conceived The 42. The Waters Of Nu Formed
Similitude Of That Standing Place In The Dwelling Place Of Tem, And
His Mind, And When He Had Given Out Of Them Came The Sun,
It A Name, And Uttered That Which Was The Result Of One Of
Name, The Standing Place At Once Tem's Earliest Acts Of Creation.
Came Into Being. 43. The Early Inhabitants Of
35. This Process Of Thinking Out Egipt Thought That The Sun Sailed
The Existence Of Things Is Over The Waters Of Nu In Two

262
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Magical Boats, Called Mandjet, 51. Khepera Joined His Body
Mantchet, Also Called Matet Or Together And Then Wept Tears
Atet, And Semktet, Or Sektet, In Upon Them, And Men And Women
The Former The Sun Set Out In The Came Into Being From The Tears
Morning On His Journey, Which He Which Fell From His Eyes.
Finished In The Latter. 52. The Creation Of Quadrupeds
44. A Very Ancient Tradition In Is Not Specially Mentioned, But The
Egipt Asserted That Nu Was The Neter Says That He Created
Head Of A Divine Company, Which Creeping Things.
Consisted Of Four Neteraat And 53. Men And Women And All
Four Netertaat. Other Living Creatures Which Were
45. These Were Nun (Nu ) And Made By The Neter Then
Nunet, Heh And Hehet, Kek And Reproduced Their Species, Each
Keket, And Amun And Amunet. Creature In Its Own Way, And So
46. The Neteraat Of These Pairs The Earth Became Filled With Their
Were Depicted In Unnu "Human" Descendants.
Form, With The Heads Of Frogs, 54. As You Can See From Reading
And The Netertaat In The Forms This Whole Story, You See Where
Of Women With Serpents' Heads. The Old Testament, The New
47. Nu Was The Primeval Water Testament, The Qur'an, The
Itself, Heh Personified Its Vast And Sumerian Tablets, And All Other
Endless Extent, Kek The Darkness Creation Stories Originated.
Which Brooded Over The Water, 55. When You Summarize All The
And Amun Its Inert And Motionless Stories, You Can Tie In Each Story
Character. From All Over The World, And
48. Nebertcher Refers To A They All Come Up To The Same
Calamity Which Befell The Sun, And Lay Out As The Ancient Egiptian's
Extinguished Its Light. Story, From Which They All
49. And He Made His Second Eye Originated.
The Moon, To Which He Gave
Some Of The Splendor Of His First
Eye. Question: Can We Go Back To
50. He Then Assigned To It A The Beginning?
Place In His Face, From Which It
Ruled Over The Earth, Having 56. Yes. Going Back To The Story
Special Power In Respect Of The Of Re "Ra". In The Beginning
Production Of Trees, Plants, There Existed Neither Heaven Nor
Vegetables, Herbs, Etc. Earth, And Nothing Existed Except
The Boundless Mass Of Primeval

263
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Water Which Was Shrouded In Properties Of The Male And
Darkness, And Which Contained Female.
Within Itself The Germs And 62. These Eight Elements Were
Beginnings, Male And Female, Of Called Nu (Nuwr) Also Called Nun
Everything Which Was To Be In (Nuwn) And Nunet (Naar) , Heh
The Future World. (Huwa, Or Hatha) And Hehet
57. The Divine Primeval Spirit, (Hiya Or Hathihi), Kek And
Which Formed An Essential Part Of Keket, The Deities Of Darkness
The Primeval Matter, Felt Within And Void, Who Were Responsible
Itself The Desire To Begin The For Removing The Black Dust
Work Of Creation, And Its Word Cloud That Covered The Planet
Woke To Life The World, The Form Earth, So That The Sun's Light May
And Shape Of Which It Had Shine Through, And Amun And
Already Depicted Within Itself. Amunet; Collectively They Were
58. The First Act Of Creation Called Khemenu Or The "Eight",
Began With The Formation Of An Also Known As Ogdoad.
Egg Out Of The Primeval Water, 63. The Purpose Of The Number
From Which Emerged Ra, The 4 Is Genetics.
Immediate Cause Of All Life Upon 64. We're Speaking Four
The Earth. Generations Of Genetic Breeding,
59. The Almighty Power Of The Which In Term Became Four More
Divine Spirit Embodied Itself In Its Generations Of 400 Years, All
Most Brilliant Form In The Rising Together 800 Years, Where The
Sun. Genetically Bred Beings
60. When The Inert Mass Of Transformed From One Being To
Primeval Matter Felt The Desire Of The Next, A Form Of Grafting.
The Primeval Spirit To Begin The 65. And They Were Considered
Work Of Creation, It Began To As Primeval Fathers And Mothers.
Move, And The Creatures Which They Appear In Two Forms:
Were To Constitute The Future 66. As Apes, Four Males And
World Were Formed According To Four Females, Where Used In The
The Divine Intelligence Ma'at. Breeding Process, Who Stand In
61. Under The Influence Of Adoration Of The Sun When He
Tehuti, Or That Form Of The Rises, And Greet Him With Songs
Divine Intelligence Which Created And Hymns Of Praise.
The World By A Word, Eight 67. The Mention In The Writings
Elements, Four Male And Four Of Old Of Hymns, Songs And
Female, Arose Out Of The Primeval Praise Is A Recognition Of
Nu, Which Possessed The Reverence, Adoration, The

264
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Establishment Of Superiority And 75. Confirming That They Are In
Inferiority, Supreme Beings To Mere Fact Part Reptilian Or Maldekian,
Beings. Troglodytes.
68. As Genesis Clearly Mentions, 76. Those Who Inhabited The
Which Is The Genealogy Of Isis, Seas Of This Planet, While It Was In
There Was A Period Of Time When A State Of Void And Darkness
Homo Sapien Began To Call On (Genesis 1:2, Jeremiah 4:23-26).
The Name Of Huhi, Which Read In 77. The Birth Of Light From The
Dyslexia, Becomes Ihuh, Which In Waters, And Of Fire From The
Fact Is Yhwh. (Genesis 4:2, And I Moist Mass Of Primeval Matter,
Quote: And To Seth, To Him Also And Of Ra From Nu , Formed The
There Was Born A Son; And He Called Starting Point Of All Mythological
His Name Enos: Then Began Men To Speculations, Conjectures, And
Call Upon The Name Of The Lord.) Theories Of The Egiptian Priests.
69. It Is A Recognition Of Prayer, 78. The Light Of The Sun Gave
Or The Calling On One's Superiors, Birth To Itself Out Of Chaos, That
Parents, Or Ancestors, For Help Is Talking About When 554 Million
And Guidance. Tons Of Hydrogen Changes Into
70. It Is An Acknowledgment Of 550 Million Tons Of Helium Each
The Need Of Right Knowledge By Second.
Those Who Knew It. 79. Out Of Chaos It's Speaking Of
71. As Unnu Bashuraat "Human The Original Suns That Exploded,
Beings", Four Having The Heads Of And The Conception Of The Future
Frogs, And Four The Heads Of World Was Depicted In Tehuti The
Serpents. Divine Intelligence.
72. This Was Symbolic Of, For
Instance Genesis Chapter 3, Where
A Being Called Nakhash A Question: So The Creation Of
Whisperer, Is Translated As Serpent. Our Universe Was Caused By An
73. This Is All Symbolic Of The Explosion?
Relationship Of Homo Sapien With
Reptilian. 80. Yes. Your Very Own Milky
74. The Fact That In The Way Was Formed From A Massive
Gestation Period Of Reproduction Sun Called Sal Collapsing And
Pa Unnu Bashur "The Human Being" Exploding Outward.
Passes Through The Stage Of A 81. Then That Milky Way
Tadpole, Having Gills And A Tail. Exploded Again And Gave Birth To
Our Present Day Sun Called

265
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Shamush Or Haylius Which Is Old To 25 Billion Years Old,
93,000,000,000 Billion Years Old. Population 2 Is From 25 Billion
82. Before This Sun Called Years Old To 100 Billion Years Old,
Shamush Became A Ball Of Gas And Population 3 From 1 Trillion
Containing Hydrogen And Helium, To 25 Trillion , Population 4 Is
It Was An Active Planet Called From 25 Trillion To 100 Trillion
Aum , Containing All Of The And On . The Ancient Egiptian
Planets, Moons And Satellites Which Word Aun "Nature", Was A Part Of
Make Up This Solar System . The Original Triad's Sun. Sol, Om,
83. The Sun Was One On, Which Is Really Sal, Aum,
Tremendous Mass, A Planet Called Aun.
Aum .
84. This Solar System Was One
Of 19 Planets That Surrounded A Question: And Who Is This
More Massive Sun Called Sal . Tehuti That You Spoke About
85. Sal Was Named After Its Previously?
Original Ruler Sal Or Sol , Whose
Wife Was Named Arinna . 91. Tehuti "Master Of Divine Words
86. Their Combined Rulership And Wisdom", Is Often Translated As
Gives You The Name Sal-Arinna , Thoth From Which They Get The
Or Salarinna , Shortened To Sol- Word Thought. I Amunnubi
Ar , Or Simply Solar . Raakhptah Am The Reincarnation
87. This Massive Sun Sal Of Tehuti.
Collapsed And Exploded Outward, 92. This Would Be Symbolic Of
And Aum Got Caught In The The Original Pen Or Quill, To
Gravitational Pull Of Sal , And It Inscribe Or Record The Thoughts
Exploded And Gave Birth To Your And Goings On In All World
Sun , Shamush . Religions. The Revealer Of The
88. All 19 Of The Planets Were Pamphlet Of Life And Death.
Hurled Off Into Space And 93. The Reformer Of This Day
Exploded To Create 19 Galaxies In And Time, The Savior, The Man Of
Space And Beyond . The Hour, Haru, Heru, Horus, For
89. Galaxies Are Recorded As The Hour Glass Is Empty. It Is
Population 1, Population 2, Your Time To Take The Lead.
Population 3 And Population 4, And 94. The Greeks Logged Me As
On . The Deity Tehuti As Hermes Son
90. Population 1 Galaxies Are Of Zeus (Son Of Cronus And
Based On Their Age, Are From Rhea) And Mia (Daughter Of Atlas
Hundreds Of Thousands Of Years And Pleione), Father Of Autolycus.

266
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
95. As You Can See By A Little Question: And Who Is Khnum?
Research All The Greek Deities
Were Grafted Through Hermes, 99. Khnum "Khnemu" Was A
Tehuti To Ancient Egipt As Well Neter "Deity" Of Fertility And
And Now To The Resurrected Creation. He Was Known As The
Egipt, Egipt Of The West. Atlantis Potter Neter "Deity", For He Is
Raising Like The Sun Of Man In Often Shown In Sacred Painting In
The West Out Of The East. The Act Of Modeling Human
96. When Tehuti Gave The Figures Upon A Potter's Wheel,
Word, What He Commanded At Each With Its Ka Or Double
Once Took Place By Means Of Ptah Alongside.
"Opener", And Khnum "Moulder", 100. As He Created Humanity He
And Khonsu "Traveler", And Anubu Allotted Each Of Them A Period Of
"Messenger Of Heaven And Hell", The Time On Ta "Earth", Beyond Which
Visible Representatives Who Turned No Man Could Live. His Name
Tehuti's Command Into Deeds. Means Literally "The Moulder".
97. Ptah Symbolized The Opening, 101. Khnum "Khnemu" Created
Which Would Be The Beginner, The Cosmic Egg, Having Turned It
Which The Bible And The Qur'an Upon His Wheel. Khnum Made The
Use As The Aliph Or The Alpha, Egg Of The Sun, And Ptah Gave
Along With The Omega, As The To The Neter Of Light A Finished
Beginning And The Ending Of All Body.
Things. 102. Khnum Is Identified With
98. He Was Called The Beginning The Fashioner, Al Musawwiru, The
Of Ptah, For Ptah Is A Translated Creator, Al Khaliqu, Used Both In
Form From Tar The Original The Qur'an Of The Muslims And
Inhibitors The Planet Earth, T He The Torah Of The Jews, And Old
True Deneg "Pygmies, Or Dwarfs", And New Testament Of The
The Ptahites, Called Muu, Mem, Christians, For The Being That
Azizan, Mmortia, Hua, Dawan, Took The Clay, The Dust Of The
Or Deneg. Also Called Deng From Ground, The Black Mud And
Dinka, The Son Of Abuk Of The Fashioned And Shaped The Human
Watusi Who Mixed With Them. Body Before The Breath Of Divine
These Tarite, Ptahite Were The Life Was Breathed Into Him Or
Original Inhibitors Of Africa When Her.
It Was Called Ganawa Or Gnawa. 103. This Is Symbolic Of The
Later It Was Divided Into Separate Actual Creation Of Mortals By The
Lands. Immortals.

267
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
104. The First Company Of The "Land Of Satet", Which Is Today
Neteraat Consisted Of Shu, Called Tuti, The Junction Of The
Tefnut, Geb, Nut, Asaru, Aset, Two Nile.
Sutukh, Nebthet, Haru And Their 113. So Creation Took Place In
Governor Tum, Or Tem, Also Ta-Siti "Sudan" At The Junction Of
Called Atmu Or Atum. The Two Niles.
105. Each One Of Them Had A 114. Khnum Was The Neter Of
Symbolic Name Of Their Ancestors, Fertility And Creation, A Lso
Water, Air, Earth, Fire, The Four Known As The Potter Deity.
Elements. 115. He Created Each With A Ka
106. Khnum Assumed The Form (Spirit) Or A Double Alongside.
Of A Ram, A Deity Of Creation. 116. He Allotted Each Being 120
107. He Is Accompanied By Satis Years On Earth, No More, But Less,
And Anukis (Symbol Of Mother If They Don't Follow The Law Of
Ninti, The Anunnaqi). Ma'at.
108. Khnum Molded The Great 117. The Greeks Called Him
Cosmic Egg And Fashioned Asaru Khnoumis, Where He Looked Like
"Usir, Osiris" And All Other Living Amun But His Horns Were Wavy
Creatures. As Opposed To Amun's Sweeping
109. In Nubia He Is Called Curves, (Ouislongipes
Dedun, A Man Wearing A Ram's Palaeogypticos).
Head Mask With A Sun Disk Ra 118. Behind Khnum Stands
And Wavy Horns Of The Ram Also Tehuti (Thoth) Using The Pen To
Plumes Of Amun And The Uraeus Record Each Life It Is Then
Of Wadjet. Recorded In The Book Of Life And
110. His Wife Anukis Was From On The Leaf Of The Secret Tree.
Ta-Nehisi Sudan, She Carried A 119. When The Leaf Falls The
Staff And Wore A Feather Crown Person Is Dead.
Of The Red Parrot. 120. Khnum Was The Point In
111. His Daughter Satis, Who Was The Center With Four Deities
Also His Wife Was The Female Around Him As Him: 1. Re: "Sun"
Deity Of Sannu "Aswan" In Ta- The Sun Or Light In Each Being's
Nehisi "Sudan", She Wore The Seat Of Light. The Consciousness In
Horns Of A Cow And Conical Mortals. 2. Shu: Ru "Wind, Air".
Crown And Carried Bows And The Wind, Air. The Breath Of Life
Arrows, And She Was Shown With In Mortals. The Mentality Or Mind.
A Star Upon Her Head. 3. Geb: Seb "Time" The Earth, The
112. The Greeks Called Her Hera. Black Mud, Clay Or Dust Of The
Her Land Was Called Ta-Satet Flesh Of All Mortals Matter. The

268
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Body. 4. Tefnut: Tef "Moist", The 127. The Animal Representing
Water, The Blood, Liquid In The Anubis Is Some Times Called A
Body. Rain, Life Source, The Jackal, Sometimes A Dog, And Is
Intellect Of Mortals. Probably A Composite Of Both .
121. Khnum Is Intellect Himself. 128. Anubis Is Present At The
Intellectually Perceiving Itself, And Scene Of The Weighing Of The
Consecrating Intellections To Itself, Heart, Overseeing The Correctness
And Is To Be Worshipped In Of The Procedure And Making Sure
Silence. The Heart Is Not Erroneously
122. Khnum, Knef, Khnemu, Given Over To Ammit .
Chnuphis Is The Maker Of The 129. The Dog/Jackal Feasts On
Body And Places The Soul And Carrion, Turning It Into Sustenance
Spirit In The Body From The For Itself, Hence This Choice For
Deities By The Use Of The Higher The Deity Of Embalmi Ng.
Faculties While Functioning In The 130. Anubu "Anubis, Anpu"
Physical Body. Prepares The Corpse To Serve As
123. To All The Religions Of The Receptacle For The Resurrected Or
World He Would Be The Creator Reincarnated Spirit.
God.
124. He Took The Clay And
Shaped The Body Of Mortals, Question: Who Is Khonsu?
Breathed The Breath Of Life Into 131. Khonsu Was The Adopted
Them. Son Of Amun And Mut , The
125. He Is The Yhwh Elohim, Reaction Betwee N Amun, Or
The Thehos, The Allah Al Khaliq, Spark Of Divinity, And Mut , Or
The God Who Said Let Us (The Affection, And Became The Third
Egiptian Gods) Create A Man In Member Of The Theban Triad,
Our Own Image And After Our Repl Acing Montu .
Own Likeness. 132. The Son Khonsu As His
Name Indicates Is "Action" .
Khonsu Is Derived From The Root
Question: Who Is Anubis? Khens Which Mean S "To Travel, To
Move About, To Run" .
126. Anubis Is A Greek Form Of 133. Khonsu Is The "Traveller"
The Egiptian Anubu Or Anpu . And In A Popular Sense Identified
He Presided Over Embalming; He Is With The Ah "Moon" As It Travels
The Guide Of The Soul Of The Through The Sky; In A Mythological
Deceased Through The Regions Of Sense "The Messenger Of The Great
The Duat .

269
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Deity ." The Greeks Named Him On The Earth Or In Duat, The
Hercules. Underworld.
134. His Usual Form In Tama- 146. Ptah Tanen Was Lauded As
Rean "Egiptian" Art Is That Of A A Perfect Deity Who Came Forth
Young Man Or Child, Bound Like A Perfect In All His Parts.
Mummy, With The Sidelock Of 147. At The Beginning He Was All
Youth, And A Crescent And Full Alone.
Ah "Moon" Upon His Head . 148. He Built Up His Body And
135. In His Hands, Which Emerge Shaped His Limbs.
From The Bindings, He Holds A 149. Unlike Re, He Did Not Rise
Crook And Scepter. From The Primordial Deep.
136. His Name Appears To Be 50. Re Was The Deity Of
Derived From A Word Mean Ing Brightness And First Appeared As A
"To Cross Over" Or "Wanderer' , Shining Egg, The Gold, Egg Which
Suggesting That Khonsu Means Is The Sun A Orb Shape Craft
"He Who Traverses" , A Fitting Title Called Nibiru By The Sumerians Or
For An Ah "Moon" Neter "Deity" In Egipt.
Such As He . 151. Nibiru Was Called Pa
Mandjet ( ) The Sacred
Bark Of Re "Ra" It Crosses The Sky
Question: And Who Is Ptah? Each Morning Which Is Symbolic
Of A 25,000 Year Equinox Which
142. The Creator Ptah Whose Was Also Symbolic Of The Sun
Base Was Het-Ka-Tah (Meaning Cycle.
"House Of The Soul Of Ptah", Also 152. The Sacred Bark Was The
Called Memphis) Was Also Called Symbol Of A Sun, The Smaller
The Elf Deity, For He Was From Crafts Were Called Pa Meseketaat
The Original Pygmy Tribe. ( ) And Traveled
143. Ptah Was United With Tanen Back And Forth Every 3,600 Years.
Or Tatunen, The Earth Giant, Who 153. The Beings From The Craft
Resembles Geb. Would Descended Nightly From
144. The Dwarfish Deity Then The Heavens, And Were Also Called
Assumed Gigantic Proportions, And "The Barks Of The Gods And
Became A "World Deity" Or Great Sacred Boats", They Were Either In
Father. A Miniature Form Or Full Size Also
145. A Hymn Addressed To Ptah Called The Solar Bark.
Tanen Declares That His Head Is 154. One Of These Great Trips
In The Heavens While His Feet Are Resulted In The Great Crash Called
The "Big Bang", Which Crashed

270
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Into One Of The Draco's Planet 161. Then Came Into Being Geb,
Called Maldek. The Earth Deity, Adam Of Your
155. This Orb Or Craft Floated Bible And Qur'an.
Upon The Water's Breast, And The 162. After The Big Bang Geb Was
Spirits "Nef" Of The Deep, Were Split Into Two Parts, And The Birth
Under The Water The Beings Were Of The Planet Earth Was Called
Looking Up At This Great Craft. Geb, And Ta "Earth" Broke Up
156. This Is Where The Fathers Into Many Pieces And Became The
And The Mothers, Were With Him Asteroid Belt.
There, As He Was Nu, For They 163. As Geb Became The Earth
Were The Companions Of Nu. Deity, Nut, Eve Or Hawwah Of
157. Now Re Was Greater Than Your Bible And Qur'an Became The
Nu From Whom He Arose. Deity Of The Firmaments, Which Is
158. He Was The Divine Father The Black Cloud That Moves The
And Strong Ruler Of The Neteraat, Moist Firmaments That Split In
And Those Whom He First Created, Two, One Above The Asteroid Belt
According To His Desire, Were Shu, And One Beneath The Asteroid
(Your Angelic Being Male Of Your Belt, Which Became The Parents Of
Bible) The Wind, And His Consort Asaru "Osiris, Usir" Whose
Tefnut, (Was Your Angelic Being Headdress Was The Atef, And Was
Female Of Your Bible) Who Had Your Abel Or Habiyl In The Bible
The Head Of The Lioness And Qur'an, And His Consort Aset
Representing 'The Time Of Leo' "Isis, Auset" (Aqlimiyah Of Your
And Was Called "The Spitter" Bible Story) And Also Of Sutukh
Because She Sent The Rain, Splitting (Set) And His Consort Nebhet
The Atoms And Creating Energy. "Nepthys" (Labuwda Of Your Bible
159. In Aftertime These Two Story).
Deities, Tefnut And Shu Shone As 164. Re "Ra" Spake At The
Stars Or Planets, Like The Planet Beginning Of Creation, And Gave A
Anu "Uranus" And Ea "Neptune", Direct Command To The Earth And
The Two Water Planets That Caused The Heavens To Rise Out Of The
The Split Amidst The Constellations Waste Of Water.
Of Heaven, And They Were Called 165. In The Brightness Of His
'The Twins'. Majesty They Appeared, And Shu,
160. The Twins Planets Are The Up Lifter, Raised Nut Upon
Neptune And Uranus, Which High.
Happens To Be The Same Size And 166. She Formed The Vault, Which
The Same Color. Is Arched Over Geb, The Deity Of
Earth, Who Lies Prostrate Beneath

271
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Her From Where, At The Eastern Sought Rather To Be Amidst The
Horizon, She Is Poised Upon Her Mighty Neteraat.
Toes To Where, At The Western 175. She Was An Enchantress, And
Horizon, Bending Down With She Desired Greatly To Have Power
Outstretched Arms, She Rests Upon Equal With Re In The Heavens And
Her Finger Tips. Upon The Earth.
167. In The Darkness Are Beheld 176. In Her Heart, Therefore, She
The Stars Which Sparkle Upon Her Yearned To Know The Secret Name
Body And Over Her Great Of The Ruling Neter, Which Was
Unwearied Limbs. Hidden In His Bosom And Was
168. When Re "Ra", According To Never Revealed In Speech.
Desire, Uttered The Deep Thoughts 177. Each Day Re Walked Forth,
Of His Mind, That Which He And The Neteraat Who Were Of
Named Had Being. His Train Followed Him, And He
169. When He Gazed Into Space, Sat Upon His Throne And Uttered
That Which He Desired To See Decrees.
Appeared Before Him. 178. He Had Grown Old, And As
170. He Created All Things That He Spoke Moisture Dripped From
Move In The Waters And Upon The His Mouth And Fell Upon The
Dry Land. Ground. Aset Followed After Him,
171. Now, Mortals Were Born And When She Found His Saliva
From His Eye, And Re "Ra", The She Baked It With The Earth On
Creator, Who Was Ruler Of The Which It Lay.
Deity, Became The First Ruler Upon 179. In The Form Of A Spear She
Earth. Shaped The Substance, And It
172. He Went About Among Became A Venomous Serpent.
Men; He Took Form Like Unto 180. She Lifted It Up; She Cast It
Theirs, Incarnated And To Him The From Her, And It Lay On The Path
Centuries Were As Years, Each Day Which Ra Was Wont To Traverse
Was 1,000 Years. When He Went Up And Down His
173. Re "Ra" Had Many Names Kingdom, Surveying That Which He
That Were Not Known By Had Made.
Neteraat, Neteraat Or Enosaat 181. Now The Sacred Serpent
"Mortals", And He Had One Secret Which Aset Created Was Invisible
Name Which Gave To Him His To Deities And Men.
Divine Power. 182. Soon There Came A Day
174. The Deity Aset, Who Dwelt When Re, The Age Neter, Walked
In The World As A Woman, Grew Along The Path Followed By His
Weary Of The Ways Of Man; She Companions.

272
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
183. He Came Nigh To The My Secret Name Which Giveth Me
Serpent, Which Awaited Him, And Power, And He Concealed It In My Heart
The Serpent Stung Him. So That No Magician Might Ever Know
184. The Burning Venom Entered It, And, Knowing It, Be Given Power To
His Body, And Re Was Stricken Work Evil Against Me. As I Went
With Great Pain. Forth, Even Now, Beholding The World
185. A Loud And Mighty Cry Which I Have Created, A Malignant
Broke From His Lips, And It Was Thing Did Bite Me. It Is Not Fire, Yet It
Heard In The Highest Heaven. Burns In My Flesh; It Is Not Water, Yet
186. Then Spoke The Neteraat Cold Is My Body And My Limbs
Who Were With Him, Saying: "What Tremble. Hear Me Now! My Command
Hath Befallen Thee?". Is That All My Children Be Brought
187. Re Did Not Answer, He Nigh To Me So That They May
Shook; All His Body Trembled And Pronounce Words Of Power Which Shall
His Teeth Clattered, For The Venom Be Felt Upon Earth And In The
Overflowed In His Flesh As Does Heavens."
The Nile When It Floods The Land 190. All The Children Of Re Were
Of Egipt. Brought Unto Him As Was His
188. But At Length He Possessed Desire.
Himself And Subdued His Heart 191. Aset, The Enchantress, Came
And The Fears Of His Heart. He In Their Midst, And All Sorrowed
Spoke, And His Words Were: Greatly, Save Her Alone.
"Gather About Me, You Who Are My 192. She Spoke Forth Mighty
Children, So That I May Make Known Words, For She Could Utter
The Grievous Thing Which Hath Be Incantations To Subdue Pain And
Fallen Me Even Now. I Am Stricken To Give Life Unto That From
With Great Pain By Something I Know Which Life Had Departed.
Not Of ... By Something Which I Cannot 193. Unto Re Aset Spoke Saying:
Behold. Of That I Have Knowledge In My "What Aileth Thee, Holy Father?. Thou
Heart, For I Have Not Done Myself An Hast Been Bitten By A Serpent, One Of
Injury With Mine Own Hand. Lo! I Am The Creatures Which Thou Didst Create.
Without Power To Make Known Who I Shall Weave Spells; I Shall Thwart
Hath Stricken Me Thus. Never Before Thine Enemy With Magic. Lo! I Shall
Hath Such Sorrow And Pain Been Overwhelm The Serpent Utterly In The
Mine." Brightness Of Thy Glory."
189. He Spake Further, Saying: "I 194. He Answered Her, Saying: "A
Am A Neter And The Son Of A Neter; Malignant Thing Did Bite Me. It Is Not
I Am The Mighty One, Son Of The Fire, Yet It Burns My Flesh. It Is Not
Mighty One. Nu, My Father, Conceived Water, Yet Cold Is My Body, And My

273
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Limbs Tremble. Mine Eyes Also Have Which Nu Conceived And Uttered
Grown Dim, Drops Of Sweat Fall From At The Beginning. So She Spake To
My Face." Re, Saying: "Divine Father, Thou Hast
195. Aset Spoke Unto The Divine Not Yet Spoken Thy Name Of Power. If
Father And Said: "Thou Must, Even Thou Shalt Reveal It Unto Me I Will
Now, Reveal Thy Secret Name Unto Me, Have Strength To Give Thee Healing."
For, Verily, Thou Canst Be Delivered 199. Hotter Than Fire Burned The
From Thy Pain And Distress By The Venom In The Heart Of Re. Like
Power Of Thy Name." Raging Flames It Consumed His
196. Re Heard Her In Sorrow. Flesh, And He Suffered Fierce
Then He Said: "I Have Created The Agony.
Heavens And The Earth. Lo! I Have 200. Aset Waited, And At Length
Even Framed The Earth, And The The Great Father Spake In Majesty
Mountains Are The Work Of My Hands; And Said: "It Is My Will That Aset Be
I Made The Sea, And I Cause The Nile Given My Secret Name, That It Leave
To Flood The Land Of Egypt. I Am The My Heart And Enter Hers."
Great Father Of The Gods And The 201. When He Had Spoken Thus,
Goddesses. I Gave Life Unto Them. I Re Vanished From Before Eyes Of
Created Every Living Thing That Moves The Neteraat. The Sun Boat Was
Upon The Dry Land And In The Sea Empty, And Was Thick Darkness.
Depths. When I Open My Eyes There Is 202. Aset Waited, And When The
Light: When I Close Them There Is Thick Name Of The Divine Father Was
Darkness. My Secret Name Is Known About To Leave Heart And Pass
Not Unto The Gods I Am Lçhepera At Into Her Own, She Spake Unto
Dawn Re At High Noon, And Turn At Haru, Her Son And Said: "Now,
Eventide". Compel The Ruling Neter, By A Mighty
197. So Spake The Divine Father; Spell, To Yield Up Also His Eyes, Which
But Mighty And Magical As Were Are The Sun And The Moon."
His Words Were, They Brought Him 203. Aset Then Received In Her
No Relief. The Poison Still Burned Heart The Secret Name Of Re And
In His Flesh And His Body The Mighty Enchantress Said:
Trembled. He Seemed Ready To "Depart, O From Re; Come Forth From
Die. His Heart And From His Flesh; Flow
198. Aset, The Enchantress, Heard Out, Shining From His Mouth ... I Have
Him, But There Was No Sorrow In Worked The Spell. . . . Lo! I Have
Her Heart. She Desired, Above All Overcome The Serpent And Caused The
Other Things, To Share The Power Venom To Be Spilled Upon The Ground,
Of Re, And She Needed Him To Because The Secret Name Of The Divine
Reveal Unto Her His Sacred Name Father Hath Been Given Unto Me. . . .

274
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Now Re Live, For The Venom Hath 209. He Addressed The Neteraat,
Perished." Saying: "O Nu, You The Eldest Neter,
204. So Was The Neter Made From Whom I Had My Being, And Ye
Whole. The Venom Departed His Ancestral Neteraat, Hear And Know
Body And There Was No Longer Now, That Rebellious Words Are Spoken
Pain In His Heart Or Any Sorrow. Against Me By Mankind, Whom I Did
205. As Re Grew Old Ruling Create. Lo ! They Seek Even To Slay Me.
Over Men, There Were Those It Is My Desire That You Should Instruct
Among His Subjects Who Spoke Me What You Would Do In This
Disdainfully Regarding Saying: Matter. Consider Well Among Yourselves
"Aged, Indeed, Is The Ruler Re, For And Guide Me With Wisdom. I Have
Now His Bones Are Slivern And His Hesitated To Punish Mankind Until I
Flesh Is Turned To Gold, Although His Have Heard From Your Lips What
Hair Is Still True Lapis Lazuli (Dark)." Should Now Be Done Regarding Them.
206. Unto Re Came Knowledge "For Lo! I Desire In My Heart To
Of The Evil Words Which Were Destroy Utterly That Which I Did Create.
Spoken Against Him, And There All The World Will Become A Waste Of
Was Anger In His Heart Because Water Through A Great Flood As It
That There Were Rebellious Sayings Was At The Beginning, And I Alone
On The Lips Of Men And Because Shall Be Left Remaining, With No One
They Sought Also To Slay Him. Else Beside Me Save Asaru And His
207. He Spoke Unto His Divine Son Haru. I Shall Become A Small
Followers And Said: "Bring Before Me Serpent Invisible To The Neteraat. To
The Neter Shu And The Netert Tefnut, Asaru Will Be Given Power To Reign
The Neter Geb And His Consort Nut, Over The Dead, And Haru Will Be
And The Fathers And Mothers Who Exalted On The Throne Which Is Set
Were With Me At The Beginning When I Upon The Island Of Fiery Flames."
Was In Nu. Bring Nu Before Me Also. 210. Then Nu Spoke Forth, Neter
Let Them All Come Hither In Secret, So Of Primeval Waters, And He Said:
That Men May Not Behold Them, And, "Hear Me Now, O My Son, Thou Who
Fearing, Take Sudden Flight. Let All The Art Mightier By Far Than Me, Although
Neteraat Assemble In My Great Temple I Gave Thee Life. Stead Fast Is Thy
At Heliopolis." Throne; Great Is The Fear Of Thee
208. The Neteraat Assembled As Among Men. Let Thine Eye Go Forth
Re Desired, And They Made Against Those Who Are Rebels In The
Obeisance Before Him. They Then Kingdom."
Said: "Speak What You Desire To Say 211. Re Said: "Now Do Men Seek
And We Will Hear." Escape Among The Hills; They Tremble

275
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Because Of The Words They Have 218. Then The Neter Gave
Uttered." Command That The Jars Should Be
212. The Neteraat Spoke Carried To The Place Where The
Together, Saying: "Let Thine Eye Go Vengeful Netert Rested For The
Forth Against Those Who Are Rebels In Night After That Day Of Slaughter.
The Kingdom And It Shall Destroy Them 219. The Jars Were Emptied Out
Utterly. When It Cometh Down From As Was His Desire, And The Land
Heaven As Hathor, No Human Eye Can Was Covered With The Flood.
Be Raised Against It." 220. When Hat-Haru Awoke Her
213. Re Heard, And, As Was His Heart Was Made Glad.
Will, His Eye Went Forth As Hat- 221. She Stooped Down And She
Haru Against Mankind Among The Saw Her Beauteous Face Mirrored
Mountains, And They Were Speedily In The Flood.
Slain. 222. Then Began She To Drink
214. The Netert Rejoiced In Her Eagerly, And She Was Made
Work And Drave Over The Land, Drunken So That She Went To And
So That For Many Nights She Fro Over The Land, Nor Took Any
Waded In Blood. Then Re Heed Of Mankind.
Repented. His Fierce Anger Passed 223. Re Spake Unto Her, Saying:
Away, And He Sought To Save The "Beautiful Netert, Return To Me In
Remnant Of Mankind. Peace."
215. He Sent Messengers, Who 224. Hat-Haru Returned, And
Ran Swifter Than The Storm Wind, The Divine Father Said: "Hence-
Unto Elephantine, So That They Forward Shall Comely Handmaidens, Thy
Might Obtain Speedily Many Plants Priestesses, Prepare For Thee In Jars,
Of Virtue. According To Their Number, Draughts
216. These They Brought Back, Of Sweetness, And These Shall Be Given
And They Were Well Ground And As Offerings Unto Thee At The First
Steeped With Barley In Vessels Festival Of Every New Year.'
Filled With The Blood Of Mankind. 225. So It Came That From That
So Was Beer Made And Seven Day, When The Nile Rose In Red
Thousand Jars Were Filled With It. Flood, Covering The Land Of
217. Day Dawned And Hat-Haru Egypt, Offerings Of Beer Were
Went Upstream Slaughtering Made Unto Hathor.
Mankind. Re Surveyed The Jars And 226. Men And Women Partook Of
Said: "Now Shall I Give Men Protection. The Draughts Of Sweetness At The
It Is My Will That Hat-Haru May Festival And Were Made Drunken
Slay Them No Longer." Like The Netert .

276
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
227. The Feline Netert Sakhmet Aluhum, Malaaikat, Angelos,
Is Also Given As The Slaughterer. Kachina, Neteraat, Umarway,
228. In One Of The Temple Thunderbirds, Ginwin, Or
Chants We Read "Hathor Shushukiy, And There Are Many
Overcometh The Enemy Of Her Others.
Sire By This Her Name Of 8. We Have Germinated This
Sakhmet". Planet From What You Call Mars,
Seeding The Planet At Four Points
As Four Beings, 1. Neter, 2.
Anunna, 3. Elul, 4. Nommos, The
Scroll Thirteen Four Winds.
9. Our Existence Goes Way Back
The Anunnaqi To 76 Trillions Years Ago Of Your
(19x6=114) Time, If You Must Try To Calculate.
10. We Live In And Beyond Time
Book One Of The Sacred Records Zone.
Of Neter: A'aferti Atum-Re, Also 11. You Cannot Comprehend
Called The Black Book Introduced These Things As Of Yet.
You To The Neteraat . 12. Our Creation, Never Existing
2. One Of The Three Races As You Think Of It, We Exist As A
Responsible For Creation, Cloning Crystal Essence, Birthing Light And
And Growing On Earth . Form From Beyond Light And
3. The Other Are The Elul, Form, Which Was Created By The
Nommos, But This Chapter Will Supreme Being Anu, The Most
Deal With The Anunnaqi , Also High, Who Was Appointed By Pa
Known As The Anunna . Kuluwm "The All".

Question: Who Are The


Anunnaqi? Question: Who Is This Anu In
Egipt?
4. We Anunnaqi, Meaning,
"Those Who Anu, Sent Down To Qi, Or 13. The Greek Name For The Sun
Gi, (Which Became Geo) In Na Fifties," Is Helios, The City In Egipt, The
Are One Of Your Supreme Creators, Greeks Called It Heliopolis Which
Those Who Grew You. Was Really Called Annu Or Iunu,
5. It Is From Us That You Came. Even Iunet Mehet Or On.
6. We Grew Nine Ether Beings. 14. In Your Bible His City There
7. We Are Known By Many Titles, Was Called Calneh Or Calno
In Many Languages, Such As: "Fortress Of Anu" (Genesis 10:10).

277
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
15. Heliopolis Was The City Of Re Anu, "The Heavenly One" , Ra,
Or Ra, Roi, In His Form As Atum, Became El Eloh.
One Of The Four Great Cities. 25. This Crystal Essence Became
16. The Others Being Nu-Amun Divided Into Two Parts; O Ne
"Thebes", Het Ka Ptah "Memphis" Was Extremely Pure And Luminous
And Khemenu "Hermopolis". .
17. So The Which Becomes 26. However, The Other
Talisman Of The Sumerian Was Appeared To The Vision Of The
None Other Than Another Name Intellect To Be Inferior To The First
For Ra, Or Re, The Deity Of The .
Sun Cycle Or Solar. 27. The First Was Called Light;
18. The 5,6,7 And 8th Pointed Star The Pure Green Light, The Light Of
Became His Symbol. The Anunnaqi, Serapheem ,
19. Heliopolis Is Also Part Those Agreeable Beings . A Symbol
Hempolis Of Tehuti "Thoth" Also Of Manifestation Of Things .
Called Hermes. 28. And The Second Was Called
20. Re Is The Symbol Of Re-Birth Fire: The Impure Amber Light, The
And Regeneration. Light Of The Anunnaqi,
21. This Sun Was Also Called Cherubeem, Those Disagreeable
Khefera, Or Khepri "The Scarab Beings. A Symbol Of Destruction
Beetle, At Dawn, Atun-Re At Noon Of Things. Yet, The Pure Holy
And Amun-Re At Sunset. Darkness Preceded Both. The Bliss,
22. And This Re Came Across The And The Tranquil.
Skies In His Solar Barque 29. Our Arrival To Your Planet,
"Mandjet" In Egipt And Nibiru In Which Was 445,000 Years Ago, By
Sumeria. It Was Called The Boat Of Your Time, And We Came By Way
A Million Years. Of Our Mothership Called Nibiru ,
23. This Was The Great Craft That For The Purpose Of Mining For
Came From Beyond The Stars, Gold To Take Back To Our Planet
Sometimes It's Called The Great Rizq .
Gold Egg. 30. First, We Sent Rumardians
24. Ra Became The Most High, Who Built Androids Called
Al 'Aliy Or El Or Illa , Who Is Robotoids, Under One Named Crlll
Known As Simply Allah, Rabb A .
Nd Yahweh , Or Ha-Shem And 31. Then Biological Graftation
Anu, All Of These Names Called Was Added, Needed For Thinking
By Religious People, However He Is Beings To Complete The Mission,
One And The Same. An Became So They Were Sent To Scout And
Survey This Very Planet.

278
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
32. The Leader Amongst The 43. However, All Did Not Go
Anunnaqi Was Ea Meaning "He Well With Enqi.
Whose House Is Water," Being 44. Enqi Got Caught Up In The
Part Sea-Man Or Reptilian, Son O Delicacies Of The World And
F Anu And Iyd Also Known As Stopped Transporting The Gol D.
Nudimmud . 45. He Started To Take The
33. After Crashing Down In What Gold, Shipping It To South
Is Called The Persian Gulf Today America Instead Of Taking It
He Established The City And Called Straight On Home.
Its Name Eridu Meaning "Home 46. Enqi S Tarted To Wear The
Away From Home" Or "House Built In Gol D.
The Far Away." 47. It Should Be Known That,
34. He Received The Name Enqi Prior To This Point The Anunnaqi
When He Landed, Meaning "Ruler Did Not Wear Gold .
Of Gi, Earth." 48. Enqi Got Caught Up With
35. Enqi's Pilot For His Sham Was These People Who Were Half
Matali , Husband Of Tarra . African And Half Chinese Called
36. Tarra Was Also Half Serpent, Today, Native American, Th E
Of The Nagas Race, Also Called Hopi And Navajo Tribes,
Nagini Or Naga. 49. And Enqi Promised These
37. They Were A Non-Violent People He Would Come Back In A
Race Of Serpents, Reptilians, Sigui , Meaning 60 Years For The
Descending From Herbivores, Who Gold He Had Stored .
Did Not Eat Flesh, Who Are 50. However, He Didn't Return
Benevolent Toward Human S. Because He W As S Entenced T O
38. The Ruler Of Th E Naga Nibiru And He Was Not Allowed
Serpents Was Cal Led Takshaka . To Come To The Planet Earth
39. Enqi's Name Was Anymore.
Nudimmud , Meaning "He Who 51. Since All Did Not Go Well
Fashions Things." With Enqi, The Gold Had Been
40. Enqi Built Waterworks In The Slowed Up And More Anunnaqi
Marshlands At The Head Of The Were Sent .
Persian Gulf. 52. They Came Down In Groups
41. Enqi Was Assigned To Earth Of Fifties.
And He Agreed To The Assignment 53. One Of The Groups Was
. Lead By Murduk , Meaning "Leader
42. He Was Chosen For This Job Of The Deities," Son Of Enqi And
Because He Was A Brilliant Scientist Damkina, Meaning "Faithful Wife."
And Engineer .

279
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
54. The Plan That Enqi Had And Organize The Gold Deliveries
Which Was To Extract Gold From To Nibiru .
Sea Waters By Laboratory Like 62. This Caused A Rivalry And
Processes Did Not Work As Jealousy Between The Two Brothers
Expected . Enqi And Enlil, Who Were Sons
55. However, The Gold Was Still Of Anu , The Most High.
Badly Needed; And The Anunnaqi 63. However, Nudimmud,
Faced A Tough Decision. Enqi's And Nunamnir, Enlil's
56. To Abandon The Project Was Disagreement Began When Antum,
Out Of The Question, So They Had The Wife And Half Sister Of Anu,
To Find A New Way Of Getting Gave Her Highest Servant , Iyd ,
The Gold Which Was Through To Her Husband , Anu.
Mining. 64. Antum Gave Iyd To Anu ,
57. By Then The Anunnaqi Because She Could Not Beget
Knew That There Was A Lot Of Children .
Gold In The Abzu "The Primeval 65. Iyd And Anu Had A Son
Source" Also Called Zuab . Named Nudimmud Later To Be
58. Abzu Was Also Called Called Enqi Who Was The First
Monodappa Located In What Is Son Of Anu.
Now Zimbabwe, Formerly Called 66. Soon After That Antum
Rhodesia , Near South Africa Had Given Birth To Enlil And
Which Was Then Called Raphali . After Some Time Antum Became
59. However, The African Gold Jealous Of Iyd's Relationship With
Had To Be Extracted From The Anu , So She Asked Anu To Put
Depths Of The Earth Through Iyd And Her Child Out .
Mining, Because The Gold Of That 67. Anu Complied And Sent Iyd
Land Was Good. And Enqi To Eridu Referred
60. And The Anunnaqi Had To To As "The Desert." This Made
Go From The Easy Water Enqi Mad.
Treatment Process, To A Hard Toil 68. Iyd Went To Live With Her
Process, Which Was To Extract The People, The Dracos .
Gold From Below The Surface Of 69. By Nibiruan Rules Of
The Earth. They Called It Abbadon. Succession, Enlil Became The
61. By That Time Enlil , Meaning Legal Heir Instead Of Enqi , Bec
"Ruler Of The Skies," Or Nunamnir Ause Enlil Was The Son Of Anu
Meaning "The Light Of Fish" Which And Antum , The Half Sister Of
Was His Other Name , Son Of Anu Anu , However , Enqi , Was The
And Antum, Was Sent Down To Son Of Anu And Iyd, Who Was
Take Charge Of The Earth Project

280
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Not A Sister O F Anu , So By Law, 78. Enqi Made Them His Lugals,
Enlil Became Ruler . Warlords And Head Of His Own
70. So Enqi Believed Tha T Police Department.
Enlil Stole His Birthright. 79. They Robbed Village After
71. When All Had Arrived To Village, Confiscating The Wealth.
Earth, Enlil Had Meetings With 80. This Police Department Even
The Anunnaqi, To Break Into Harassed Nusqu And Kalkal,
Tribes And Spread Out To Seven 81. So The 600 Anunnaqi That
Different Cities. Came Now Broke Up Into Two
72. However, Kalkal And Groups Of Three Hundred Each,
Nusku Could No Longer Take Male And Females.
The Blasphemy Of Nudimmud, 82. Those Who Followed Enqi
Who Named A City After Himself Who Was Surrendering Himself To
Nud, Nod - And Welcomed All Hindu Deities Of Pan Theos, Or
Sorts Of Outside Beings Who Had Pantheism Called Leviathan; And
Come To The Planet Earth Who Surrendering To Their Customs And
Wandered In And Out . Traditions, A Nd You Had Those
73. He Called Them "Aliens," Who Followed Enlil.
Set Up Laws And Borders With 83. Once Nusqu And Kalkal
Restrictions, Creating The First Could No Longer Take The Things
Immigration Laws. That Enqi, Was Doing, They Moved
74. Enqi Gave Man Y On; Ship After Ship Until They
Khutbahs , "Sermons" That Were Found Open Plains In The Sinai
Supposed To Be A Morale Builder Peninsula.
To Prepare The Anunnaqi For 84. There They Landed And
This New Frontier. Proceeded Further North To Set Up
75. However, Enqi Did The Seven Cities:
Contrary And Many Were Weak 85. They Were Called: Tilmun,
And Listened To Him, They Never Salaam, Mu, Lumeria, Qodesh,
Did This Kind Of Hard Work Nippur - The Second City And
Before, Mining Was New. Ashkolan, Alkebu-Lan.
76. Many Left Families Behind On 86. The City Nippur Was Ruled
Rizq, So Enqi Sounded Very By Enlil.
Impressive; And Also Because Enlil 87. T His Is Where He Built The
Was Not Present To Speak On Dirga "Sacred Chamber" Where He
Behalf Of His Father's Rule. Kept The "Tablets Of All, And
77. He Utilized The Migration Of Built The Duranki, Meaning "Bond
Anaqites Who Were The Giants In Of Heaven And Earth."
The Earth, As Well As Warriors.

281
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
88. A Place Called Laarsa 98. Thus, They Had The
Meaning "Seeing The Red Light" Was Administrators And Workers.
Built To Keep Close Relationships 99. The People Of Enlil Wore
Between The Anunnaqi And The Nose Rings In Their Right Nostril,
Igigi. And The People Of Enqi Wore A
89. The Igigi Are The Beings Gold Earring In Their Right Ear.
That Stayed In The Skies And 100. However, The Ruler Of The
Manned The Craft Nibiru When Groups Wore Both The Nose Ring
The Anunnaqi Came Down To And Earrings In The Left Ear, When
Earth. There Was Peace And Happiness.
90. The Word Igigi Means "Those 101. The Women Wore Them Both
Who Stayed In The Skies", And The In The Nose And In Both Ears. This
Sumerians Translate It As "Those Was Past Down From Generation
Who See And Observe." To Generation.
91. The Igigi Remained In 102. The People Of Enlil Became
Constant Orbit Around The Planet The Ishmaelite Tribe Of Today
Earth, Acting As Intermediaries And The People Of Enqi Became
Between Earth And Nibiru. The Israelite Tribe Of Today.
92. So Now We Have Two 103. This Created Two Cast, Four
Separate Societies Of The Anunnaqi Groups Of People That Were To
On Earth, The Planet Earth; Work The Actual Mines Called
93. The Democratics Who Have Laborers And Three Groups That
Become Nefer, "Agreeable" And The Were To Work The Laboratory,
Republicans Who Have Become Processing All These Minerals,
Netchnetch , "Disagreeable" . Logging, Charting, And Managing.
94. The Disagreeable Also Set Up 104. The People Of Enqi Leaned
Seven Cities Which Were: Sippar, Towards The Pleiadians, Who Are
Kish, Kutha, Shuruppak, Uruk, Caucasoids, Where They Went
Isin, Eridu Of Ur Of Chaldea Towards Pleiades And Dwelled
Where The Flames Of Chaldean Amongst These Beings, While The
Demons Were. People Of Enlil Went Towards
95. Enlil Set Up A Democracy Sahu "Orion".
And A Government Was Set Up As 105. So In Time, After Many Years
Their Original Rizq Was Ruled. Of Living On The Planet Earth,
96. Enqi Set Up A Republic To Many Problems Arose.
Repopulate The Planet Earth. 106. A Revolt Was Starting In The
97. He Told The Anunnaqi That Lower Mines Amongst The Lower
He Would Bring Their Families, So Class Of Anunnaqi And It Was
That They Can Rule The Planet. Bothering The Higher Class.

282
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
107. The Anunnaqi Were Scroll Fourteen
Complaining That The Work Was
Too Hard And Tiresome. Genetic Manipulation
108. The Anunnaqi Of The Mines (19x9=171)
Were Complaining That Their Jobs
In The Mines Were Too Hard, So Question: How Is It Possible
They Decided Amongst Themselves For Anunnaqi To Jump Our
To Create You For The Purpose Of
Evolutionary Stage From Homo
Doing Their Work.
Erectus To Homo Sapiens?
109. They All Had Assembled, And
Anu Was Hearing The Complaints
The Anunnaqi Jumped In And
Of The Anunnaqi, Which Was,
Sped Up You Evolutionary Process,
Their Work Was Heavy, Their
Creating You Sooner Than You
Distress Was Much!
Would Have Evolved On Your
110. And Enqi Decided That
Own, By Way Of Genetic
Creating A Being Intelligent Enough
Engineering And Embryo-Implant
To Use Tools And To Follow
Techniques.
Orders, To Take Over The Load.
2. This Graftation Took Six
111. Thus The Creation Of Homo
Hundred Years, To Get To The
Erectus To Homo Sapien, Called
Perfect Being, Four Hundred Years
Lulu Amelu.
For The Breeding Of Four
112. The Creation Of The Lulu
Generations As In All Cloning And
Was The Result Of The Mutiny Of
Genetic Splicing Or Grafting.
The Anunnaqi 300,000 Years Ago.
3. That's Ten People Per One
113. This Is The First Appearance
Hundred Years And Comes Out To
Of Homo Sapiens, And Is
Forty People Over A Period Of
Corroborated By Modern Science.
Four Hundred Years.
114. The Forming Of The Lulu
4. One Hundred Years Before The
Had Taken Place Above The Abzu,
Four Hundred For The Preparation.
North Of The Mining Area. This Is
5. This Is The Collecting Of
The Location Of The Earliest
Choice Species For Breeding, Or
Human Remains In Tanzania,
What Is Now Called Abducting.
Kenya, And Ethiopia, North Of
6. The Anunnaqi Did Not Create
The Gold Mining Areas Of
Humans From Nothing, The Being
Southern Africa.
Was Already There, On Gaia, Earth,
Going Through A Feat Of An
Evolutionary Cycle.
7. You Were Homo Erectus At
This Point And All That Was
283
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Needed To Upgrade You To The The Adama, Kadmonites, For This
Required Level Of Ability Was Was Before Adam.
Intelligence, To Bind Upon You The 15. The Adama Project Was
Image Of The Anunnaqi Done For The Purpose Of Breeding
Themselves. Out The Disagreeable Genes, That
8. The Actual Inner Genetic Enqi Had Put In. It Was Done To
Makeup Of The Anunnaqi. Get All Of The Reptilian Out Of
9. So The Anunnaqi Assembled You And Make You Gods Again.
And Resolved To Proceed With The 16. The Plan Did Not Work. The
Project Without The Permission Of Only Succession Was Adafa, Called
Anu The Ruler. Enoch, The Son Of Jared And
10. This Is Talking About The Silham.
Initial Genetic Experiment With 17. They Summoned And Asked
Homo Erectus Where Enlil Sat In Ninti, The Birth Giver, Also Known
Representation Of Anu And Enqi As Ninhursag And Ninmah To
Did Not Feel The Necessity To Bind Upon This Being The Image
Inform Him Of His Plan, For Enqi Of The Anunnaqi, And The Story
Wanted To Breed Of His Mother; Goes As Thus:
Seed, The Dragos, And Knew That 18. In Those Days Once Heaven
Anu Would Not Approve. And Earth Were Split Apart, In
11. Yet, Enqi Lied And Told Those Years, The Years After The
Ninti That He Has Access To All Fates Had Been Decreed,
Of The Test Tubes In The Shimti. 19. Once The Anunnaqi Were
12. He Stole All Of The Test Born, And Once The Dietiesses
Tubes And Mixed The Blood Of Were Joined In Wedlock,
Both Anunnaqi And Humim, 20. Once The Dietiesses Had
Markabians, And Maldekians, Been Allotted Their Shares Of
And He Stirred This Mixture Heaven And Earth,
Without Consulting Nibiru, Or 21. After The Dietiesses Had Been
Getting Permission From Anu. Impregnated, Had Given Birth,
13. Initially The Anunnaqi's 22. After The Deities Had Been
Plan Was To Only Mix The Humim Forced To Eat Their Food, From
And The Anunnaqi, However Enqi Their Own Dining Halls,
Came In And Mixed The Blood Of 23. The Great Deities Labor, The
The Pleidians, Markabians, Young Deities Carry Baskets,
Maldekians, And The Aldebarans 24. The Deities Dig Canals, Heap
To Get Even. Up Their Dirt Harali, The Deities
14. This Has Nothing To Do With Grind Away, Grumble About Their
The Creation And The Making Of Life .

284
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
25. In Those Days, The One With Sense In Their Head, He Says To
The Cunning Grasp, Fashioner Of His Sister , Ninmah :
All The Deities That Exist , Enqi , 36. "My Sister, The Creature
In The Deep Billowing Sea, Into Whose Name You Fixed, It Exists .
Whose Midst On One Dares To 37. The Responsibilies That Were
Gaze, Is Lolling In His Bed, Ill Not Once The Anunnaqi's Shall
Stir From Sleep, While The Deities Become The Work Of The Lulu
Wail And Mutter. Amelu .
26. To Enqi , The One Who Is 38. Oh Khnum , Musawur,
Lying In The Deep, The One Who "Fashioner" Knead The 'Heart' Of
Will Not Stir From His Bed, The Clay That Is Over The Abzu.
27. Ninmah , Also Called Ninti , 39. That Is Those Pygmies Of
The Primeval Mother, Who Had Zimbabwe Who Have Evoluted
Given Birth To All The Great From Genus Homo To Erectus.
Deities, Carried The Wailing Of The 40. Those Very Beings Who Time
Deities To Her Brother Enqi : Has Brought From The Amoebae,
28. "You Who Are Lying About, From The Distant Star Sirius,
You Who Are Sleeping, You Who Splashed Down In The Waters And
Will Not Stir From Your Sleep : Crawled Upon The Shores To Start
29. The Deities, My Handiwork, The Evolutionary Journey, Genus
Are Beating Their Drums. Homo To Homo Erectus, Now
30. Rise Up, My Brother, From Ripe For The Picking.
Your Bed, Practice Your Skill 41. You Are To Put 1/4 And
Perceptively. Wait For An Appointed Time And
31. Create Servants For The Then As Second 1/4 And Wait For
Deities. Let Them Throw Their An Appointed Time.
Baskets Away. 42. That Would Be A Dual Nature
32. Enqi , At The Word Of His .
Sister, Rose Up From His Bed. 43. 180 Degrees Deity, 180
33. The Cunning And Perceptive Degrees Homo Erectus Will Give
One, The One Who Guides The Us 100% Homo Sapien.
Seeker, 44. Homo Sapien, Being Homo
34. The Skilled One Who = "Human" , Man, Sapien =
Fashions The Form Of Things, "Serpent" , Serpent Man, Seaman Or
Turned Out The Sigensigdu, Enqi Semen .
Had Them Stand At His Side, Looks 45. This Being Shall Do The
At Them Intently . Labors For You, That Your Noble
35. After Enqi , The Form Backs Will Remian Ever Strong.
Fashioner, Had, By Himself, Put

285
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
46. Start With 7 Of Yourself, 57. Use Their Genes For The
Females And 7 Of Them Males. Genetic Splicing.
47. Breed Until Perfection Is 58. My Sister, You Decree Its
Necessary. Fate.
48. This Must Not Be Forgotten. 59. Let Ninmah Force Upon It
The Removal Of The Divine The Essence Of The Deities.
Awareness. 60. Enqi Looked On Their Work
49. The Sigensigdu , Will Nip With Favor. Their Hearts Rejoiced.
Off This Clay. 61. Enqi Set Up A Feast For His
50. That Is Once The Mother Iyd And His Sister
Sigensigdu Are The Beings Who Ninmah , Who Is Also Called
Are The Children Of Anzu And Ninti .
His Host. 62. He Makes Namtar , Leader
51. The Pleidians And The Of The Baal Over Sigensigdu ,
Aldebarans Shall Seek To Mix Eat Gi-Sag As Bread, He Prepares
Their Seed With This Creation. A Great Feast For An, The Ruler Of
52. For I Enqi Son Of The Great Them All, Who Is Also Called Anu
Drago Queen Iyd Do Swim , And For Enlil , Nunamnir , The
Amongst Them In The Deeps Of Great Yah Ruler Of The Enlilites
The Sea Having 23 Of Their .
Chormosomes, I Am Half Dragos, 63. Nudimmud , The Great Weh
Thus Reptilian, And I'm Trusted By Ruler Of The Enqites Roasted
All . Holy Baby Goats .
53. Oh Ninti, You Give It Form . 64. Enqi Says To The Deities Of
54. That Is, Once You Have Weh , Eat Of The Beings Of Earth
Fashioned And Shaped And As Bread .
Breathed Into It, The Breath Of Life 65. The Reptilians Were Told
Then Will They Be Seized Upon By That They Are No Longer To Eat
The Serpent People. Of Those Beings Who Evoluted On
55. Nakhash, Haylal , The Earth, That These Great Sauruses,
Reptilian Son Of Shakhar Of Lizard Gods And Dragons Were
Maldek Shall Take Revenge On Not To Eat Of This New Creation .
Your Creation And Seek To Lead 66. However, Out Of The Sag,
Them From You And Loyalty To "Growth " Of The Gi "Earth", They
You . Can Eat, And From That Point On
56. Let Ninimma, Suzianna, Carnivorous Dinosaurs Were Made
Ninmada, Ninbara, Ninmug, To Herbivores And Not Eat Of The
Musargaba, Ningunna, Serve You Flesh Of This New Creation.
As You Form Them.

286
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
67. All The Great Deities Of Control The Strings Of Their
Weh Exalted Nudimmud, Enqi Environment.
And Honored Him In This Great 75. And He Shall Also Be The
Plan : "O Nudimmud Of Deep Binding Force Between Nunamnir
Insight: Who Else Is Given Your And Nudimmud , That Is The
Insight ! Yah And Weh .
68. O King Enqi , Great Nobl E: 76. He Shall Be Called The
Who Can Do What You Do ! Yahweh .
69. You Are Like A Fathering 77. He Is Their Allah , And They
Father, You Are The One Who Should Have No Other Allahs
Takes Care Of The Me "Sham" Beside Him, Binding No Other
The Father Of All The Lands, Partners With Him.
Sippar, Kish, Kutha, Shuruppak, 78. He Is Alone, For He Shall Be
Uruk, Isin, And Eridu, Spoke A Jealo Us Yahweh And He Will
Matali , Enqi's Pilot . Have The Power To Rain Down
70. Enqi And Ninmah , Who Is Upon Them.
Also Ninti Had A Celebration, A 79. And He Shall Be A Loving,
Shabat , They Drank Plenty Of Compassionate, Merciful, Yet A
Beer, Their Hearts Raced. Deity Not To Be Worshipped, But
71. Ninmah Says To Enqi : "On Merely To Be Called Upon For
The Form Of A Man, Good Or Bad, Help.
I Will Decree A Fate That Is Good 80. And In Time As The Tongues
Or Bad, As I Feel Like It." Shall Change He Shall Be Called By
72. When This Being Has Been Many Names Adonis, Adown,
Formed, Fashioned Into Shape, Haru, Elyon, Alah, Kurious, And
Having 180 Degrees Of Us And 180 Kristos, Christ, Jesus.
Degrees Of Maldekian , His Path 81. He Will Be Thought To Be
Agreeable, Or Disagreeable Will Be The Deities Of Deities, When In
His Decision In The Form Of Will, Fact He Is Merely An Eloh Of The
Self Determinatio N. Aluhum Called Yahweh Aluhum ,
73. All Of This After The Work One Of The Malaaikat, Angelos ,
Has Been Done And As The Or Heavenly Host.
Rumardians , They Would Also Be 82. Enqi Answer S Ninmah :
Freed To Control Their Own "The Fate That Comes To You,
Destiny , Whether It Is Good Or Bad , I Will
74. And We Shall Appoint One Counter.
Tammuz Son Of Dumuzi And 83. Ninmah Took The Clay That
Ishtar To Be Their Deity, To Covers The Abzu .

287
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
84. The First One She Made Into Decreed A Fate For Her, Built Her
A Man Who When Reaching Could A Harem. This Was The Beginning
Not Bend His Rigid Hands, Which Of Adoptions.
Resulted In The Disease Called 93. The Sixth She Made Into
Arthritis, Where Brittle Bones Something Without A Phallus Or A
Comes From . Vulva On Its Body . This Defect
85. Enqi , Seeing The First Man, Produced The Caudal Regression
Who When Reaching Could Not .
Bend His Rigid Hands Decreed Fate 94. Enqi , Seeing Something
For Him, Named Him A Servant Of Without A Phallus Or A Vulva On
The King . Its Body, To Serve The One Enlil
86. The Second She Made Into A Had Called By Name Over The
Man Who Could See Though Blind , Great Earth, The King Decreed Has
Enqi Seeing This Man, Decreed His His Fate . Thus, The Beginning Of
Fate, And Gave Him The Art Of Eunuchs Used As Servants .
Song, Named Him Chief Of The 95. Enqi Threw The Brazier,
Usumgal-Lyre , "Dragon Lyre" Incense Burner To The Ground, For
Before The Ki Ng. This Defect No Reason, He Was Having A
Produced Stigmatism In The Human Tantrum, He Acted Most
Today. Deceitfully.
87. The Third She Made Into A 96. The Great Weh Enqi Says
Man With Paralyzed Fee T. This To Ninmah : "For Every One You
Defect Produced Paralization . Have Formed , I Have Decreed
88. Enqi , Seeing The Man With Their Fate, Have Given Them
Paralyzed Feet, Gave Him His Bread, And They Shall Pray And
Melam, "Terrifying Glance, Give Thanks In This Manner By
Radiance" Like A Silver Bowl. Saying : Our Fathers Who Are In The
89. The Fourth She Made Into A Orion Skies, Holy Is Your Names. May
Man Who Kept Dripping Semen . Malakuwt Come To Us, Let Us Do
This Defect Produced The Disease Things In Agreement With You All As
Spermatorrhea You Will Them To Be Done, While On
90. Enqi, Seeing The Man Who Eridu Just As Things Are Done In The
Kept Dripping Semen, Bathed Him Orion Skies. Provide For Us With Your
With "Incantation" Water , Guidance Each Day. And Forgive Us For
91. The Fifth She Made Into A Taking Of Things That Are Not Ours
Woman Who Could Not Give Birth. As We Will Forgive All Those Who
This Defect Produced Sterileness . Took Our Things. And Lead Us Not
92. Enqi , Seeing The Woman Into Temptation, But Deliver Us From
Who Could Not Give Birth, Disagreeable: For The Kingdom Illyuwn Is

288
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Home, And Anu You Are The Power, Shaky, It Could Not Walk To The
And We Glorify You, For Ever, We Field. They No Longer Lived To Be
Now Have True Faith. 1,000, But Merely To 120, And Even
97. Now I Will Make Some For Lesser Than That.
You, And You Decree The Fate Of 104. Enqi Says To Ninmah :
The Newborn !" "For Every One You Formed, I
98. Enqi Made A Form With A Decreed Its Fate, Have Given It
Head, Eyes, A Mouth, Ears, And In Bread.
Its Center, A Nose. 105. Now You Decree The Fate
99. Enqi Says To Ninmah : Of The One I For Med. Give Him
"The Phallus Made Semen Poured Bread ."
Into The Woman's Womb Had 106. Ninmah , When She Saw
Made That Woman Give Birth In Umul , Turned To Him .
Her Womb, The Beginning Of 107. She Approac Hes Umul ,
Artificial Insemination. Questions Him, But He Cannot
100. Ninmah Stood By At Its Speak .
Birth. That Woman Brought Forth 108. She Brought Him Bread To
Had A Mouth In Its Cent Er. That Eat. He Cannot Reach For It.
Is, This New Breed Was No Longer Having Stood Up, He Cannot Sit
A Part Of The Baboon Monkey, Down, Cannot Lie Down, Cannot
But Now Had Vocal Cords And Build A House, Cannot Eat Bread. "
Could Speak Like The Gods. They 109. Ninmah Answered Enqi :
Had Achieved Vocal Cords. "The One You Made Is Neither
101. The Second One He Made Alive Nor Dead. It Cannot Lift A
Into An Umul , Its Head Sick, It Thing."
Was Hydroencephlic , Its Brain 110. Enqi Answers Ninmah :
Was Deterioting, Which Resulted In "For The Man With The Rigid
The Disease Called Aneurysm , Hands, I Decreed His Fate, Gave
And Sick Was Its Old Body Was In Him Bread;
Its Place, Which Produced The 111. For The Man Who Was Blind
Disease Called Degeneration . , I Decreed His Fate, Gave Him
102. Sick Was Its Eyes, Sick Its Bread; For The Man Who Has
Neck, Breath At An End, Ribs Paralyzed Feet , I Decreed His Fate,
Shaky, Lungs Sick, Heart Sick, Gave Him Bread;
Bowels Sick. 112. For The Man Who Kept
103. The Hand That Supported Dripping Semen , I Decreed His
His Head Could Not Put Bread In Fate, Gave Him Bread; For The
Its Mouth, Its Splintered Spine In Woman Who Could Not Give Birth
Pain, Shoulders Drooping, Feet

289
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
, I Decreed Her Fate, Gave Her 125. Take My Hand For Worthless
Bread; Is Its Use Take Back This Hand, Put
113. For The One Without Phallus Your Hand On Its Mouth. "
Or Vulva, I Decreed The Fate, 126. Now May My Penis Be
Gave It Bread; Acclaimed, May It Become A
114. My Sister, Now You Decree 'Wisdom-Endower. ' "May The
The Fate Of Umul , Give Him Enkum And The Ninkum Exalt
Bread. Thee Forever. "
115. Ninmah Answers : "See, 127. Thus, Enqi's Phallus
You Did Not Dwell In Heaven, You Became A Religious Monument As
Did Not Dwell On Earth, You Did The Obelisk Needle, The Light
Not Bring Your 'Lifted Face,' To Towers, The Minarets, The Pagodas,
The Land . And The Church's Steeple.
116. You Did Not Dwell On 128. His Penis Became The
Earth. Symbol Of Fertility And Life.
117. Your Word Was Not Heard 129. It's Referred To As An
In The House Built For Me. Erection, For He Is The Father Of
118. You Did Not Live On The Homo Erectus.
Earth . You Betray Me In The City 130. The Ish , "Enkum, And The
Built For Me: Ishaw, "Ninkum" Were Humans
119. My City Attacked, My House That Were Created By The
Destroyed, My Son Taken Captive. Anunnaqi To Worship It.
120. And Her E I Am A Refugee, 131. "O My Sister Ninti , Do You
One Who Had Fled Th E Ekur. Extol My Heroic Strength ? Do You
121. And No W I Have Not Freed Utter Songs For Me ? The Deities
Myself From Your Hand. Who Hear Them Will Rejoice.
122. Enqi Answer S Ninmah : 132. The Umul , Let Him Build
"A Word Comes Out Of Your My House.
Mouth, Who Can Alter It ? Umul , 133. On The First, Seventh, And
The Crippled Creature, Take Him Fifteenth Of The Month, According
Off Your Lap . To The Anunnaqi's Calendar ,
123. All Of The Weh Has Surely Enqi Made A Purification By
Looked With Favor Upon Your Washing.
Work . 134. Geshtue , An Anunnaqi
124. He Has Given By Me An Who Had Intelligence, They
Imperfect Hand Who Can Oppose Slaughtered In Their Assembly.
Him ! 135. Geshtue Was Sacrificed For
The Creation Of The Humims ,
For He Had Intelligence, His Blood

290
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Had To Be Mixed With Homo To Speak, Only Work . Thus, There
Erectus. Would Have Been No Complaints
136. Ninti First Washed Her Or It Would Have Been
Hands And Then Mixed His Shiru , Unorderable Complaints, Which
"Flesh" And His Blood. Could Be Interpreted As Aggression
137. They Heard The Drumbeat And Be Used As A Reason To
Forever After. Exterminate Any Aggressor .
138. A Rooakh Came Into 148. Thus The Humims Should
Existence From Th E Anunnaqi's Be Restricted From Learning
Flesh, And Ninti Proclaimed It As Languages, For It's The Key .
His Living Sign. 149. I Have Undone The Fetter
139. The Rooakh Existed So As And Granted Freedom ."
Not To Forget Geshtue . 150. They Were Released, And
140. After Ninti Had Mixed The Given Their Freedom , And They
Tiit , "Clay" , She Called Up The Wandered Throughout The World
Anunnaqi, Those Of The Yah, And They Inhabited What They Call
Enlilites And The Weh, Enqites , The Outer Fiel D. And The
The Great Aluhum . Pleidians Vamped Down On And
141. The Igigi , Spat Spittle Upon Used Them For Breeding.
The Clay. 151. 'They Listened To This
142. Mami Who Was Also Called Speech Of Hers, And Were Freed
Ninti And Ninhursag Made Her From Anxiety, And Kissed Her Feet
Voice Heard And Spoke To The :
Great Anunnaqi. 152. "We Used To Call You
143. 'I Have Carried Out Perfectly Ninti , But Now Your Name Shall
The Work That You Ordered Of Be Mami "Mistress Of All
Me. Anunnaqi ." The Giver Of
144. You Have Slaughtered The Nephish , "Spirit".
Anunnaqi Geshtue Together With 153. As You Can See The Process
His Intelligence. Of Changing You From A Homo
145. I Have Relieved You Of Your Erectus To A Homo Sapien Was
Hard Work , I Have Imposed Your Not An Easy Task, That Was Done
Load On Humim . Within A Second, With Just One
146. You Have Bestowed Noise Word Or Statement Or Command,
On Humims. In The First Process Of Changing
147. The Humims Have Your First Seed Before Those With
Acquired A Larnyx, And Were The Gift Of Procreation In The
Given The Right To Speak, When Image And After The Likeness Of
They Shouldn't Have Been Allowed The Anunnaqi .

291
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
154. There Were Many Defects Man, Out Of A (Mere) Clot Of
And Deformities, That Happened, Congealed Blood:
And Some Of These Is What 161. The Second Thing Needed
Accounts For Your Defects In The Was The Teema, That Which Had
World Today. There Was Many Trial To Be Obtained From The Blood
And Errors . Was Teema , Meaning
155. Binding The Essence Of The "Personality", That Which Makes A
Deities, The Anunnaqi Upon Person What He Is And Different
Mortals Was A Task Indeed. From Any Other Person Dna's And
156. As Mentioned Previously, Rna's.
The Graftation Of Homo Erectus 162. Thus In Your Bible Genesis
To Homo Sapiens Was Done By 1:26 It Says: "Let Us Create Man
Genetic Manipulation, Which Was In Our Image After Our
The First Pro-Creation And In-Vitro Likeness, Acting Just Like
Fertilization, Which Is Fertilization Ourselves." You Were To Have
Of A Biological Entity Or Process The Personality Of The Anunnaqi
Developed Or Maintained In A Binded Upon You.
Controlled, Non-Living 163. The Third Thing Was The
Environment, As A Laboratory Shiru , Meaning "The Flesh" . The
Vessel; Or In Glass Tubes As Extract From The Shiru Was
Depicted On The Seal Of An Referred To In Dealing With Non -
Ancient Sumerian Cylinder, Which Anunnaqi.
Was The Second Procreation, 164. And The Fourth Thing Being
157. The Creation Of What Is The Kisru , Meanin G "The Semen
Called Lulu Amelu , Meaning Of Man" Coming From The Male's
"Primitive Workers" Also Known As Member, Which Means Semen, The
Adama . These Are Two Different Male's Sperm.
Experiments, Leading To The One 165. Enqi's Instructions To
Humim Beings. Ninti Were To Get The
158. This Breeding Was Done In Anunnaqi's Blood And, The Shiru
A Laboratory Called Shimti, , "Flesh" Of Homo Erectus, And
Meaning "House Where The Wind Of Through Immersions In A Purifying
Life Is Breathed In." Bath, Obtain Their Essences. Thus,
159. To Create The Adama , 4 These Two Divine Extracts Were To
Elements Were Needed: Be Mixed Well By Ninti In A
160. First They Needed The Blood Purifying Bath.
Of Ninti . Thus, In Your Holy 166. This Is Where The Lulu
Qur'an It Says In 96:2: " Create Amelu , The Mixed One , "Primitive
Worker" Stemmed From .

292
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
167. Ninti And Enqi Went Into Set Of Reproduction, You Were
The Room Of Fate . The Womb- Gifted With The Ability To
Deities Were Assembled . Enqi Reproduce, And You Became
Trodded The Clay In Her Presence Homo Sapiens , Meaning "Intelligent
And Ninti Kept Reading The Man," Which Happened 250,000
Affirmation . I Am In The Love Years Ago.
Of The All, And Al l Love Is In
Me, I Am A Part Of The All,
And The All Is A Part Of Me, I Scroll Fifteen
Am One With The All, And The
All Is One With Me, I Can Star Beings
Succeed As A Part Of The All (19x8=152)
And Fail As An Individual, I
Can Be All That I Wish To Be
In The All, As Long As My Question: Who Came First, The
Wish Is To Stay In The All, I Sumerian Or The Egiptians?
Am Never Alone, The All Is, I
Am, The All Can, I Can, The You Have More Than One Period
All Does, I Do. Of Time When Dealing With The
168. When She Had Finished Egiptians.
Reciting, She Pinched Off Fourteen 2. You Have The Predynastic
Pieces Of Clay, And Set Seven Egiptians Who Are Called The Pa
Pieces On The Right, And Seven On Khemenu "The Ogdoad" And Pa
The Left . Between Them She Put Neteraat "The Deities", Existing
Down A Mud Brick. Before You Had The 46 Dynasties
169. She Used A Reed, And And Pharoahs In Ancient Egipt.
Opened It Up To Cut The Umbilical 3. Then You Had The Dynastic
Cord . She Called Up The Womb- Egiptians, Which Started When The
Deities, Fourteen In All. Pharoah Menes, Who Is Also Called
170. Seven Of Them Created Mizraim In Your Bible (Genesis
Males And Seven Created Females . 10:6), A Khamite Or Kemet Who
This Creation Gave Birth To Your Came To Egipt From Sumer And
Sumerians , And Your Lulu Took Control Of Both Upper And
Amelu , They Were The First To Lower Egipt, And Egipt Became
Work In The Gold Mines Of Known As Kemet, Confusing The
Raphali . Egiptian Word Kam For Black Sun
171. The First Male Lulu Were With The Semitic Word Kham
Hybrids, Which Could Not "Burnt Black", Son Of Noah, Before
Procreate . Then After The Second Kemet It Was Called Tama-Re
293
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
"Land Of Ra", Or "Earth, Water, 10. According To The Ancient
Sun", And Before That It Was Tablets Of Sumer, They Came In A
Known As Ganawa. Planet Like Craft Called Nibiru,
Which We Know Is The Same As
The Mandjet That Re Came.
Question: Who Taught The 11. Thus They Must Be From The
Ancient Egiptians? Same Place And Being The
Sumerian Tablets Don't Give You
4. First Of All, The Word Ancient The Exact Place We Do Find The
Can Be Deceptive With So Many Place As Septet Or "Sirius" And
Calendars Existing And So Many This Septet Is One Of The Planets
Different Cultures Existing. Called Sibtu Of Ihm "Illyuwn", A
5. The Word Ancient Is From Distant Three Sun, Tri-Solar System
Latin Anteanus And Simply Means Of The 19th Galaxy.
"Before".
6. Before What?, Or Before When?
Is The Question. Question: Did The Anunnaqi
7. And In This Case Before The 46 Encounter The Tama-Rean
Dynastic Period Is Ancient Egipt. (Tahites) Before They
8. And That Is The Ancient Encountered The Sumerians?
Egiptians Of The 46 Dynastic
Periods Were Taught By The 12. Yes. The Original Tama-Reans
Sumerians, Who Were Taught By Called, Deneg Or Dangs, The
The Anunnaqi, As They Were Original Ptahite, Pygmies, Or Dwarf
Called In Sumeria And Eloheem Called Tar Had Received Contact
And They Are Called In The Bible, From The Neteraat Or Neteraat
And Alihaat In The Qur'an. Long Before The Migration To
9. And These Beings Were What Is Called Egipt By Narmer,
Supposedly As Nephileems Have Who Invaded That Part Of The
Come From The Skies (Torah, Or Land With A Mixture Of Asiatics
Old Testament, Genesis Chapter And Tammahu.
6). 13. The Land Was Then Referred
To As Tar Or Tar-Merry And Even
Tar-Nehisi, Which Later Became
Question: And These Anunnaqi Known As Nubia.
From Which Star Did They 14. The Watusi From Amongst
Come? Them Of The Dogon Were Called
Dinka, Descendants Of Sea People,
Or Tall Reptilians, As Opposed To

294
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
The Tarites, Who Were Related To 20. When The Sumerians Came
The Pygmy Or Dwarf People, From Into Egipt, From Sumer, They
The Area Of Uganda, Having Taught Those Egiptians Their
Moved There From Monodappa. Culture, Mixed The Two Such As
Wearing Pa Degan "The Fake
Beard", Pottery, Their Dress Codes,
Question: So There Were Two And Their Caste System Of
Groups Of Egiptians? Rulership.
21. Prior To That The Egiptians
15. Yes. Those Neolithic Negroids, Lived Their Own Lifestyle Before
Pygmies Who Predate By Thousands They Came Into Contact With The
Of Years, The 46 Dynasties, Who Sumerians And Were Masters Of
Had Sumerian Influence. Alchemy And Sciences.
16. Ancient Hieroglyphic Script
Has Been Discovered In Egipt On
Tablets Dating Back To 3300 B.C. Question: How Close Are Egipt
Older Than What Is Claimed The And Sumer Geographically?
Tablets Of Sumer.
17. Both Tama-Rean And 22. Egipt Is Approximately 900
Sumerian Culture Have The Same Plus Miles Away From The Country
Exact Claims And Describe The Of Iraq Which Was Ancient Sumer.
Same Exact Events With Different 23. The Two Civilizations
Names As What Happened With Intermingled With Each Other.
Different Languages. 24. Both Were Nuwaupian By
18. Cuneiform Verses Hieratic. Race, 9 Ether Beings.
Both Originate With Hieroglyphs Or
Picture Drawing And Describe
Visitors From The Same Star Question: So Who Are The
Systems Ihm "Illyuwn", Sahu "Orion" Sumerians, And Where Did They
And Septet "Sirius". Come From?

25. Before I Go On To Explain


Question: So Where Do The The Origin Of The Sumerians, A
Sumerians Fit In? Word That Gives You Your Word
Summer Meaning "Heat; From
19. The 46 Dynastic Periods Of Middle English Sumer, And From
The New Egiptians Were Taught By Old English Sumor Now In French
The Sumerians, Who Were Taught It's Sommier, Meaning "Pack
By The Anunnaqi. Animal, Beast Of Burden".
295
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
26. It Is Clear That The 35. The Shaggies From The Planet
Anunnaqi Intended For The Eduma In The Sirius Star
Sumerians As They Called Them Constellation ,
To Be Workers In The Gold Mines, 36. The Andromedans From
In The Heat Of The Day, The Andromeda Galaxy,
27. I Figured It Is Important For 37. The Dracos From Some Of
You To Overstand What The Name The Many Planets Of The Six Sun,
Is Before We Go Any Further, That Is Star Constellation Of Sahu ,
28. Now The Biblical Sumer Is Called "Orion" ,
Shinar, Meaning "The Plains" That Is 38. The Reptilians And The
Where The Anunnaqi Crashed Rumardians From The Zeta
Down. Reticuli,
29. It Was Later Called Eridu, 39. The Reptilian Nommo
Meaning "Home Away From Home," From Sirius A, The Naarians
Which Later Became The Word From Sirius B In Canis Minor,
Ereth In Aramic Hebrew, Ard In 40. The Procyonians From
Ashuric Arabic, And Earth In Procyon , A Mixture Of Various
English. Beings From Different Star
30. The Original Name Being Gi, Constellations, Breeding A Super
For Gaia, Or Gi From Where They Hybrid As Neutranoids, Ranging In
Get Geo, Geography, And Tamtu, All Complexions, Textured Hair
Or Tiwawat, And Earth. And Extremely Athletic Physique,
31. Sumer Again Is Where You 41. The Ashtar Command
Get Your Word Summer. Beings From Aldebaran , Th E
32. It Is Important That I Take Pleiadians From Kiymah ,
You To The Beginning Of Life "Pleiades" , An Open Star Cluster In
Forms On The Planet Earth, The Constellation Taurus,
Originally Called Tamtu . Consisting Of Several Hundred
33. This Planet, Then Called Stars, Meaning Windows, Of Which
Tamtu , Or Tiwawat Was Used Six Are Visible To The Naked Eye.
As A Vacation Resort, A Hunting 42. Pleiades Is The Home Of The
Ground, Where Beings From Other Blonde Haired Blue Eyed As Their
Planets Came Here And Hunted Brothers From Aldebaran, Both In
Dinosaurs, Like They Portray In The The Taurus Constellation Of Stars.
Movie Predator. 43. All Sorts Of Different Beings
34. Different Beings From Other From Other Galaxies Were Coming
Planets, Like The Troglodites To This Planet, As Well As The
From Maldek , Planet Clarion, Also Called Clariton

296
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
For Hunting, Mining, Collecting Unfuz, Aktin, In Ihm "Illyuwn" ,
Resources, Etc. The 19 T H Galaxy After This One,
44. The Ashtar Command , The The 18th Called The Milky Way, A
Pleaidians And The Procyonians Tri Solar System Having 3 Suns
Were Mixing Their Seeds With Each Utu, Afsu And Shamush , And
Other, Which Was Against The 38 Moons.
Universal Confederation Law. 51. The Beings Of The Galaxy Of
45. However, They Broke The Ihm "Illyuwn" When Their Three
Law And Were Sneaking And Suns Began To Deplete In Energy,
Mixing With Each Other, Just As They Departed And Left To Reside
Negroids, Moors Mongoloids, In Another Place Until Their's Could
Asians And Caucasoids, Albinos Be Repaired.
Are Doing Today.
46. This Is Why They Say In The
Qur'an, Koran 49:13 , That Allah Question: How Did They Leave?
Says: "I Made You All Into Tribes
And Families That You May 52. They Built A Massive Orb
Know Eachother..." Shaped Craft Called Mandjet Of
47. The Word Tribe Is An Earth Re Or Nibiru Of Murduk , The
Term Word, That Describes A Sun Diety . As You Can See One
Genealogy, Groups Of People And The Same.
Genetically Related By Birth Or
Marriage.
48. A Nation Are A Group Of Question: Were There More
People With The Same Nationality. Than One Massive Orb Shaped
49. None Of These Beings Are Craft?
Rizqiyians From Ihm "Illyuwn" ,
Though The Rizqiyians Have 53. Yes. Nine In All Were Created
Visited All Of The Star To Take Rizqiyians To Various
Constellations And Have Welcomed Points In The Universe To Find A
Them To Stay On One Of The Suitable Environment Until They
Three Continents Of The Planet Could Repair Their Own .
Rizq, Namely Zarantu , 54. Very Much Like As The
50. Many Others Visit Some Of Ozone Layer Depletes On Earth
The Other 19 Planets , Sibtu, Nasa Is Sending Up Crafts
Buwan, Tibut, Kaatu, Rizq, Repeatedly Scouting Its Solar System
Finzat, Hulwa, Fuuzat, Qibsu, To Find Inhabitable Planets .
Nuyat, Lityan, Qumar, Illatuz, 55. Because In Time Earth Will
Qispis, Hibuw, Muha, Ghara, Become Unhabitab Le. Ice Caps Will
297
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Melt, The Waters Will Rise After 6 Nibiru Crossed The Milky Way
Meteorites Hit Eart H. From The 19th Galaxy Into The
56. Crafts Will Depart From 18th Galaxy On To The 17th Galaxy
Earth, Seeking Other Planets In .
Which To Live Until Earth Can Be 61. Then Launching Out Smaller
Repaired, I Ts Rainbows Or Crafts Called Shams , Visited
Spheres Remended. Sirius, Orion, Aldebaran, Pleides,
Arcturus, Mars.

Question: Did All Of The


Rizqiyians Leave? Question: What Of Sirius?

57. No, Many Rizqiyians Died 62. Looking From Planet Earth
There On The Planet, Which Toward The Southern Skies Between
Consisted Of Three Continents . 1. South East And South West You
Zarantu, 2. Darnuriyya, 3. Are Looking At Puppis "Apophis,
Kusmusta . Zarantu Was Poppi, Or Apep" The Lowest Point
Inhabited By Visitors, And The Called Hell To Its Left, That Would
Other Two Were Restricted To The Be From The East Point Between
Rizqiyians , "The Providers" . North East And South East.
58. Visitors Were Not Allowed To 63. You See Akir Constellation Of
Go There Without A Rizqiyian Leo In The Shape Of Pa Ruwty
Escor T. "The Sphinx" Of Egipt The Akir
59. Many Of The Inhabitors, The "Lion", With Its 9 Sun, The Largest
Visitors Also In Other Crafts Being Regulus.
Provided For Them, Departed And 64. Further To The Left You Will
Many Of Them Also Stayed Behind Find Draco, Home Of The
And Died. Draconians, (Luciferians) The
Symbol Of The Serpent With Its 13
Suns In Which Was The Original
Question: Where Did They Go? Planet Maldek.
65. Just Above Puppis To The
60. A Specific Crew Of 144,000 Right You Find Canis Major In
Selected By The Dinneer Who Which Is Septet, Or Sibtu "Sirius"
Manned The Craft Most Known To With Its 11 Major Suns.
The Sumerians As Nibiru Named 66. Moving Upward You Come To
After Murduk , Or Re "Ra" , The The Right Orion With Its 19 Major
Sun Deity, Yet The Tama-Reans Suns, Linking It To The 19th
(Egiptians) Called It Mandjet. This Galaxy, One Of Which Is Rigel And

298
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
It Extends On Into Aldebaran With 73. The Presence Of Nibiru
Its 2 Suns. Drained Its Energy And It Collapsed
67. Remember Its Sun Of Of Each .
System Has Planets Moving Around 74. When Nibiru Passed By
Them. Sirius B , Its Presence Drained The
68. As You Move From The Energy From The Sun And Caused
Eastern Skies To The West Where This Great Star , Sirius B, To
The Sun Of Righteousness Will Collapse.
Raise You, And Moving From 19th, 75. Sirius B Had Two Planets.
18th, 17th, 16th Galaxy All The Naarians, An Independent
Interwoven And Many Of Their Species Of Greys, Were On One
Suns And Planets Move Through Planet And The Nommus ,
One Another, Sharing The Same Or Reptilians Were On The Other.
Visiting Other Galaxies. Both Planets Rotated Around Sirius
69. Sirius Was First Sighted In A.
Modern Times In The Year 1970 76. The Day Of The Deities'
A.D., As The Sun Of Man Rose Out Arrival Was Known To The Dogons
Of The East Unto The West In The Of Mali, Africa, Who Descended
Year 1970 A.D., As The Reformer From Predynastic Egiptians, As The
Of This Day And Time. Day Of The Fish, Dug, Or The Fish
70. Sirius Was Known As Man Called Later Dagan, And
Septet, Sibtu Sopdet, Sopdu Or These Visitors From That Star
Sothis, And Consists Of Three System Were Seen As Amphibious
Seperate Suns, A Tri-Solar System, Beings, Coming From A Planet
Like The Tri-Solar System Of Rizq Orbiting Sirius B, One Of The
In Illyuwn. Each Having A Three Stars In The Sirius Star
Number Of Planets. System.
71. Sirius A Had Two Planets,
Which Move Into Ihm "Illyuwn" ,
The 19th Galaxy As The 3rd Planet Question: Where Did These
Sibtu In Ihm "Illyuwn" , Making Beings Go After The Depletion
Its Orbit Around The First Of Of Their Sun?
Illyuwn's Three Suns, As The
Universe Turns . 77. When Their Sun Died, The
72. And Sirius B Was A Smaller Naarians Followe D Nibiru
Sun And Appeared As A Satellite Of Through The Milky Way.
Sirius A, It Moved Through The 78. While In Pursuit, These
16th Galaxy, Called Sahu Or Beings, The Reptilians, Chased The
Orion. Greys, The Rumardians Who Also

299
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Lived On Sirius Because They Question: How Did They Survive
Wanted To Rule Over Them And In Another Environment?
Use Them As Slaves.
79. Some Of The Rumardians 84. By Breeding In Genetically
Came Down To The Planet Earth Altering Their Dnas To Be Able To
Fro M Zeta Reticuli. Both Beings, Survive In Other Atmospheres.
The Nommus And The
Rumardians Took Residence On
The Plane T Tiamat /Earth. Question: Were There Any Other
Beings In The Sirius Tri-Sun
System?
Question: Where On Earth Did
The Nommos Live?
85. Yes, There Were Shaggy Like
Mammalian Beings, Tall In Stature
80. In The Deep Beneath The Shaggies.
Waters. 86. They Resided On A Planet
Called Eduma Of Sirius C ,
Which Had Five Planets In All .
Question: Where On Earth Did 87. They Also Departed And
The Rumardians Live. Came To Eart H.
88. They Are Known By Many
81. On The Lands In The Bush. Names, The Simplest Is Big Foot .
Eventually Becoming The Pygmies. 89. Their Dna Strands Were Also
Used In The Seeding Process.

Question: How Did This Benefit


The Rizqyians? Question: So The Human Beings
Today On Planet Earth Are
82. The Rizqiyians Saw That Composed Of Different Species?
They Could Breed With These
Creatures And Become Reptilian 90. Yes. Four Master Races Came
And Mammalian And Survive In Together To Create An Incubation
A Single Sun Solar System Until An Laboratory, Which You Call Earth .
Appointed Time And They Will Be 91. These Beings Are Elul,
Able To Return To Heaven . Neteraat, Anunnaqi , And
83. Many Of The Rizqiyians Nommos .
Mixed In With The Reptilians And 92. The Elite Of These Beings
Others With The Homo Erectus. Known To Us As The Deities,
(Gods) Of Creatio N.
300
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
93. The Process Of Germinating The Land, In Her Waters, And
T He Planet Earth After The Big Hovering In Her Skies.
Bang Or The Crash O F Ra's 102. Earth Was Also Used As A
Mandjet Or Murduq's Nibiru , Hunting Ground . Beings Would
Resulted In Human Being's Today. Intergalactically Travel From Planet
To Planet Doing What Was Called
Planetary Shopping.
Question: Why Four Different 103. All Of These Beings Treaded
Names, For It Appears To Be To And Fro On Earth's Surface, As
One Group Of Beings? Well As In Her Seas, And Flew In
The Skies Of Eart H.
94. Their Names Describe Events 104. However, These Beings,
In Their Lives As In All Other Agreeable And Disagreeable
Beings. Brought Disorder To The Planet
95. The Elul From Above, Earth And Destruction Was Brought
These Beings Never Materialize Or Upon Th E Planet Earth By
Took On Physical Form, They Meteorite W Ars.
Remained Etherians . 105. The Planet Was Under The
96. Neteraat Became The Care Of The Serpent People And
Guardians Over The Planet, Thus The Dragon People, Who Live
Influenced The Egiptians , Who Under The Sea And On The Land.
Influenced All Other Civilized And 106. Firstly, You Must Overstand
Advanced Societies . The Purpose Of The Anunnaqi
97. Anunnaqi Merely Described Coming To Th E Planet Earth.
How They Came To Earth In 107. Overstand That There Are
Groups Of 50. Two Groups Of Anunnaqi , Or
98. Nommos Were The Keepers Aluhum , One Being Of Nefer ,
Of The Law. "Agreeable" And The Other Being
99. They Had A Sacred Code Of Of The Netchnetch , "Disagreeable"
Recognition Known As .
Tamunefuset, Which Described 108. Nefer Or Yah Was
The Condition Of The Plane T. Governed By One Named
100. Ta "Earth, Matter, Soil" , Mu Nunamnir , Who Was Given The
"Water, Rain, Moistness", Nefu Title , Enlil , Second Son Of Anu
"Wind, Air, Breath," And Set "Fire, And Antum ,
Light, Sun" , The Four Winds. 109. And Netchnetch Or Weh
01. So All Of These Different Was Governed By One Named
Beings, And Different Species Were Nudimmud , Who Was Given The
Dwelling On The Planet Earth, On

301
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Title Enqi, First Son Of Anu And Enqi And Enlil , Thus He Was
Iyd . Called Melchizedek .
110. One Ruled The Ground , 118. Between The Two Brothers
Enqi, Meaning "Ruler Of Gi, There Was Much Noise That Was
"Earth," And The Other Ruled The Heard Throughout The Heaven And
Skies , Enlil , Meaning "Ruler Of Lil, The Earth.
"Skies." 119. Murduk Was Given A
111. Above Both Of Them Was Special Weapon, Called The Tillu,
The Great Anu , Son Of Anshar By His Grandfather Anu .
And Kishar , Who Is The Father 120. It Was A Laser Weapon, And
Of Enlil And Enqi . With It He Kept The Peace.
112. This Great Ruler Anu Was 121. Murduk Was First In
Protected By His Grandson Command In The Realm Of
Murduk , Son Of Enqi And Malakuwt , The Abode Of The
Damkina . Anunnaqi Aluhum .
113. Murduk Was Mean And 122. And Tarnush , Also Called
Very Disagreeable. Zuen Was Second In Command
114. He Hated His Own Father Under Murduk .
Because He Dared To Question His 123. He Was Commissioned By
Grandfathe R Anu's Authority . Murduk , And Was Designated As
115. Murduk Protected His One Of The One Hundred Most
Grandfather In All Things. Able And Brilliant Personalities, In
116. As A Gift For His Loyalty, More Than Seven Hundred
What His Grandfather Did Was Sent Thousand Of His Kind.
Him Amongst The Igigi To Study, 124. However Tarnush Felt That
And When He Had Completed This Murduk Was Not Qualified For
Task, His Grandfathe R Anu Was Leading The Fleets Of Anu ,
Then Able To Reverse His Polarity, 125. And This Disagreement
From Disagreeable To Agreeable, Caused A Small War, And A Clash
And He Became Known As On The Planet Rizq , Which Is The
Miyka'el , The Defender Of El Planet Of The Rizqiyians ,
Elyown , The Spiritual Name Of Another Name For The Anunnaqi
Anu , As Well As On Or An, , On The 8th Planet Rizq In The
Annu. 19th Galaxy Called Ihm "Illyuwn" .
117. Being Given This Very Rare 126. Due To The War Between
Gift From Anu , Anu Then Tarnush Also Known As
Assigned Him To Keep The Peace Humbaba And Murduk ,
And Justice Between The Two , 127. Tarnush Attacked The
Planet Rizq With A Shield

302
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Depleter And This Bomb Caused 138. And Others Went To The
The Natural Atmosphere Of Rizq Star Constellati On Arcturus In
To Deplete . The Bootes Constellaton, Making
128. Its Ozone Layer Was Almost Them A Temporary Home.
Destroyed . 139. Exploration Was Necessary,
129. The Rizqiyians Had No Thus, The Breeding And Grafting
Protection From The Three Suns Of Explorers Became Necessary,
And Their Ultra-Violet Rays. Called Again Creating And Making,
130. Their Atmosphere Was 140. And This Necessity Gave Birth
Dwindling Away And Many To The Rumardians , Who Later
Rizqiyians Departed To Other Became Known As Th E Greys.
Galaxies And Star Constellations. 141. The Rumardians Were
131. One In Particular Was The Grafted From Various
Star Constellation Called The Extraterrestrial Species;
Pleiades ; Seeking Help From The 142. And Their Purpose Was To
Pleiadians , Which Was Only Met Be Explorers And Worthy Servants.
With Hostility And Jealousy, 143. Their Explorations Took
132. Many Of The Rizqiyians Them To Lahmu Today Called ,
Were Raped By Thes E Pleiadians , Mars, And Sheshqi , Called The
So That They Could Mix Their Seed Moon Where Plans For The
. Construction Of Cylinder Crafts,
133. The Pleiadians Could Not Which Were Mother Ships For
Resist The Majesty Of The Smaller Crafts Called Shams, Were
Rizqiyians. Built .
134. Meanwhile Back On Rizq 144. The Rumardians
The Energy Field Was Starting To Transported Gold Dust To The
Increase And The Hole Was Starting Moon, Then From There To
To Lose Its Color. Nibiru , And From There On To
135. So The Rizqiyians Needed The Planet Rizq In The 19th
To Build A Protection; Galaxy.
136. A Dome Of Gold Dust To 145. After Surveying The Planet
Protect The Planet From The Earth, They Returned To Lahmu ,
Damaging Ultra Violet Rays, Being "Mars" To Council About The Plan
That Gold Reflects The Sun's Rays. To Replenish This Now Dead
137. The Rizqiyians Aborted Planet, When This Job Was
Rizq And The Pleaides And Completed, These Beings Were
Moved On To Some Of The Planets Freed, They Had Their Own
In The Sahu "Orion" Star Freedom.
Constellation Called Heaven,

303
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
146. Some Chose Pleiades , And Scroll Sixteen
Arcturus As Their Home, Others
Went To Sirius , And Some Made The Anunnaqi's Oath
Their Home In Sothis , "Orion." (19x12=228)
147. Sirius Had Two Planets,
Sigui Tulu , Which Is Sirius A , And When All Of The Anunnaqi Sat
Bu Tulu , Which Is Sirius B , The In Assembly They All Took An
Other Star Is A Dead Flat Star, Oath, Which Was Not To Create
Which Is Called Emme Ya , Or Homo Sapiens With The Ability To
Digitaria . Pro-Create, Only Under The
148. Both Planets Rotate Around Restriction Of The Anunnaqi .
Sirius A . 2. The Anunnaqi Were Not To
149. When Th E Rumardians Reproduce Or Have Sexual
Came To Earth, They Went Intercourse With The Lulus . This
Directly To The Original Pygmy Was Considered Bestiality.
Tribes Of Bushmen In South 3. However Enqi Broke The
Africa Who Were The Kishite , Oath, And Started Reproducing
Cushite , And The Naarians With The Lulus , And Gave Birth
Went Directly To The Hawilahite To Enoshites.
Tribe . 4. Thus In Your Bible Genesis
150. These Tribes Lived And The 6:1 It Says : Men, The Adamites
Rumardians Taught Them About Were Multiplying On The Earth
The Beings From The Sta R Septet, And Had Bath, "Daughters" Born
Or Sibtu "Sirius". To Them ,
151. Then On The Arrival Of The 5. And Verse 2 Speaks Of What's
Reptilians , Who In Pursuit Of The Called Th E Bane Aluhum, "The
Rumardians , Crashed Down Also Sons Of Gods" , This Disagreeable ,
Amongst The Watusi Tribe, Who Enqi's Children, Saw The
Were A Mixture Of Ptahite And Daughters Of Adamites "Men"
Cuthite Tribes, From The 200 That They Were Tobe , "Fair" ;
Fallen Angels, Descending And That Is Good Nature, And They
Taking By Force The Women Of Took Them By Force As Wives .
Ptah . Note: These Are Only The Sons Of
152. The Rumardians Were Eloheem , Not The Origina L
Breeding With The Ptahites And Eloheem.
The Reptilians Were Breeding 6. Meaning Not Only Did They
With The Hawilahites . Take Them, But They Kidnapped
Them And Made Them Wives, Of

304
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
All Which They Chose . This Was Ones", Were Of Renown, And
The Lulu Woman. The English Word Renown Is
7. Then Verse 3 Picks Up That Sham, Which Meant "Air Vehicles
This Yahuwa, Lord Spoke Out Or Rocketships, Simply Up There".
About His Rooakh, Soul Not 14. So Enqi Broke The Oath, To
Always Staying With Man, Go Against His Brother Enlil And
Adamites Because He Is Also Gave These Lulus Sexual
Bashar , Flesh . Reproduction, And Taught These
8. Meaning Yahuwa Was Spirit Lulus How To Have Sexual
And Also Flesh, Just Like The Arousement Through A Hindu
Adamites Now, And Would Only School Called The Kama Sutra,
Stay With Them For 120 Years. "Study Of Love Making."
9. Verse 4 Speaks About 15. This Being Because Enqi Was
Nephileems, Which Means "Those Half Reptilian, From His Mother
Who Fell Down To Earth," Iyd's Side.
Translated As Giants Living On 16. Iyd Was Half Draconian And
Earth In Those Days. Half Anunnaqi.
10. This Is Telling You That These 17. She Was Mixed With Part
Giants Were Already Living On The Reptilian , The Dracos , Also
Planet Earth. Known As Valkuns , That Were
11. And Also It States After That Living In The Seas, Also Known As
When Bane Aluhum , "Son Of The Maldekians , Living Beneath
Gods", Came In Unto The Th E Bermuda Triangle, In Mu
Daughters Of Adamites , And Bore And Atlantis .
Children, The Same Became 18. Not To Be Mistaken With
Ghibbore "Mighty Men" , Which Another Type Of Maldekians ,
Were Of Old , Enoshites Of Called The Primitives .
Renown. 19. The Valkuns That Lived In
12. Let It Be Known That; The The Sea, Were From The Mizar
Word Children In Your Bible Is Constellation, Which Is Also
Italicized To Say That The Word Is Referred To As Zeta Reticuli .
Not There In The Aramic Hebrew 20. They Originated From The
Language . Planet Maldek , However When
13. The Statement Really Is : Their Planet Was Destroyed Some
"And They Bore Ghibbore , Took Residence On The Planet
"Mighty Men, Which Of Owl am" , Earth,
Which Is Poorly Translated As 21. While Others Took Residence
"Old", Meaning "Everlasting Or In The Constellatio N Draco , And
Eternal Or Perpetual Or Ancient Zeta Reticuli .

305
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
22. One Group Were Known As 30. The Word Zeta Is The 6th
The Primitives , Letter In The Greek Alphabet .
23. And One Was Known As The 31. The Early Letter Zeta Was
Dragon , Or Draco . Originally An I . The Greek
24. Both Of These Beings Were Alphabet Came From The
Testing With Humins In Hopes Of Phoenicians.
Breeding More Humanoid Beings 32. The Letter Z Is The Replica
To Take Over The Planet Earth. Of The Cobra, Snake, Which
25. The Primitives From The Resembles The Symbol For The
Bermuda Triangle, Sometimes Zeta Reticulans .
Called Atlantis , Refused To 33. The Letter Zaiyn Z , Is The
Cooperate And Surrender To Their 7th Letter In The Hebrew Alphabet
Ancestors. Atlantis Was And Still Is And It Means "Weapon".
In North And South America. The 34. In The Canaanite Language,
Very Word Is From Atlan Meaning The Letter Used As A Z Also Means
"To Vacate, Or Vacation". Weapon.
26. The Ones Who Came In, 35. The Letter Zaay Is The
Were Hoping That The Primitives Eleventh Letter Of The
From The Bermuda Triangle Ashuric/Syriac Arabic Alphabet. As
Would Accept The Old Ways From A Numeral Zaiyn Denotes Seven.
When They Lived On The Planet 36. Enqi Was Born Hal F
Maldek And Follow Their Old Reptilian , Drago And Half
Leadership. Anunnaqi , And Was Transformed.
27. However, It Was Wrong. So 37. Enqi Was Preferred On The
There Have Been A Battle Going Planet Earth By The Dragos ,
On The Planet Earth, Beneath It, Reptilians Over His Brother Enlil
And Interdimensionally, Between .
The Two Groups Of Reptilians . 38. The Draconian Men Did Not
28. One Group Is Set On Like Enlil , However They Liked
Evacuating The Planet Earth And Enqi , Which Is What Caused Most
Taking Control Of It By Of The Conflicts Between Enqi
Imprisoning Human Beings And And Enlil . However Their
Using Them As Food, Which Are Women Loved Enlil Because He
The Primitives , And The Other Was In Control Of Bringing Groups
Group Is Interested In The Divine Of Anunnaqi Down To Earth,
In Humans By Breeding The Genes And They Wanted To Mix Their
Into The Human Beings. Seed With The Male Anunnaqi.
29. This Is The Group That Iyd,
Mother Of Enqi Came From.

306
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Question: Can You Tell Me More 42. The Tropic Of Cancer Is The
About Atlantis? Line That Travels Straight Around
The Globe And Touches All Of The
39. Atlan Later Called Atlantis Special Spots, Which Included The
Is Located Off The Coast Of Pyramid In Egypt, And The
Bermuda, Florida And Puerto Rico, Pyramids In Mexico.
Which Would End Up In The
Center Of The Great Land Mass
And Was The Power Source Of Old Question: So Why Did Anu Take
Atlan , Called The Bermuda A Draconian As A Mate:
Triangle Today; In The Gulf Of
Amexem Later Calle D Mexico. 43. When Anu First Came To
Earth/Terra 500,000 Years Ago, The
Dragon People And The Snake
Question: What Are The People Were Already Here. They
Mystical Triangles? Were Unwilling To Share Or Sell
Part Of The Planet.
40. To Create The Sacred Double 44. Anu Wanted The Gold To
Triangle, Which Became The Shield Take Back To His Home Planet In
Of Seti I , Called David In Your Rizq, Called Paradise Or Janna,
Bible, You Have What Is Referred However The Dragon People Feared
To As The Ascending Triangle And That Anu Would Not Respect Their
The Descending Triangle . Peaceful Ways.
41. One Is The Angel's Triangle In 45. They Had Spent Years Setting
Bermuda, Called The Bermuda Lines Of Magnetic Energy Around
Triangle, On A 32 To 33 Degree Earth And Had Constructed Endless
Latitude, Which Connects From Tunnels In Cooperation With The
Bermuda, Puerto Rico To Miami Snake People. This Place Was Called
Florida, It Is The Inverted Triangle, Hell Or Jahannam.
It Points Down, And The Other Is 46. The Energy Vortexes Which
The Devil's Triangle, In The Pacific Power Their Civilizations Are In
Ocean, Also Called The Devil's Sea, These Tunnels, Along With
In The Phillipine Sea At The Tropic Enormous Stores Of Precious
Cancer, 32 To 33 Degree Latitude, Stones And Metals. There Were A
And The Three Points Are From Few Battles Happening On Earth
Northern Phillipines, Guam, And And In The Skies.
The East Coast Of Japan. This Is 47. Finally, Arrangements Were
The Upright Triangle. Made, Territories Were Drawn.

307
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
48. To Keep The Peace On The Draconians And The Rizqiyians,
Planet Earth Between The You Had To Marry A Daughter Of
Draconians , The Devils, And The One Of Them.
Rizqiyians, The Angels, You Had 55. Just Like African Tribes Are
To Marry A Daughter Of One Of Doing Today, When Two Tribes
Them. Come Together, They Keep The
49. So Anu Agreed To Mate With Peace By Offering Their Daughter
A Draconian Princess Named To The Ruler, Or To Marry Into
Iyd/Id To Seal The Alliance, And Another Tribe.
He Gave Iyd To His Wife/Sister 56. This Was The Case With Iyd
Antum To Be Her Highest Servant, And Anu.
Cortisan. They Gave Birth To 57. This Mixture Is What Made
Nudimmud/Ea, And He Was To Enqi Part Reptilian And Part
Be Ruler Of The Earth. Anunnaqi.
50. Nudimmud Was Educated 58. And The Reptilian Side Of
On Nibiru, He Became A Master Enqi Dominated The Anunnaqi
Scientist And Builder. Side, Which Made Him More
51. The Leaders Amongst The Sexually Active, Because Reptilians
Draconians Felt That If They Enjoy Sex With Humans.
Mixed Their Seed With Other 59. They Are Constantly Abducting
Beings Then, They Would Be Humans, For That Main Purpose.
Included In The Interplanetary 60. Enqi Was Giving In To His
Federation, Of Which They Were Reptilian Side, He Even Went As
Not Originally. Far As Having Sexual Intercourse
52. The Planet Earth Was A With His Daughter, Granddaughter,
Vacation Resort, Where All Great Grand Daughter, Etc. Just To
Different Beings From Different Bear A Son, So That, That Son
Galaxies And Star Constellation Could Take Enlil's Position, Or Be
Only Came To Take The Minerals In Competition With The Sons Of
That They Needed. Enlil.
53. There Were No Laws, Or
Rules, And Classes Set Up On Earth Enqi's Plan, That Almost Lead
For Aliens, So The Draconians, Him To His Death
And The Serpent People, The
Reptilians, Who Resided Here, 61. By Nibiruan Law, The Rules
Created Their Own Laws To Keep Of Succession Comes From You
Control Of The Earth. Having A Son Through Your Half
54. So To Keep The Peace On The Sister.
Planet Earth Between The

308
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
62. Everything Was Always Kept 71. He Spoke Ou T: "No One
In The Family's Blood. Walks In The Marshland."
63. If A Male Anunnaqi Had A 72. Enqi Sai D: "No One Walks
Son By His Half Sister, That Son In The Marshland."
Becomes The Successor, As In The 73. He Swore By The Life Of
Case With Antum And Anu, Parents Anu .
Of Enlil. Antum Was The Half 74. His Semen That Belonged To
Sister Of Anu. The One Lying In The Marshland,
64. However If A Male Anunnaqi 75. Enqi Directed His Semen
Has A Son By Another Woman, Owed To Damgalnunna , Who Is
Who Is Not His Half Sister, That Also Called Damkina , The
Son Does Not Have The Title Of Consort Of Enqi And He Poured
Succession, Unless Given To Him That Semen Into The Womb Of
By The Higher Anunnaqi. Ninhursag , Also Known As
65. With This Rule, Enqi Was Ninti .
Furious, He Believed That His 76. One Day Being Her One
Brother Enlil Stole His Birthright. Month,
66. He Thought That He Should 77. Two Days Being Her Two
Be Ruler And Not Enlil. Months,
67. This Obsession For Position, 78. Three Days Being Her Three
Made Enqi Have Sex With His Half Months,
Sister Ninti, Who Is Also Known 79. Four Days Being Her Four
As Ninhursag, Daughter Of Anu Months,
And Si, So That She Can Bear Him 80. Five Days Being Her Five
A Son, However, Ninti Did Not Months,
Bear Him A Son, She Bore Him A 81. Six Days Being Her Six
Daughter. And The Story Goes As Months,
Thus: 82. Seven Days Being Her Seven
68. The One Who Was Alone, Months,
The Cunning One Enki , In Front 83. Eight Days Being Her Eight
Of Nintu , Mother Of The Land, Months,
Has His Penis Fill The Ditches Full 84. Nine Days Being Her Nine
With Semen, Months, The Months Of
69. Has His Penis Fill The Reeds Womanhood,
With An Overflow Of Sperm, 85. Like Fine Oil, Like The Fine
70. Has His Phallus Tear Away Oil, Like Precious Oil,
The Noble Cloth, The Ritualistic 86. Ninti , Mother Of The Land,
Apron That Covers The Lap. Like Fine Oil, Like Fine Oil, Like
Precious Oil, Gave Birth To

309
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Ninmu , She Who Is 3/4 100. Six Days Being Her Six
Anunnaqi And 1/4 Drago . Months,
87. This Made Enqi Furious 101. Seven Days Being Her Seven
Because He Wanted A Son, By Months,
Ninti , Not A Daughter, Howeve R 102. Eight Days Being Her Eight
Enqi's Scheme Does Not Stop Months,
There. 103. Nine Days Being Her Nine
88. Ninmu Came Out To The Months, The Months Of
Bank Of The River. Womanhood,
89. Out Of The Marshland Enqi 104. Like Fine Oil, Like The Fine
Reaches Out, He Says To His Oil, Like Precious Oil , Ninmu ,
Companio N Isimud : Like Fine Oil, Like Fine Oil, Like
90. "Should I Kiss The Young Precious Oil, Gave Birth To
One, The Beauty? Should I Kis S Nindurra , Also Calle D Ninkurra
Ninmu , The Beauty?" , She Who Is 2/3 Anunnaqi And
91. His Companion Isimud 1/3 Drago .
Answers Him : "Kiss The Young 105. Again Enqi Bears A
One, The Beauty . Kiss Ninmu , Daughter.
The Beauty . For My King I Will 106. Nindurra Came Out To The
Blow Up A Vigorous Wind . Bank Of The River.
92. Alone He Set Foot In The 107. Out Of The Marshland
Boat. Then He Lodged It On Dry Enqi Reaches Out .
Land. 108. He Says To His Companion
93. He Took Ninmu , Kissed Isimud : "Should I Kiss The
Her, Enqi Poured The Semen Young One, The Beauty? Should I
Into The Womb Of His Own Kiss Ninkurra The Fair ?"
Daughter. 109. His Companion Isimud
94. She Drew The Semen Into Answers H Im: "Kiss The Young
The Womb, Enqi's Semen . One, The Bea Uty. Kiss Ninkurra
95. One Day Being Her One , The Beauty . For My King I Will
Month, Blow Up A Vigorous Wind."
96. Two Days Being Her Two 110. Alone He Set Foot In The
Months, Boat . Then He Lodged It On Dry
97. Three Days Being Her Three Land .
Months, 111. He Took Nindurra , Kissed
98. Four Days Being Her Four Her, Enki Poured The Semen
Months, Into The Womb .
99. Five Days Being Her Five
Months,

310
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
112. She Drew The Semen Into 125. In His Joy Arazu The
The Womb, Of His Daughter Gardener Hugs Him, And Says To
Nindurra . Him : "Who Are You Who Have
113. One Day Being Her One Watered My Garde N?"
Month, 126. Enqi Answers The Gardener
114. Two Days Being Her Two : I Am Nudimmud , Enqi .
Months, 127. Bring Me The Delacacies.
115. Three Days Being Her Three 128. Arazu Brought Him The
Months, Delacacies, And Enqi Heaped
116. Four Days Being Her Four Them Up In His Lap.
Months, 129. Enqi's Face Turned Green,
117. Five Days Being Her Five He Grabbed The Staff, And Headed
Months, For Uttu .
118. Six Days Being Her Six 130. "You Who Make Demands In
Months, Her House: Open Up! "
119. Seven Days Being Her Seven 131. "You, At My Door, Who Are
Months, Yo U?" Uttu Answered .
120. Eight Days Being Her Eight 132. "I Am The Gardener Who
Months, Will Give You The Delacacies As A
121. Nine Days Being Her Nine Reward. "
Months, The Months Of 133. Her Heart Leaped As Uttu
Womanhood, Opened The Door Of The House.
122. Like Fine Oil, Like The Fine 134. Enqi To Uttu , The
Oil, Like Precious Oil , Ninkurra , Voluptous Woman, Gives The
Like Fine Oil, Like Fine Oil, Like Delacacies.
Precious Oil, Gave Birth To Uttu , 135. Uttu The Voluptuous
The Voluptuous Woman, She Who Woman Strikes Her Calf, Claps Her
Is 5/8 Anunnaqi And 3/8 Drago Hands.
. 136. Enqi Aroused Uttu , Took
123. By This Time, Ninti Tol D Her, Lay In Her Lap, Strokes And
Uttu To Stay In The House And Massages Her Body.
Have Nothing To Do Wit H Enqi 137. He Pierced The Young One,
Unless He Brings Her Some Kissed He R. Enqi Poured The
Delacacie S . Semen Into The Womb.
124. Filling With Water A Second 138. She Drew The Semen Into
Time, He Filled The Ditches With The Womb, Enqi's Semen.
Water, He Filled The Canals With 139. Uttu The Seductive Woman
Water, He Filled The Unsown Lands Says: "Oh, The Power In My Body!"
With Water,

311
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
"Oh The Power Insid E! "Oh The Most Lucious Sex Dietiesses, The
Power On The Outside!" Huri ,
140. This Made Ninti Angry, 155. And In His Old Age, The
Ninti , Ninhursag Wiped The Soul Of Enqi Fell Seductively
Semen From Uttu's Body . And Passionately Out Of Control,
141. From Enqi's Semen Ninti 156. He Began To Drink And
In Some Way Generated The Glutton And Self Indulged Until His
Sprouting Of Eight Plants To Countenance Fell Beyond The
Poison Enqi . Degree Of A Deity, He Was
142. Meaning That Ninhursag Poisoned Sick And Ready To Die,
Took Specimens From Uttu To 157. Ninhursag Was Ordered
The Laboratory And There Through To Take Away The Curse, And Heal
Genetic Manipulation Created Eight Enqi , She Ordered The Eight
Daughters Called Plants For They Huri To Abandon Him
Reproduced. Their Names W Ere: Whereupon She Took The Apparent
143. Ninimma , Interest In His Health And Nursed
144. Nintulla , Him Back To Full Health,
145. Ninsutu , 158. Ninhursag Fixe D Enqi
146. Ninkasi , In Her Vulva:
147. Suzianna , 159. "Brother, What Hurts You ?"
148. Azimua , 160. "My Skull Hurts Me ."
149. Ninti , 161. "I Have Caused Ninimma
150. And Musarbag . To Be Born For You."
151. In The School Of The 162. "Brother, What Hurts You?"
Kama Sutra , The Huri , Girls 163. "My Jaw Hurts Me,"
Were Trained In The Arts Of Lust, 164. "I Have Caused Nintulla
Oral Sex, Lingam, Or Snake To Be Born For You."
Charming, The Quickest Way, A 165. "Brother, What Hurts You?"
Woman Can Control A Man, Was 166. "My Tooth Hurts Me."
Their Expe Rtise. 167. "I Have Cause D Ninsutu
152. They Were The Most To Be Born For You."
Beautiful Of Maidens. 168. "Brother, What Hurts You?"
153. The Huri's Job As 169. "My Mouth Hurts Me."
Courtesans Was To Seduce Enqi , 170. "I Have Caused Ninkasi
A Plan Whic H Enqi With His To Be Born For You."
Womanizing Fell Immediately Into. 171. "Brother, What Hurts You?"
154. Throwing Out All His Mates, 172. "My Throat Hurts Me."
And Reconstructing His Whole 173. "I Have Caused Suzianna
Househole Around These Eight To Be Born For You."

312
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
174. "Brother, What Hurts You ?" 192. Enqi Was Never Again To
175. "My Arm Hurts Me." Be Allowed I N Nibiru , But Must
176. "I Have Cause D Azimua Dwell After His Ten Years Of
To Born For You." Confinement To Stay I N Gi .
177. "Brother, What Hurts You?"
178. "My Rib Hurts Me."
179. "I Have Caused Ninti To Question: How Did Inanna Try
Be Born For You." To Free Him?
180. "Brother, What Hurts You?" 193. When Dumuzi , Husband
181. "My Ag Hurts Me." Of Ishtar Rape D Geshtinanna
182. "I Have Caused Musargaba , His Sister He Was Captured To Be
To Be Born For You." Punished, However He Escaped
183. Enqi Rep Lies: For The Punishment A Multiple Of Times
Ones Which You Have Caused To Which Caused Him His Death .
Be Born For Me, I Shall Bless Them, 194. This Death Was Thought To
Le T Abu Be The Ruler Of Plants. Be From Murduk , Because
184. Let Nintulla Be Th E Murduk Had Clone An Army Of
Neb Of Magan . Himself, Meaning His Army Looked
185. Let Ninsutu Marry Just Like Him, And Acted Just Like
Ninazu . Hi M. This Made It Easy For
186. Let Ninkasi Be The One Inanna To Accuse Murduk Of
Who Satisfies Desires. Being The One To Kill Dummuzi
187. Let Suzianna Marry Nazi .
. 195. Murduk Had To Be Brought
188. Let Azimua Marry Before The Council Of 24 And It
Ningiszida . Was Found That Some Of Those
189. Let Ninti Be The Queen Under His Command Killed
Of Months. Dummuzi , When He Should Have
190. Let Musarbag Be The Been Just Exiled To The
Deity Of Dilmun . Underworld, Yet Dumuzi The
191. After Enqi Was Healed He Great Deity He Was Resisted And It
Was Brought Before The Council Of Caused Him His Life.
24 , Yah =12 , Weh =12 , Whom 196. Murduk Was Accused By
Found Him Guilty And Sent Him Inanna Of Being The Murderer,
To Sagun , In Kurnugi For The Where He Was Trialed In The
Rest Of His Days, Upon Whic H Ekur . However, He Was Proven
Inanna , Also Called Ishtar Tries Innocent Of All Charges And
To Free Him, Released By The Command Of Anu
Himsel F, El Elyown .

313
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
197. Then Inanna Went To Bush, And A Voice That Sounds
Kurnugi To Try And Have A Son Like Rushing Waters. This Was To
By Dumuzi's Brothe R Nergal . Be The Great Tammuz , The One
This Was Anunnaqi Law, That If Deity, The Yahweh, Jehoah , The
A Rother Died His Brother Or Allahu Ahad , The Deity Incarnate,
Father Was Responsible For Taking Deity In Flesh, Ruler Of The
Over His Family. Heavens And The Earth Of This
198. And Any Of His Many Wives Planet, Lord Of All The Worlds Of
Or Daughters Of Wives Was His This Univer Se.
For The Choosing To Breed With 204. Anu Is Our Father Who Art
To Keep The Genes Pure. In Heaven, An D Tammuz Is The
199. So She Set Out For Not Just Child That Became God On Ear Th.
Any Of The Family Members, But Whose Name Was Sanunda ,
She Wanted Nergal , For He Was When He Finished His Schooling
Such A Wise Alchemist . Amongst The Igigi .
200. However, Arishkegal 205. He Was Also Known As
Would Not Let Her. Adonis , And Became The
201. At That Tim E Inanna Adonai Of The Aramean,
Who Later Became Known As Hebrews. When Inanna Arrived
Ishtar , Did Not Know That She At The Underworld, Called
Was Carrying Dumuzi's Child Kurnugi She Had Also Another
From A Passionate Relationship Intent To Win The Favor Of
Planned By Her, The Evening Arishkegal , And Persuade Her To
Before She Convinced Dumuzi To Free Her Granduncl E Enqi , For
Go And Have Sex With She Could Always Persuade Enqi
Geshtinanna , For She Feared That To Do Her Will .
She Could Not Have An Offspring. 206. And As Long As He Was
202. This Cunningness Brought Confined To Kurnugi By The
Upon Her Great Distress, For She Orders Of Anu , She Could Not
Was In Violation Of A Great Excercise Her Free Will .
Anunnaqi Law, Invasion Of 207. So This Plan Was Also To
Privacy. Include How To Free Enqi Free
203. And In Fact As Time Came, From His 10 Year Jail Term For
Inanna Gave Birth To A Son, A Him Deceiving Ninhursag , Trying
Beautiful Son, Tall, Seven Feet Tall, To Have A Son By Her To Vers E
With Black Almond Shaped Eyes, Anu .
Like Flames Of Fire And Rich Dark 208. He Wanted A Another Son
Olive Toned Skin With Hair As For The Purpose Of Succeeding
Firm And Thick As The Strongest Anu , Because His Son Murduk

314
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Would Not Do It, Being His Mary, Also Called The Mysteries Of
Grandfather Anu Had Gotten Aset As Isis, Or Auset Her Trinity
Him A Scholarship In The School Name.
Of The Igigi , Called Hah-Kha 214. When They Use The Name
Or Hike Being The First Mary They Never Tell You The 3
Disagreeable To Attend There, Degrees Of Mary.
209. And Re Or Tehuti Is 215. One Being The Hebrew,
Murduk, Who Also Became Mary Sister Of Moses, The Other
Yaanuwn , When He Finished The Is The Greek, Mary Magdalene,
School, He Is Also Known As And The Other Is Mary, Supposedly
Michael , Or Malachi And He Mother Of The Christ, Whose
Became The Melchizedek Of Name Is Spelled, Not Mary But
The Arameans, Hebrews, And Al Mariam, From The Ancient Hebrew
Khidr Of The Syretic Origin Miriam, Meaning "Their
Muhammadan, And Between The Rebellion."
Two Is The Grecian Christians. 216. You Have One Degree,
210. These 3 Schools Are Physical Mariam, The Hebrew Miriam,
Schools Related To Hindu Then You Have The Second Degree
Incarnations Or Spiritual Schools. The Greek Maria, Which Your
Christianity, Judaism, And Islam, All Bible Calls Mary, And Then You
Come From Hinduism, Buddhism Have The Final Mary, The
And Confucianism. Muhammadan Maryam, Which Is
211. They Traveled From The Far Mary The Copt, Tama-Rean Wife
East Asiatic, Across To The Middle Of Muhammad.
Eastern Asiatics, And Now Have 217. Which All Relates To The 3
Invaded The Western World. M's, Of Mosheh M, Messiah M,
212. All Of These Six, 1. And Muhammad M, Each Had
Hinduism, 2. Confucianism, 3. Their Mary. Mary, Miriam Moses'
Buddhism, 4. Hebrewism, 5. Sister, Mary The Magdalene,
Christism, 6. Muhammadism, Are Jesus's Wife, And Mary The Copt,
Responsible For The Thousands Muhammad's Last Wife.
Upon Thousands Of Religious Sects 218. These Were The Mystery
And Denominations, That Control Schools Of Sister Sin, And The
The Minds Of Humins, And Are Trick Of The Signs And Wonders
The Roots Of All Evil. Will Be Holographic Projections Of
213. These Are The 6 Degrees Of The Blessed Mother Mary,
6 Ether In The Mystical Order Of Worldwide To Deceive The Elite,
Sin, Represented By The Female Before They Stage The Return Of
Deity Called The Blessed Mother Their Savior Plot, A Fatal Attempt

315
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
To Retrigger The Spell To Reverse Where She Repented To The
The Polarities In Your Brain That Anunnaqi, For All Of Her Wrong
Through Nuwaupu Is Waking Up. Doings, She Apologized For All Of
219. Melchizedeq, Who Is The Conflicts That She Had Started
Murduk Can Best Teach And Between Brothers, And Sisters,
Prepare You For This, For I, 224. And She Promised That She
Malachi Myself Have Gone Would Not Deceive Her Family
Through Such A Transformation Again. And Ishtar Was Granted
From The False Accusations Of A Forgiveness.
Disagreeable Eve, That Is An Eve 225. Thus, She Became
El, Evil Woman. Worshipped As A Great Deity, And
Her Symbol Was That Of War And
Peace.
Question: Was Ishtar Ever 226. She Became The High
Punished For Deceiving Murduk, Priestess Of The Temple Of Ishtar,
Causing His Imprisonment? Where She Was Worshipped As The
Universal Mother Of All Living
220. When Ishtar Had Went To Things. And To This Day Inanna,
The Underworld With The Intent Is Still Worshipped.
Of Having A Child By Nergal, The 227. Her Symbol Is Also The
Brother Of Dummuzi, She Was Mother And Son Symbol, Ishtar
Shot By Arishkegal, With A Laser And Tammuz, Also Known As The
Gun, And Was Left To Die. Black Madonna.
221. Enqi Couldn't Help Her, 228. As Time Passed, Idols And
Neither Could Her Father Nannar. Statues Of The Madonna And
As Time Passed By, Ishtar Was Child Manifested In Many Countries
Slowly Dying, And Arishkegal, Across The World. In China She Is
Would Not Heal Her. Known As Shin Moo, In Tama-Re
222. So The Ruler Anu, Projected Isis, In Ephesus, Dina, In Greece,
A Hologramic Projection Of Aphrodite, In Israel, Ashtaroth, In
Himself, And Commanded Rome Venus, In India, Devaki
Arishkegal To Rescue Ishtar. And The List Can Go On. The
Ishtar Was Rescued, And Was Rizqiyians Or Anunnaqi Knew No
Taken To Her Mother's House, War Or Conflict Until Arriving To
Ningal, To Be Nursed Back To Qi Which Atmosphere Is Based On
Life. Negative Destructive Charges. To
223. When Ishtar Was Well Again, Many Earth Is A Mere Hell.
She Was Summoned To The
Council Of The Great Anunnaqi,

316
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Scroll Seventeen 9. Some Of The Anunnaqi
Reside On Kusmusta ,
An Anunnaqi's Lifestyle 10. The Rumardians , Greys
(19x2=38) Who Were Created By The
Rizqiyians Live On Daruniyya ,
11. Because They Came Before
Question: What Was The The Galactical Council Of 24, And
Lifestyle Of The Anunnaqi? Asked Them To Protect Them From
The Reptilians Who Pursued Them
Like Bounty Hunters To Capture
The Anunnaqi Had A Normal
And Enslaved The M,
Life.
12. Also Through Genetic Splicing
2. They Were People, Whose Laws
And Cloning They Removed Their
On Morality Were Different Than
Ability To Procreate, By Removing
Yours.
Their Sexual Organs To Further
3. There Were No Limit On Wives,
Enslave Them By Controlling Their
Children Etc. They Lived Like
Population.
Normal People.
13. They Would Have To Go To
4. They Were The Spooks, Or
The Reptilians To Reproduce.
Mysteries, Or What Your Torah
14. So They Returned To The
"Bible" And Qur'an "Koran" Portrays
Rizqiyians Once, The Planet Was
As Angels.
Safe Again To Inhabit And Asked
5. They Were People, Whose
Could They Be Of Service, In Order
Image And Likeness You Were
To Earn The Right To Stay There.
Procreated From.
15. The Rizqiyians Agreed That
6. There Are Three Stages Of An
They Would Be Perfectly Suited For
Anunnaqi, Also Known As Anutu,
Restructing The Atmosphere And
The First Being An Igigi, The
Domes Because Of The High
Second Etherian And The Third A
Radiation Count That Surrounded
Rizqyian.
The Planet When The Shield
7. The Igigis Descend In
Depleted.
Density Levels To Become The
16. When The Job Was Finished
Etherians . The Etherians
They Were Given Citizenship In
Incarnate As Rizqiyians .
Rizq And Even Their Own Planet
8. Ether Defuses And A
In Ihm "Illyuwn" .
Rizqiyian Is Bor N. The Planet
17. They Were Given One Moon
Rizq Is Broken Up Into 3
Planet, Not Far From Rizq That
Continents, Nam Ely: Zarantu ,
Revolved Around One Of The
Kusmusta , And Daruniyya .
Three Suns Shamash .

317
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
18. This Planet Was Called 29. The Etherians Protect The
Lityan . Rizqiyians With A Dome They
19. Others Chose To Live Next Built For Them To Live Under.
To Their Creators On The Planet 30. They Live In The Atmosphere
Rizq On The Continen T Of Air.
Daruniyya . 31. Those Are The Three Stages
20. Others Of The Beings From Of A Rizqiyian .
Other Stars Referred To As The 32. The Igigi Are Not Seen,
Visitors Lived On Zarantu , They They Are Felt, The Etherians Are
Are Not Allowed On The Other Seen As Light, And The Anunnaqi
Continents. Are Seen Physically.
21. They Have Immigration Laws 33. It Takes A Rizqiyian 9000
In Rizq , Strictly Kept , Years To Be Conceived.
Rizqiyians Can Visit Any Of The 34. We, Rizqiyians Come
Other Two Continents, Down, And You Humins Go Up,
22. But The Other Beings Can 35. Meaning Humins Go From
Only Visit Rizq With An Escort Baby To Adult, To Old Age, Which
And Are Not Allowed To Spend Is Fish, To Grey To Shaggy, To
Not One Complete Rizqiyian Spirit Being Your Three Stages,
Day There. Which Gives You Hu- Min , Hu
23. Overstand That Th E ="Creative Force Of Will" , And Min
Rizqiyians Who Inherit The = The Tama-Rean Deity Of Fertility,
Name Anunnaqi When They Depicted With An Erect Phallus ,
Come To Gi , Also Called 36. While We , Rizqiyians Go
Aluhum Have 3 Stages. From Igigi , To Etherian To A
24. Igigi , Or Dinneer Called Rizqiyian .
Ruhans , Which Is The Soul, 37. Humins Go From Radical,
25. Etherians , Called To Student, To Disciplined, And
Naphsans , Which Is The Spirit, The Rizqiyians Go From
26. And Rizqiyians Called Disciplined, To Student To Radical.
Bashrans , Which Is The Body. 38. Our Death Is Your Life And
27. The Igigi Do Not Live On Your Life Is Our Death.
The Planet Rizq , They Hover
Around The Planet Rizq As
Fowls Of The Air Hover Around Scroll Eighteen
Gi, Landing At Will.
28. The Etherians Come In And This Is How It Is On Rizq
Out Of Rizq's Atmosphere. (19x1=19)

318
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Rizq Is What You Call Heaven, Altered From 1 To 1000 . Just As
There Are Parties And Beer When A Mortal Moves Beyond The
Drinking, We Have Music, Dance Speed Of Light Into A Timeless
And Watch Holographic T.V. Environment As The Universe,
2. However, We Don't Have Pets Time Begins To Reverse You Will
And Don't Subject Anything There. Be Moving Into An Environment
3. Our Ego Doesn't Depend On With Three Suns, Three Times
The Subjection Of Creatures. Zones And You Would Have To
4. There Is No Divorce On Rizq, Adjust To One Of Them. None
Because There Is No Marriage. Have The Exact Same Amout Of
5. The Marriage Of Damuzi Planets As The Solar System You
And Inanna Was Performed In Were Grown In.
The Temple Of Haraffa On 10. You Are Unworthy.
Earth. When The Anunnaqi Lived 11. You Must First Be Elevated,
Amongst The Beings On Earth They To A Certain Level, Which Begins
For Peace Sake Incorporated Their With Altering The Selfishness Or
Culture, Which Included A Marriage What's Called Self Centeredness,
Ritual And Many Others Strange To And Having A Divine Centeredness,
Them. 12. Becoming Conscious Of The
6. There Are Disagreements, Deity Laying Dormant Within You
However They Have Legency, And And Bringing It To The Surface.
Depend On It For Their Existence. 13. Even Then You Still Have To
7. There Are No Wars And No Be Groomed To Think And Act
Killing After The Initial Rebellins Like A Deity.
Were Brought Under Control. 14. The Closest Thing To This
8. It's Just Pure Harmony, Experience, Is Where You Astro
Cooperation, Love, Peace And Project During Your Sleep, Which
Happiness, Freedom, Justice, And Usually Begins With A State Called
Equality. Sleep Paralysis Which Opens The
Doorway To The Subconscious
Which Is Linked To The
Question: Can Humins Live On Hypocampus Area Of The Brain
The Planet Rizq? Where Your Higher Senses Were
Unplugged.
9. No, Not In The State You're In, 15. They Must Be Replugged Or
There Must Be Physical Adjustments Your Barathary Gland Reinserted To
For You To Be Able To Withstand Awaken The Deity In You That You
The Heat Of The Three Suns And May Become One With The All In
Your Zero Time Reference Must Be All.

319
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
16. You Move Through Different 5. And Became Neb Over The
Density Le Vels. In That State Your Humims.
Molecules Can Be Sped Up And 6. The Combined Titles Of Nefer,
You Can Transform Into A "Ship." Yah, For Agreeable And
17. As Mentioned Previously Netchnetch, Weh For Disagreeable
Zarantu Is The Continent For Was Attributed To Him,
Visitors And Other Extraterrestrials 7. And He Became Known As
Who Are Restricted To This Area Yahweh, (Genesis 4:26)
Only. 8. And He Became The Deity Or
18. Whenever Humins Are Guard Over Gi And Lil.
Brought To Rizq They Are Put 9. And All Adamites And
In A Biosphere Like Adafa Enoshites Was To Give Reverence
"Enoch" And Tammuz "Jesus", And Honor To Him.
Who Were 1/2 Humin And 1/2 10. He Became Known As
Rizqiyian . Yahweh Aluhum, O R The
19. There Are Three Biospheres Yahweh Of The Aluhum.
Of Rizq , One On Each 11. Symbolically Tammuz Became
Continent. Har As Horus, His Trinity Name.
12. Just As His Mother Ishtar
Became Aset As Isis, A Nd His
Scroll Nineteen Father Dammuzi Became Asaru,
Osiris As Usir, His Trinity Name.
Yah Vs. Weh 13. Making Anu Symbolically Re,
(19x2=38) As Amun Ra, L Ater The
Canaanites Took These Mysteries
When Enqi Destroyed The Plan And Changed Them Around And It
Of Shipping The Gold Back To Became The Madonna,
Nibiru, His Brother Enlil Was 14. Or Jesus As Haru Or
Given Rulership, Tammuz, Mary As Ishtar Or Isis
2. And Enqi's Constituate Had A Nd Gabriy'el As Asaru Or
Rulership Over Him, Dammuzi.
3. He Was Made A Servant Of 15. For Every Anunnaqi There
Servants To His Brother, Were 9 Clones.
4. And His Constituate Innana, 16. Originally There Were 7 For
Who Is Also Called Ishtar Wife Of The 7 Major Organs In The Body.
Dammuzi, Mother Of Tammuz, 17. For Example, The Anunnaqi
Who Is Also Called Dumuzi, Was Enqi Would Have His Genes
Condemned To Gi, Frozen By Scientists, An D Then
Put On Ice By A Process Called

320
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Cryogenics, Wh Ich Is The Process 25. She Carefully Watched As He
Of Freezing Genes, F Or Transport Floated Past A Man Named Akki
And Or Preserving. Who Was In Charge Of Irrigating
18. One Of Enqi's Clones Was Th E Fields With Water From The
Destroyed. He Was Betrayed By River.
Arishkegal, W Ho Wanted To Get 26. Akki Pull Ed Sargon From
Even With Him, Fo R Raping Her, The Waters, Adopted Him As A
And Having A Child By Her, Named Son, Being His Own Father
Ningishzidda, A Nd Then Enqi Haksir Was Killed Before His
Sent Her To The Underworld. Birth In A Ba Ttle, Akki Taught
19. So Arishkegal Got Hold Of Sargon To Tend His Garden.
One Of Enqi's Clones, S Witched It 27. Sargon's Intuition Drew
Around An D Destroyed The Him To The High Courts, Where
Original. He Became King Of Akkad ,
20. Each Clone Of An Anunnaqi Successor Of King Lugalzaggesi
Will Be Used For A Healthy Heart, .
A Liver, And Other Internal Organs. 28. Sargon Became The Lover Of
21. However, When Something Is Inanna , And Together They Built
Frozen It Crystallizes Which The City Of Agade .
Destroys Cell Tissue. 29. They Gave Birth To A
22. Cryogenetics Is A Science Daughter Named Enheduanna ,
Which Earth Is Learning About Who Also Became A High Priestes
Quickly. S.
30. Sargon Conceived A
Question: Who Was This Great Ceremony In Which He Removed
Ruler Sargon That You Spoke This Sacred Soil To A New Location
About? Where It Would Serve As The
Symbolic Foundation For A Ne W
23. Sargon Was The Cupbearer Babylon, Which He Would Build.
To Ur-Zababa , The King Of The 31. This Caused War In Akkad
City Of Kish . Sargon's Mother And Sumer . Waves Of High
Was A High Priestess In The Tensity Radiation Destroyed The
Temple Of Ishtar . Crops In A Matter Of Minutes,
24. His Father Was Haksir . 32. And A Period Of Famine
Upon Sargon's Birth His Mother Caused The People To Revolt
Wrapped Him In Blankets In A Against Sargon .
Basket Of Rushes And Set Him On 33. Sargon Was Forced To Put
The River, Praying. Because His Life Down Hundreds Of Rebellions, T
Was In Danger. He Lulus Were Starving, As They

321
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Watched Their Children Die In
Their Arms.
34. Sargon's Empire Began To
Disintegrate.
35. However His Empire Was
Rebuilt By His Grandso N
Naramsin .
36. Sargon's Origin Was Of
Semite Descent, Not Sumerian ,
A People Who Had Long Been
Drifting Eastward Into The Region
Between The Tigris And
Euphrates From The Deserts Of
The Arabian Peninsula.
37. The Semites Settled In
Sumer And In The Land Just North
Of It, Which Came To Be Called
Akkad , And They Akkadians
.38. The Exact Location Of
Sargon's Birth Was That Very
Place Akkad . The Story Of
Sargon's Birth, Being His Mother
Wrapped In A Basket And Set Him
In The River, Is Where The Story Of
Moses In The Bible, Exodus 2:3
Came From. Is This A Coincidence?

This Is What Happened And Is


Happening, And Will Happen.

322
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR

280, 285, 286, 288,


314, 328
1 5 Adamites · 60, 61, 62,
83, 84, 350, 351, 367
1066 50,000 Years · 52 Africa · 43, 58, 130,
A.D. · 44 223, 225, 238, 240,
1100 241, 247, 309, 324,
A.D. · 44 7
327, 345, 350
1500 Miles In Length · Akir
156 76 Trillion Years · 70
Lions · 51, 238, 303,
1760f. · 144 344
1967 8 Al Haadi Al Mahdi ·
year · 32 53, 201
1977 A.D. · 139 85 Percent · 42 Al Imaam
1997 the leader · 201
year · 32, 33 Al Khidr · 53, 201,
19th Galaxy · 30, 127, 9 361
339, 343, 344, 348, Al Masih · 201
349 9 Ball · 32 Al Mujaddid · 201
9 Principles · 51 Al Mukhlas · 201
93 Million Miles Al Qubt
2 Away · 68 the axis · 201
99th Element Amduat · 59, 283
2000 Years · 58 einsteinium · 70, 104 Amenemnes 3rd · 133
24 Days · 33 Americans · 53, 58,
24,000 Year · 52, 54 242, 243, 266
26,000 Year · 54 A Amsu · 55, 296
Amun · 33, 34, 35, 67,
A'aferti 99, 126, 128, 129,
3 pharaoh · 30, 31, 32, 130, 131, 134, 198,
34, 37, 53, 97, 201, 218, 228, 248,
3 Fingers · 34 133, 191, 222, 295, 297, 302, 305,
30 Days · 33, 34, 252 224, 232, 248, 306, 310, 311, 312,
30 Years · 30, 32, 33 276, 320 321, 368
360 Degrees · 36, 101, Aardvark · 193 Amunnubi
201, 301 Abel · 59, 62, 132, 285, Raakhptah · 200,
314 221, 232, 233, 236,
Abode · 35, 37, 79, 80, 309
4
126, 299, 302, 348 Amunnubi
Adam · 59, 60, 62, 63, Ruakhptah · 27, 28,
449 · 44, 275
64, 76, 81, 83, 88, 32, 53
450,000 Years · 40
89, 91, 98, 102, 105, Amunnubi
47 Chromosomes · 42
125, 126, 132, 150, Ruakhptah, Tum ·
151, 206, 219, 245, 28

323
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Amun-Re · 33, 34, 99, Asaru Babel · 26, 80, 94, 100
218, 228, 295, 297, usir · 30, 31, 33, 34, Bab-El · 27, 80, 93
302, 321 50, 57, 112, 126, Babylonian · 71, 76,
Ankh · 35, 50, 52, 215, 131, 132, 151, 88, 89, 90, 300
278 221, 253, 285, Bacteria · 106, 134,
Annu · 30, 34, 35, 303, 295, 303, 310, 135, 136, 137, 138,
321, 348 314, 319, 367, 368 139, 140, 141, 142,
Anu Aset · 57, 72, 112, 126, 143, 145, 150
Annu · 30, 35, 37, 131, 151, 202, 219, Banebded · 31
50, 73, 76, 77, 78, 253, 295, 303, 310, Ben York · 53
79, 80, 87, 88, 92, 314, 315, 316, 317, Bermuda · 39, 351,
93, 94, 164, 176, 318, 362, 367 352, 353
177, 224, 314, Ashteroth · 71 Big Bang · 64, 65, 66,
320, 321, 322, Atif 70, 73, 97, 313, 314,
324, 325, 327, crown · 30 346
328, 331, 333, Atom · 105, 109, 110, Biosphere · 137, 367
347, 348, 353, 111, 114, 115, 116, Bozon · 124
354, 355, 356, 117, 119, 120, 121, Buga · 129
360, 361, 363, 368 122, 123, 125, 126,
Anunnagi · 26, 51, 53, 136, 147, 148, 182,
65, 72, 78, 79, 83, 295, 298, 299 C
91, 97, 131, 145, 155 Atum · 27, 28, 32, 34,
Anunnaqi · 40, 50, 58, 35, 36, 52, 53, 54, Calneh · 37, 80, 88, 92,
87, 89, 90, 93, 171, 55, 57, 58, 59, 67, 94, 321
177, 215, 238, 288, 99, 105, 112, 115, Cartouche · 202
289, 310, 320, 322, 125, 126, 127, 128, Cell · 38, 43, 73, 106,
323, 324, 325, 326, 129, 132, 133, 147, 107, 116, 135, 136,
327, 328, 329, 335, 177, 198, 201, 212, 140, 141, 144, 145,
336, 337, 339, 340, 213, 214, 215, 218, 172, 174, 179, 182,
341, 346, 347, 348, 220, 221, 222, 224, 196, 292, 368
350, 351, 353, 355, 228, 232, 236, 244, Cells · 41, 42, 43, 56,
356, 357, 360, 361, 295, 302, 303, 310, 106, 112, 116, 117,
363, 364, 365, 366, 320, 321 122, 131, 132, 136,
368 Aum · 66, 68, 71, 73, 138, 140, 141, 142,
Anutu · 53, 58, 62, 78, 99, 308 144, 145, 150, 151,
97, 134, 145, 150, Australopithecines · 154, 172, 175, 177,
171, 364 40 178, 181, 182, 183,
Aphrodite · 72, 363 Azazel · 51, 176 184, 194, 196, 198
Apophis · 51, 131, 207, Aztecs · 58, 240, 244 Ceremony · 26, 31, 32,
216, 218, 244, 245, 33, 37, 50, 288, 369
247, 249, 286, 344 Cherubeem · 58, 82,
Aqins · 41 B 89, 322
Aquarium · 144, 170, Chimpanzee · 41, 42,
178 Ba 289
Ard soul · 28, 30, 36, 51, Chlorophyll · 137, 143,
earth · 98, 169, 341 76, 77, 78, 246, 145
254, 297, 304, 368 Chromodynamics · 124
324
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Chromosome · 41, 42, Egiptians · 202, 203, 308, 342, 344, 349,
44, 48, 49, 205, 289 204, 206, 218, 227, 354
Cuneiform · 45, 79, 86, 228, 241, 245, 248, Gawvah
87, 93, 102, 169, 251, 264, 265, 267, ghost · 204
283, 340 269, 272, 277, 303, Geb · 53, 57, 58, 112,
Cyanobacteria · 136, 304, 338, 339, 340, 126, 131, 150, 151,
137, 139, 140 343, 345, 346 152, 219, 246, 285,
El Kuluwm · 69, 102, 295, 303, 310, 311,
167, 175, 176 313, 314, 318
D El Roi · 155 Genes · 41, 43, 44, 47,
Electromagnetism · 49, 55, 107, 127,
Dabar · 28 121, 124, 136 128, 130, 140, 205,
Dagan · 40, 130, 219, Eloheem · 26, 50, 58 209, 224, 241, 243,
345 English · 44, 45, 55, 59, 248, 273, 282, 288,
Dagon · 40 71, 73, 74, 79, 80, 289, 290, 292, 328,
Darkness · 26, 27, 28, 100, 111, 117, 126, 331, 352, 360, 368
57, 58, 70, 121, 156, 127, 136, 147, 148, Genus Homo · 40, 177,
157, 158, 160, 162, 157, 161, 164, 165, 330
164, 165, 170, 171, 169, 170, 183, 190, Ghibbore · 51, 58, 84,
186, 221, 245, 268, 206, 211, 219, 223, 87, 93, 96, 128, 131,
293, 294, 295, 299, 224, 253, 254, 255, 351
300, 301, 305, 306, 256, 257, 258, 278, Gibbon · 41
307, 315, 317, 322 301, 302, 341, 351 Gibbons · 41, 195
Dendera · 56, 248 Enos · 59, 84, 89, 92, Gills · 130, 180, 187,
Denderah · 33, 248, 307 192, 307
265 Enuma Elish · 56, 87, Gluon · 109, 124
Diquark · 124 93, 98, 177, 283 Gods · 26, 27, 29, 38,
Discovery · 127, 139 Epoch · 52, 54, 123 47, 50, 58, 62, 77,
Djed Ereth · 79, 98, 169, 79, 80, 82, 83, 85,
zed or sed · 30, 31, 170, 341 86, 87, 88, 89, 90,
32, 33, 35, 37 Etheric · 36, 38, 52, 67, 92, 95, 112, 113,
DNA · 43, 44, 135, 140 104, 148, 176, 177 126, 131, 155, 156,
Dolphin · 127, 128, 188 Eves · 60, 61 157, 158, 170, 171,
Down Syndrome · 42, 190, 197, 199, 200,
191, 243 202, 212, 213, 215,
Dragon · 40, 51, 82, 83, F 216, 219, 223, 225,
98, 216, 332, 347, 232, 233, 271, 311,
352, 354 Fertilization. The Word 313, 317, 328, 331,
Dwarf · 163, 225, 258, Womb Is Dolphin · 333, 346, 351
339 127 Gold · 40, 63, 64, 202,
227, 238, 313, 318,
322, 323, 324, 326,
E G
327, 338, 341, 349,
354, 367
E-Anna · 35, 79, 80 Galaxies · 55, 71, 73,
Edfu · 33 96, 104, 122, 162,

325
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
H I L

H.T.M · 34, 134 Ichthyosis · 41 Lares · 41, 42


Ha Mashiakh · 201 Ishaw · 60, 335 Leprosy · 41, 154, 272,
Hair · 41, 47, 153, 192, Ish-Star · 71 281, 282, 286, 288,
198, 218, 220, 224, Isis · 50, 55, 57, 59, 72, 291, 292
225, 233, 234, 238, 100, 246, 303, 307, Light · 26, 27, 28, 29,
240, 278, 281, 288, 314, 362, 363, 367, 32, 50, 54, 57, 58,
291, 318, 341, 361 368 70, 72, 108, 119,
Hanument 121, 122, 130, 132,
movement · 203 137, 139, 144, 149,
Hapi · 33, 102, 267, J 151, 153, 155, 156,
268, 296 157, 160, 161, 162,
Harakhahte · 59 Jaan · 51 163, 164, 166, 169,
Haru 171, 186, 197, 206,
Horus · 33, 50, 59, 211, 216, 220, 221,
K
132, 202, 253, 228, 244, 245, 254,
267, 268, 286, 259, 268, 293, 294,
Ka
296, 303, 309, 295, 298, 299, 300,
spirit · 30, 36, 201,
310, 317, 319, 301, 303, 305, 306,
238, 246, 249,
320, 332, 368 307, 310, 311, 317,
275, 310, 311,
Hawk · 51, 189, 202 321, 322, 324, 326,
312, 321
Hayah · 147, 171 335, 347, 365, 366
Kadmon · 59, 132,
Heliopolis · 34, 134, Lillith · 105, 132
280, 288
303, 318, 321 Lubuwda · 59
Karnak
Herbivorous · 40 Lucifer · 51
Warit · 33, 244, 249
Hermes Trismegistus · Luciferians · 27, 66, 68,
Kemet · 45, 105, 240,
201, 227 69, 94, 97, 263, 344
246, 277, 338
Hika · 67, 68, 295 Lupus · 41, 154
Key · 35, 36, 37, 46, 52,
Hiq
95, 118, 143, 148,
scepter · 30
197, 221, 245, 289, M
Hirsutism · 41, 282
293, 299, 336
Hu · 55, 56, 67, 69, 99,
Kham · 45, 240, 276, Ma'at · 30, 51, 52, 55,
120, 131, 161, 206,
277, 286, 338 296, 304, 306, 311
254, 285, 296, 365
Khat Maku: Black Eagle ·
Huhi · 55, 56, 67, 68,
mind · 30, 36, 149 53
99, 284, 285, 307
Khnum · 56, 296, 309, Malayket Bahri
Hydrocephalic · 41,
310, 311, 330 River Angels · 130
191
Khu Maldekian · 39, 307,
Hydrogen · 66, 70, 71,
flail · 30, 36 331
104, 107, 108, 109,
Khubri · 45 Maldekians · 39, 40,
110, 115, 117, 119,
Kun 138, 328, 351, 352
123, 143, 144, 146,
existence · 68 Mayas · 58
162, 163, 165, 169,
173, 182, 224, 295, Melchizedek
307, 308

326
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
angel of justice · 53, 321, 322, 323, 324, Nine · 36, 37, 57, 98,
78, 201, 255, 278, 329, 333, 336, 341, 103, 126, 128, 176,
348, 361 348, 361, 362, 365, 187, 209, 222, 223,
Memphis 367, 368 224, 225, 226, 233,
Tattu · 34, 134, 249, Nayya: Malachi 234, 238, 321, 343,
313, 321 Zodok York-El · 53 356, 357
Microbes · 138, 184, Nebthoot · 57, 112, Ninti · 41, 44, 61, 328,
186 132 329, 330, 331, 335,
Mitochondria · 38, 43, Nebulae · 164, 165 336, 337, 355, 356,
44, 106, 107, 248 Nef · 57, 313 357, 358, 359
Mitochondria. · 44 Nefu · 131, 347 Nisut-Bit · 202
Mitsrayim · 45, 239, Nekaybaw · 59, 60 Now · 26, 36, 37, 38,
280 Nephileems · 58, 84, 39, 48, 50, 51, 52,
Miyka'el 88, 339, 351 53, 54, 62, 67, 77,
angelic being · 72, Ner 78, 83, 85, 87, 96,
176, 201, 348 Vulture · 51 102, 111, 118, 120,
Mother Ninti · 41, 44, Nergal · 61, 283, 360, 123, 127, 144, 150,
310 363 152, 165, 178, 187,
Mufti · 201 Neter · 27, 29, 32, 33, 192, 197, 199, 200,
Murduk · 53, 71, 78, 46, 51, 52, 53, 54, 204, 206, 207, 208,
201, 323, 342, 343, 88, 118, 131, 133, 209, 212, 213, 215,
347, 348, 360, 361, 171, 201, 202, 221, 217, 221, 222, 223,
362 224, 232, 241, 305, 224, 230, 239, 241,
309, 310, 311, 312, 242, 245, 249, 253,
315, 316, 318, 319, 259, 261, 262, 263,
N 320, 321 267, 278, 285, 293,
Neteraat · 26, 27, 29, 294, 298, 309, 313,
Nabara 30, 40, 41, 50, 51, 315, 316, 317, 318,
to raise, to elevate · 52, 53, 54, 58, 62, 319, 324, 325, 326,
158 65, 68, 75, 84, 89, 328, 330, 333, 334,
Name · 28, 36, 37, 39, 97, 99, 102, 112, 335, 336, 341, 350,
41, 44, 45, 54, 59, 115, 118, 127, 131, 351, 362
60, 61, 63, 71, 72, 134, 145, 150, 154, Nubian · 207, 211,
75, 76, 78, 79, 80, 166, 171, 173, 177, 222, 225, 267, 269,
84, 88, 89, 90, 91, 179, 181, 183, 184, 286, 287
93, 97, 98, 100, 111, 185, 191, 216, 254, Nun
125, 128, 132, 155, 315, 320, 321, 339 chaos · 36, 55, 57,
158, 173, 201, 202, Nibiru · 65, 158, 159, 112, 127, 128,
203, 209, 218, 222, 313, 322, 323, 324, 130, 146, 215,
224, 225, 226, 227, 326, 328, 339, 342, 221, 295, 302,
238, 239, 240, 243, 343, 345, 346, 349, 305, 306
244, 250, 251, 252, 354, 360, 367 Nunet · 44, 112, 127,
276, 277, 279, 280, Nigeria · 58 129, 130, 295, 302,
284, 285, 286, 288, Nile River · 33, 130, 305, 306
295, 297, 304, 307, 256 Nuqta · 66
308, 310, 312, 315,
316, 317, 318, 320,
327
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Nut · 57, 58, 112, 126, R 344, 348, 349, 354,
131, 136, 151, 285, 364, 365, 366, 367
295, 303, 310, 314, Ra · 34, 50, 62, 67, 72, Rizqiyians · 30, 342,
318 83, 134, 150, 183, 343, 345, 346, 348,
Nuwaupic · 26, 45, 79, 191, 201, 221, 244, 349, 354, 363, 364,
102, 169 246, 249, 272, 285, 365
Nuwaupu · 32, 35, 50, 292, 298, 300, 303, RNA · 135
53, 96 306, 307, 310, 313, Roakh · 58
314, 315, 321, 322, Ruakh Or Ruh · 147
338, 343, 346, 368
O
Ra'a
S
Disagreeableness ·
Ogdoads · 130, 240,
62, 83
302 Sa · 202, 238, 249
Rabboni · 53, 201, 202
Om · 66, 120, 153, Rawqeeah Sacred Records · 32,
154, 167, 169, 176, extended surface · 52, 213, 214, 220,
308 221, 223, 232, 320
157
Orangutans · 41 Satan · 51, 83, 101,
Rawuh · 147
Our-Story · 52, 200, 200, 216, 286
Re · 27, 28, 30, 32, 34,
276 Sayyid Issa · 53
35, 36, 43, 50, 52,
Ovum · 28, 65, 128 Sem · 32, 56, 127
53, 54, 56, 57, 59,
Oz · 28 Setians · 33, 34
63, 65, 67, 68, 69,
70, 71, 72, 87, 99, Seven Great Thunders ·
102, 115, 119, 126, 27
P Shaikh · 53
127, 129, 133, 134,
151, 160, 194, 197, Shamash · 67, 71, 72,
Paleontologists · 166 73, 155, 219, 300,
Phototrophs · 139 198, 200, 201, 202,
209, 212, 213, 214, 364
Pig · 193 Shariyf · 202
Plasm · 173, 174 215, 218, 219, 220,
222, 224, 228, 232, Shitar · 41
Prokaryote · 136 Shu · 46, 57, 112, 126,
Ptah · 40, 67, 100, 201, 236, 244, 245, 249,
252, 264, 269, 272, 131, 133, 147, 150,
249, 252, 296, 309, 151, 152, 285, 295,
310, 312, 313, 321, 274, 284, 285, 292,
295, 296, 298, 300, 302, 310, 311, 314,
350 318
Pygmy · 40, 182, 199, 302, 303, 306, 311,
313, 314, 315, 316, Siamese Twins · 41,
225, 313, 339, 350 192
317, 318, 319, 320,
321, 322, 339, 342, Sibtu · 30, 50, 68, 98,
Q 343, 361, 368 126, 127, 251, 339,
Renenutet · 133, 134 342, 344, 350
Qi · 63, 65, 169, 171, Reptiles · 39, 40, 130, Simians · 41
287, 320, 363 180, 185, 189, 190, Single-Celled
193 Organisms · 172
Rhiannon · 72 Sirius · 30, 50, 68, 98,
Rizq · 30, 126, 160, 126, 127, 201, 207,
322, 325, 326, 342, 242, 251, 330, 339,

328
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
340, 341, 343, 344, 282, 292, 293, 294, The Serapheem · 58,
345, 346, 350 295, 299, 300, 302, 82
Sobek · 133, 296 303, 304, 305, 306, Thehos · 50, 64, 117,
Son Of The Green 307, 308, 309, 310, 150, 152, 158, 197,
Light · 27 311, 313, 317, 318, 281, 300, 311
Sperm · 28, 41, 42, 46, 321, 338, 339, 341, Three · 28, 34, 35, 36,
47, 49, 55, 65, 107, 342, 343, 344, 345, 44, 67, 86, 99, 103,
112, 116, 127, 128, 346, 347, 349 108, 109, 112, 116,
337, 355 Sunnah · 34 120, 124, 126, 128,
Spheres · 86, 129, 137, Sutukh · 33, 57, 112, 129, 134, 150, 167,
343 126, 131, 132, 247, 179, 180, 196, 198,
Spiritos · 147 253, 285, 295, 303, 203, 206, 211, 228,
Star · 29, 30, 39, 50, 310, 314 251, 261, 263, 275,
71, 72, 82, 96, 98, Symbiotic · 106, 142 280, 288, 295, 320,
99, 100, 121, 159, 325, 326, 339, 342,
162, 163, 164, 207, 343, 344, 345, 349,
219, 222, 227, 242, T 353, 356, 357, 364,
251, 264, 311, 321, 365, 366, 367
330, 338, 339, 340, Ta Tiamat · 65, 169, 345
341, 342, 345, 349, Earth · 40, 46, 67, Time Zone · 67, 68,
350, 354 80, 100, 147, 183, 69, 157, 257, 258,
Stellar Winds · 164, 191, 197, 198, 260, 262, 321
165 237, 238, 239, Tobe
Sumerians · 58, 80, 83, 277, 298, 302, Agreeableness · 62
87, 89, 92, 93, 150, 310, 311, 314, 347 Tongues · 26, 75, 80,
194, 238, 283, 313, Tama-Re · 30, 32, 33, 88, 92, 94, 96, 126,
326, 338, 339, 340, 34, 37, 43, 45, 53, 332
341, 343 57, 58, 69, 76, 77, Torah · 40, 56, 57, 59,
Sun · 26, 28, 29, 33, 34, 126, 130, 131, 133, 60, 72, 78, 79, 81,
52, 54, 55, 57, 58, 134, 147, 150, 239, 93, 98, 150, 155,
63, 64, 66, 67, 68, 277, 303, 338, 363 169, 204, 219, 222,
69, 70, 71, 72, 73, Tama-Rean · 33, 40, 244, 251, 283, 284,
77, 111, 117, 119, 45, 51, 64, 102, 119, 291, 300, 301, 310,
121, 127, 129, 132, 125, 133, 150, 152, 339, 364
134, 137, 138, 139, 183, 240, 312, 339, Toth, Thought, Thout
143, 144, 149, 151, 340, 362, 365 · 201
153, 154, 155, 157, Tama-Reans · 35, 45, Triangle · 35, 39, 67,
158, 160, 161, 162, 63, 91, 146, 194, 227, 352, 353
163, 165, 166, 167, 339, 343 Trium · 36
168, 169, 171, 172, Tanen · 26, 40, 55, 65,
181, 182, 186, 197, 97, 169, 296, 313
201, 210, 211, 215, Tehuti · 201, 241, 244, U
218, 219, 222, 225, 251, 252, 256, 279,
233, 240, 245, 256, 284, 296, 306, 307, Ufit
260, 264, 266, 268, 308, 309, 311, 321, Opet · 33, 34
269, 272, 275, 276, 361 UFO · 159
Uz
329
CHAPTER ONE
THE COMING PA HAADUR
Falcon · 28, 51 Wings · 29, 82, 130, 206, 219, 285, 291,
189, 190, 192, 193, 297, 325
211, 269 Y Chromosome · 42,
V Women · 28, 38, 42, 44
43, 44, 47, 48, 49, Yahweh · 26, 60, 62,
Venus · 72, 363 64, 74, 89, 166, 195, 77, 78, 81, 83, 84,
Virus · 135, 141, 152, 196, 218, 248, 282, 86, 88, 89, 90, 92,
191, 281, 295 305, 320, 326, 350, 117, 118, 150, 152,
Vulcan · 39 353 155, 164, 197, 224,
285, 290, 322, 332,
361, 367
W X Yamasee · 53
Yaw-Re · 27
Waab · 202, 206, 244 X · 42, 44, 45, 103,
Waas 124, 205, 237, 244,
crook/staff · 30 251, 294, 301 Z
Wa-Rit · 33
Wa-Set Zakar · 59, 60, 105
Luxor · 33, 134 Y Zedu · 31
Whales · 170, 186, 187, Zira · 41
192 Y · 42, 44, 45, 48, 49,
53, 144, 173, 205,

330

You might also like